Title:   The Portygee

Subject:  

Author:   Joseph C. Lincoln

Keywords:  

Creator:  

PDF Version:   1.2



Contents:

Page No 1

Page No 2

Page No 3

Page No 4

Page No 5

Page No 6

Page No 7

Page No 8

Page No 9

Page No 10

Page No 11

Page No 12

Page No 13

Page No 14

Page No 15

Page No 16

Page No 17

Page No 18

Page No 19

Page No 20

Page No 21

Page No 22

Page No 23

Page No 24

Page No 25

Page No 26

Page No 27

Page No 28

Page No 29

Page No 30

Page No 31

Page No 32

Page No 33

Page No 34

Page No 35

Page No 36

Page No 37

Page No 38

Page No 39

Page No 40

Page No 41

Page No 42

Page No 43

Page No 44

Page No 45

Page No 46

Page No 47

Page No 48

Page No 49

Page No 50

Page No 51

Page No 52

Page No 53

Page No 54

Page No 55

Page No 56

Page No 57

Page No 58

Page No 59

Page No 60

Page No 61

Page No 62

Page No 63

Page No 64

Page No 65

Page No 66

Page No 67

Page No 68

Page No 69

Page No 70

Page No 71

Page No 72

Page No 73

Page No 74

Page No 75

Page No 76

Page No 77

Page No 78

Page No 79

Page No 80

Page No 81

Page No 82

Page No 83

Page No 84

Page No 85

Page No 86

Page No 87

Page No 88

Page No 89

Page No 90

Page No 91

Page No 92

Page No 93

Page No 94

Page No 95

Page No 96

Page No 97

Page No 98

Page No 99

Page No 100

Page No 101

Page No 102

Page No 103

Page No 104

Page No 105

Page No 106

Page No 107

Page No 108

Page No 109

Page No 110

Page No 111

Page No 112

Page No 113

Page No 114

Page No 115

Page No 116

Page No 117

Page No 118

Page No 119

Page No 120

Page No 121

Page No 122

Page No 123

Page No 124

Page No 125

Page No 126

Page No 127

Page No 128

Page No 129

Page No 130

Page No 131

Page No 132

Page No 133

Page No 134

Page No 135

Page No 136

Page No 137

Page No 138

Page No 139

Page No 140

Page No 141

Page No 142

Page No 143

Page No 144

Page No 145

Page No 146

Page No 147

Page No 148

Page No 149

Page No 150

Page No 151

Page No 152

Page No 153

Page No 154

Page No 155

Page No 156

Page No 157

Page No 158

Page No 159

Page No 160

Page No 161

Page No 162

Page No 163

Page No 164

Page No 165

Page No 166

Page No 167

Page No 168

Page No 169

Page No 170

Page No 171

Page No 172

Page No 173

Page No 174

Page No 175

Page No 176

Page No 177

Page No 178

Page No 179

Page No 180

Page No 181

Page No 182

Page No 183

Page No 184

Page No 185

Page No 186

Page No 187

Page No 188

Page No 189

Page No 190

Page No 191

Page No 192

Page No 193

Page No 194

Page No 195

Page No 196

Page No 197

Page No 198

Page No 199

Page No 200

Page No 201

Page No 202

Page No 203

Page No 204

Page No 205

Page No 206

Page No 207

Page No 208

Page No 209

Page No 210

Page No 211

Page No 212

Page No 213

Page No 214

Page No 215

Page No 216

Page No 217

Bookmarks





Page No 1


The Portygee

Joseph C. Lincoln



Top




Page No 2


Table of Contents

The Portygee ........................................................................................................................................................1

Joseph C. Lincoln....................................................................................................................................1

CHAPTER I .............................................................................................................................................1

CHAPTER II ..........................................................................................................................................14

CHAPTER III........................................................................................................................................23

CHAPTER IV........................................................................................................................................39

CHAPTER V.........................................................................................................................................50

CHAPTER VI........................................................................................................................................62

CHAPTER VII .......................................................................................................................................69

CHAPTER VIII.....................................................................................................................................85

CHAPTER IX........................................................................................................................................99

CHAPTER X.......................................................................................................................................110

CHAPTER XI......................................................................................................................................125

CHAPTER XII .....................................................................................................................................140

CHAPTER XIII...................................................................................................................................142

CHAPTER XIV...................................................................................................................................156

CHAPTER XV....................................................................................................................................168

CHAPTER XVI...................................................................................................................................177

CHAPTER XVII ..................................................................................................................................184

CHAPTER XVIII .................................................................................................................................191

CHAPTER XIX...................................................................................................................................201

CHAPTER XX....................................................................................................................................210


The Portygee

i



Top




Page No 3


The Portygee

Joseph C. Lincoln

CHAPTER I 

CHAPTER II 

CHAPTER III 

CHAPTER IV 

CHAPTER V 

CHAPTER VI 

CHAPTER VII 

CHAPTER VIII 

CHAPTER IX 

CHAPTER X 

CHAPTER XI 

CHAPTER XII 

CHAPTER XIII 

CHAPTER XIV 

CHAPTER XV 

CHAPTER XVI 

CHAPTER XVII 

CHAPTER XVIII 

CHAPTER XIX 

CHAPTER XX  

CHAPTER I

Overhead the clouds cloaked the sky; a ragged cloak it was, and,  here and there, a star shone through a hole,

to be obscured almost  instantly as more cloud tatters were hurled across the rent.  The  pines threshed on the

hill tops.  The bare branches of the wild  cherry and silverleaf trees scraped and rattled and tossed.  And  the

wind, the raw, chilling December wind, driven in, wet and  salty, from  the sea, tore over the dunes and brown

uplands and  across the frozen  saltmeadows, screamed through the telegraph  wires, and made the  platform of

the dismal South Harniss railway  station the lonesomest,  coldest, darkest and most miserable spot on  the face

of the earth. 

At least that was the opinion of the seventeenyearold boy whom  the down trainon time for once and a

wonderhad just deposited  upon that platform.  He would not have discounted the statement one  iota.  The

South Harniss station platform WAS the most miserable  spot  on earth and he was the most miserable human

being upon it.  And this  last was probably true, for there were but three other  humans upon  that platform and,

judging by externals, they seemed  happy enough.  One was the station agent, who was just entering the

building  preparatory to locking up for the night, and the others  were Jim  Young, driver of the "depot wagon,"

The Portygee 1



Top




Page No 4


and Doctor Holliday,  the South  Harniss "homeopath," who had been up to a Boston hospital  with a  patient

and was returning home.  Jim was whistling "Silver  Bells," a  tune much in vogue the previous summer, and

Doctor  Holliday was  puffing at a cigar and knocking his feet together to  keep them warm  while waiting to get

into the depot wagon.  These  were the only people  in sight and they were paying no attention  whatever to the

lonely  figure at the other end of the platform. 

The boy looked about him.  The station, with its sickly yellow  gleam of kerosene lamp behind its dingy

windowpane, was apparently  the only inhabited spot in a barren wilderness.  At the edge of the  platform

civilization seemed to end and beyond was nothing but a  black earth and a black sky, tossing trees and

howling wind, and  coldraw, damp, penetrating cold.  Compared with this even the  stuffy plush seats and

smelly warmth of the car he had just left  appeared temptingly homelike and luxurious.  All the way down

from  the city he had sneered inwardly at a onehorse railroad which ran  no  Pullmans on its Cape branch in

winter time.  Now he forgot his  longing  for mahogany veneer and individual chairs and would gladly  have

boarded a freight car, provided there were in it a lamp and a  stove. 

The light in the station was extinguished and the agent came out  with a jingling bunch of keys and locked the

door.  "Goodnight,  Jim," he shouted, and walked off into the blackness.  Jim responded  with a "goodnight"

of his own and climbed aboard the wagon, into  the  dark interior of which the doctor had preceded him.  The

boy  at the  other end of the platform began to be really alarmed.  It  looked as if  all living things were

abandoning him and he was to be  left marooned,  to starve or freeze, provided he was not blown away  first. 

He picked up the suitcasean expensive suitcase it was,  elaborately  strapped and buckled, with a telescope

back and gold  fittingsand  hastened toward the wagon.  Mr. Young had just picked up  the reins. 

"Oh,oh, I say!" faltered the boy.  We have called him "the boy"  all this time, but he did not consider

himself a boy, he esteemed  himself a man, if not fullgrown physically, certainly so mentally.  A  man, with

all a man's wisdom, and more besidesthe great, the  allembracing wisdom of his age, or youth. 

"Here, I say!  Just a minute!" he repeated.  Jim Young put his head  around the edge of the wagon curtain.

"Eh?" he queried.  "Eh?  Who's  talkin'?  Oh, was it you, young feller?  Did you want me?" 

The young fellow replied that he did.  "This is South Harniss,  isn't it?" he asked. 

Mr. Young chuckled.  "Darn sure thing," he drawled.  "I give in  that it looks consider'ble like Boston, or

Providence, R. I., or  some  of them capitols, but it ain't, it's South Harniss, Cape Cod." 

Doctor Holliday, on the back seat of the depot wagon, chuckled.  Jim did not; he never laughed at his own

jokes.  And his questioner  did not chuckle, either. 

"Does adoes a Mr. Snow live here?" he asked. 

The answer was prompt, if rather indefinite.  "Umhm," said the  driver.  "No less'n fourteen of him lives here.

Which one do you  want?" 

"A Mr. Z. Snow." 

"Mr. Z. Snow, eh?  Humph!  I don't seem to recollect any Mr. Z.  Snow around nowadays.  There used to be a

Ziba Snow, but he's dead.  'Twan't him you wanted, was it?" 

"No.  The one I want isis a Captain Snow.  Captain" he paused  before uttering the name which to his

critical metropolitan ear had  seemed so dreadfully countrified and humiliating; "Captain Zelotes  Snow," he


The Portygee

The Portygee 2



Top




Page No 5


blurted, desperately. 

Jim Young laughed aloud.  "Good land, Doc!" he cried, turning  toward his passenger; "I swan I clean forgot

that Cap'n Lote's name  begun with a Z.  Cap'n Lote Snow?  Why, darn sure!  I . . .  Eh?"  He  stopped short,

evidently struck by a new idea.  "Sho!" he  drawled,  slowly.  "Why, I declare I believe you're . . .  Yes, of

course!  I  heard they was expectin' you.  Doc, you know who 'tis,  don't you?  Cap'n Lote's grandson; Janie's

boy." 

He took the lighted lantern from under the wagon seat and held it  up so that its glow shone upon the face of

the youth standing by  the  wheel. 

"Hum," he mused.  "Don't seem to favor Janie much, does he, Doc.  Kind of got her mouth and chin, though.

Remember that sort of  goodlookin' set to her mouth she had?  And SHE got it from old  Cap'n  Lo himself.

This boy's face must be more like his pa's, I  cal'late.  Don't you cal'late so, Doc?" 

Whether Doctor Holliday cal'lated so or not he did not say.  It  may be that he thought this cool inspection of

and discussion  concerning a stranger, even a juvenile stranger, somewhat  embarrassing to its object.  Or the

lantern light may have shown  him  an ominous pucker between the boy's black brows and a flash of  temper  in

the big black eyes beneath them.  At any rate, instead of  replying  to Mr. Young, he said, kindly: 

"Yes, Captain Snow lives in the village.  If you are going to his  house get right in here.  I live close by,

myself." 

"Darned sure!" agreed Mr. Young, with enthusiasm.  "Hop right in,  sonny." 

But the boy hesitated.  Then, haughtily ignoring the driver, he  said:  "I thought Captain Snow would be here to

meet me.  He wrote  that he would." 

The irrepressible Jim had no idea of remaining ignored.  "Did Cap'n  Lote write you that he'd be here to the

depot?" he demanded.  "All  right, then he'll be here, don't you fret.  I presume likely that  everlastin' mare of his

has eat herself sick again; eh, Doc?  By  godfreys domino, the way they pet and stuff that fool horse is a  sin

and a shame.  It ain't Lote's fault so much as 'tis his wife's  she's  responsible.  Don't you fret, Bub, the cap'n'll

be here for  you some  time tonight.  If he said he'll come he'll come, even if  he has to  hire one of them

limmysines.  He, he, he!  All you've got  to do is  wait, and . . .  Hey! . . .  Hold on a minute! . . .  Bub!" 

The boy was walking away.  And to hail him as "Bub" was, although  Jim Young did not know it, the one way

least likely to bring him  back. 

"Bub!" shouted Jim again.  Receiving no reply he added what he had  intended saying.  "If I run afoul of Cap'n

Lote anywheres on the  road," he called, "I'll tell him you're here awaitin'.  So long,  Bub.  Git dap, Chain

Lightnin'." 

The horse, thus complimented, pricked up one ear, lifted a foot,  and jogged off.  The depot wagon became

merely a shadowy smudge  against the darkness of the night.  For a few minutes the "chock,  chock" of the

hoofs upon the frozen road and the rattle of wheels  gave audible evidence of its progress.  Then these died

away and  upon  the windswept platform of the South Harniss station descended  the  black gloom of

lonesomeness so complete as to make that which  had been  before seem, by comparison, almost cheerful. 

The youth upon that platform turned up his coat collar, thrust his  gloved hands into his pockets, and shivered.

Then, still  shivering,  he took a brisk walk up and down beside the suitcase  and, finally,  circumnavigated the

little station.  The voyage of  discovery was  unprofitable; there was nothing to discover.  So far  as he could


The Portygee

The Portygee 3



Top




Page No 6


seewhich was by no means farupon each side of the  building was  nothing but bare fields and tossing

pines, and wind  and cold and  blackness.  He came to anchor once more by the  suitcase and drew a  long,

hopeless breath. 

He thought of the cheery dining room at the school he had left the  day before.  Dinner would be nearly over

by now.  The fellows were  having dessert, or, probably, were filing out into the corridors,  the  younger chaps

to go to the study hall and the older onesthe  lordly  seniors, of whom he had been oneon the way to their

rooms.  The  picture of his own cheerful, gay room in the senior corridor  was  before his mind; of that room as

it was before the telegram  came,  before the lawyer came with the letter, before the end of  everything  as he

knew it and the beginning ofthis.  He had not  always loved and  longed for that school as he loved and

longed for  it now.  There had  been times when he referred to it as "the old  jail," and professed to  hate it.  But it

had been the only real  home he had known since he was  eight years old and now he looked  back upon it as a

fallen angel might  have looked back upon  Paradise.  He sighed again, choked and hastily  drew his gloved

hand  across his eyes.  At the age of seventeen it is  very unmanly to  cry, but, at that age also, manhood and

boyhood are  closely  intermingled.  He choked again and then, squaring his  shoulders,  reached into his coat

pocket for the silver cigarette case  which,  as a recent acquisition, was the pride of his soul.  He had  just

succeeded in lighting a cigarette when, borne upon the wind, he  heard once more the sound of hoofs and

wheels and saw in the  distance  a speck of light advancing toward the station. 

The sounds drew nearer, so did the light.  Then an oldfashioned  buggy, drawn by a plump little sorrel, pulled

up by the platform  and  a hand held a lantern aloft. 

"Hello!" hailed a voice.  "Where are you?" 

The hail did not have to be repeated.  Before the vehicle reached  the station the boy had tossed away the

cigarette, picked up the  suitcase, and was waiting.  Now he strode into the lantern light. 

"Here I am," he answered, trying hard not to appear too eager.  "Were you looking for me?" 

The holder of the lantern tucked the reins between the whipsocket  and the dash and climbed out of the

buggy.  He was a little man,  perhaps about fortyeight or fifty, with a smoothshaven face  wrinkled at the

corners of the mouth and eyes.  His voice was the  most curious thing about him; it was high and piping, more

like a  woman's than a man's.  Yet his words and manner were masculine  enough, and he moved and spoke

with a nervous, jerky quickness. 

He answered the question promptly.  "Guess I be, guess I be," he  said briskly.  "Anyhow, I'm lookin' for a boy

name ofname of  My  soul to heavens, I've forgot it again, I do believe!  What did  you say  your name

was?" 

"Speranza.  Albert Speranza." 

"Sartin, sartin!  Spererumyes, yes.  Knew it just as well as  I did my own.  Well, well, well!  Yees, yes,

yes.  Get right  aboard,  Alfred.  Let me take your satchel." 

He picked up the suitcase.  The boy, his foot upon the buggy step,  still hesitated.  "Then you'reyou're not my

grandfather?" he  faltered. 

"Eh?  Who?  Your grandfather?  Me?  He, he, he!"  He chuckled  shrilly.  "No, no!  No such luck.  If I was Cap'n

Lote Snow, I'd be  some older'n I be now and a dum sight richer.  Yes, yes.  No, I'm  Cap'n Lote's bookkeeper

over at the lumber consarn.  He's got a  cold,  and Olivethat's his wifeshe said he shouldn't come out

tonight.  He said he should, and while they was Katydidin' back  and forth  about it, RachelMrs.


The Portygee

The Portygee 4



Top




Page No 7


Ellisshe's the hired housekeeper  thereshe  telephoned me to harness up and come meet you up here to  the

depot.  Ererlittle mite late, wan't I?" 

"Why, yes, just a little.  The other man, the one who drives the  mail cartI think that was what it wassaid

perhaps the horse was  sick, or something like that." 

"Noo, no, that wan't it this time.  Ier  All tucked in and  warm enough, be you?  Yees, yes, yes.  No, I'm

to blame, I  shouldn't  wonder.  I stopped at theat the store a minute and met  one or two of  the fellers, and

that kind of held me up.  All right  now?  Yees, yes,  yes.  G'long, gal." 

The buggy moved away from the platform.  Its passenger, his chilly  feet and legs tightly wrapped in the robes,

drew a breath of relief  between his chattering teeth.  He was actually going somewhere at  last; whatever

happened, morning would not find him propped frozen  stiff against the scarred and mangy clapboards of the

South Harniss  station. 

"Warm enough, be you?" inquired his driver cheerfully. 

"Yes, thank you." 

"That's good, that's good, that's good.  Yees, yes, yes.  Well  er  Frederick, how do you think you're goin'

to like South  Harniss?" 

The answer was rather noncommittal.  The boy replied that he had  not seen very much of it as yet.  His

companion seemed to find the  statement highly amusing.  He chuckled and slapped his knee. 

"Ain't seen much of it, eh?  Noo, no, no.  I guess you ain't,  guess you ain't.  He, he, he . . .  Um . . .  Let's see,

what was I  talkin' about?" 

"Why, nothing in particular, I think, Mr.Mr." 

"Didn't I tell you my name?  Sho, sho!  That's funny.  My name's  KeelerLaban B. Keeler.  That's my name

and bookkeeper is my  station.  South Harniss is my dwellin' placeand I guess likely  you'll have to see the

minister about the rest of it.  He, he, he!" 

His passenger, to whom the old schoolbook quatrain was entirely  unknown, wondered what on earth the man

was talking about.  However,  he smiled politely and sniffed with a dawning suspicion.  It seemed to  him there

was an unusual scent in the air, a  spirituous scent, a 

"Have a peppermint lozenger," suggested Mr. Keeler, with sudden  enthusiasm.  "Peppermint is good for what

ails you, so they tell  me.  Yees, yes, yes.  Have one.  Have two, have a lot." 

He proceeded to have a lot himself, and the buggy was straightway  reflavored, so to speak.  The boy, his

suspicions by no means  dispelled, leaned back in the corner behind the curtains and  awaited  developments.

He was warmer, that was a real physical and  consequently a slight mental comfort, but the feeling of

lonesomeness  was still acute.  So far his acquaintanceship with the  citizens of  South Harniss had not filled

him with enthusiasm.  They  were what he,  in his former and very recent state of existence,  would have called

"Rubes."  Were the grandparents whom he had never  met this sort of  people?  It seemed probable.  What sort of

a place  was this to which  Fate had consigned him?  The sense of utter  helplessness which had had  him in its

clutches since the day when  he received the news of his  father's death was as dreadfully real  as ever.  He had

not been  consulted at all.  No one had asked him  what he wished to do, or where  he wished to go.  The letter

had  come from these people, the Cape Cod  grandparents of whom, up to  that time, he had never even heard,


The Portygee

The Portygee 5



Top




Page No 8


and he  had been shipped to them  as though he were a piece of merchandise.  And what was to become  of him

now, after he reached his destination?  What would they  expect him to do?  Or be?  How would he be treated? 

In his extensive readinghe had been an omnivorous readerthere  were numerous examples of youths left,

like him, to the care of  distant relatives, or stepparents, or utter strangers.  Their  experiences, generally

speaking, had not been cheerful ones.  Most  of  them had run away.  He might run away; but somehow the idea

of  running  away, with no money, to face hardship and poverty and all  the rest,  did not make an alluring

appeal.  He had been used to  comfort and  luxury ever since he could remember, and his imagination,  an

unusually  active one, visualized much more keenly than the  average the  tribulations and struggles of a

runaway.  David  Copperfield, he  remembered, had run away, but he did it when a kid,  not a man like  himself.

Nicholas Nicklebyno, Nicholas had not run  away exactly,  but his father had died and he had been left to an

uncle.  It would be  dreadful if his grandfather should turn out to  be a man like Ralph  Nickleby.  Yet Nicholas

had gotten on well in  spite of his wicked  relative.  Yes, and how gloriously he had defied  the old rascal, too!

He wondered if he would ever be called upon to  defy his grandfather.  He saw himself doing itquietly, a

perfect  gentleman always, but  with the noble determination of one performing  a disagreeable duty.  His chin

lifted and his shoulders squared  against the back of the  buggy. 

Mr. Keeler, who had apparently forgotten his passenger altogether,  broke into song, 

"She's my darlin' hankypanky  And she wears a number two,  Her  father keeps a barber shop  Way out in

Kalamazoo." 

He sang the foregoing twice over and then added a chorus, plainly  improvised, made up of "Di doos" and "Di

dums" ad lib.  And the  buggy  rolled up and over the slope of a little hill and, in the  face of a  screaming sea

wind, descended a long, gentle slope to  where, scattered  along a twomile water frontage, the lights of  South

Harniss twinkled  sparsely. 

"Did doo dum, dee dum, doo dum  Di doo dum, doo dum dee." 

So sang Mr. Keeler.  Then he broke off his solo as the little mare  turned in between a pair of high wooden

posts bordering a drive,  jogged along that drive for perhaps fifty feet, and stopped beside  the stone step of a

white front door.  Through the arched window  above that door shone lamplight warm and yellow. 

"Whoa!" commanded Mr. Keeler, most unnecessarily.  Then, as if  himself a bit uncertain as to his exact

whereabouts, he peered out  at  the door and the house of which it was a part, afterward  settling back  to

announce triumphantly:  "And here we be!  Yes,  sir, here we be!" 

Then the door opened.  A flood of lamplight poured upon the buggy  and its occupants.  And the boy saw two

people standing in the  doorway, a man and a woman. 

It was the woman who spoke first.  It was she who had opened the  door.  The man was standing behind her

looking over her shoulder  over her head really, for he was tall and broad and she short and  slender. 

"Is it?" she faltered. 

Mr. Keeler answered.  "Yes, ma'am," he declared emphatically,  "that's who 'tis.  Here we

beererwhat'syournameEdward.  Jump  right out." 

His passenger alighted from the buggy.  The woman bent forward to  look at him, her hands clasped. 

"Itit's Albert, isn't it?" she asked. 


The Portygee

The Portygee 6



Top




Page No 9


The boy nodded.  "Yes," he said. 

The hands unclasped and she held them out toward him.  "Oh,  Albert," she cried, "I'm your grandmother.  I" 

The man interrupted.  "Wait till we get him inside, Olive," he  said.  "Come in, son."  Then, addressing the

driver, he ordered:  "Labe, take the horse and team out to the barn and unharness for  me,  will you?" 

"Yees, yes, yes," replied Mr. Keeler.  "Yes indeed, Cap'n.  Take  her right alongright off.  Yes indeedy.  Git

dap!" 

He drove off toward the end of the yard, where a large building,  presumably a barn, loomed black against the

dark sky.  He sang as  he  drove and the big man on the step looked after him and sniffed  suspiciously. 

Meanwhile the boy had followed the little woman into the house  through a small front hall, from which a

narrow flight of stairs  shot  aloft with almost unbelievable steepness, and into a large  room.  Albert had a swift

impression of big windows full of plants,  of  pictures of ships and schooners on the walls, of a table set for

four. 

"Take your things right off," cried his grandmother.  "Here, I'll  take 'em.  There! now turn 'round and let me

look at you.  Don't  move  till I get a good look." 

He stood perfectly still while she inspected him from head to foot. 

"You've got her mouth," she said slowly.  "Yes, you've got her  mouth.  Her hair and eyes were brown and

yours are black, butbut  I  THINK you look like her.  Oh, I did so want you to!  May I kiss  you,  Albert?  I'm

your grandmother, you know." 

With embarrassed shyness he leaned forward while she put her arms  about his neck and kissed him on the

cheek.  As he straightened  again  he became aware that the big man had entered the room and was  regarding

him intently beneath a pair of shaggy gray eyebrows.  Mrs.  Snow turned. 

"Oh, Zelotes," she cried, "he's got Janie's mouth, don't you think  so?  And he DOES look like her, doesn't he?" 

Her husband shook his head.  "Maybe so, Mother," he said, with a  half smile.  "I ain't a great hand for locatin'

who folks look  like.  How are you, boy?  Glad to see you.  I'm your grandfather,  you know." 

They shook hands, while each inspected and made a mental estimate  of the other.  Albert saw a square,

bearded jaw, a firm mouth, gray  eyes with many wrinkles at the corners, and a shock of thick gray  hair.  The

eyes had a way of looking straight at you, through you,  as  if reading your thoughts, divining your motives

and making a  general  appraisal of you and them. 

Captain Zelotes Snow, for his part, saw a tall young fellow, slim  and straight, with black curly hair, large

black eyes and regular  features.  A goodlooking boy, a handsome boyalmost too handsome,  perhaps, or

with just a touch of the effeminate in the good looks.  The captain's glance took in the wellfitting suit of

clothes, the  expensive tie, the gold watch chain. 

"Humph!" grunted Captain Zelotes.  "Well, your grandma and I are  glad to have you with us.  Let me see,

Albertthat's your right  name, ain't itAlbert?" 

Something in his grandfather's looks or tone aroused a curious  feeling in the youth.  It was not a feeling of

antagonism, exactly,  but more of defiance, of obstinacy.  He felt as if this big man,  regarding him so keenly


The Portygee

The Portygee 7



Top




Page No 10


from under the heavy brows, was looking for  faults, was expecting to find something wrong, might almost be

disappointed if he did not find it.  He met the gaze for a moment,  the color rising to his cheeks. 

"My name," he said deliberately, "is Alberto Miguel Carlos  Speranza." 

Mrs. Snow uttered a little exclamation.  "Oh!" she ejaculated.  And  then added:  "Whywhy, I

thoughtwewe understood 'twas  'Albert.'  We didn't know there waswe didn't know there was any  more

to it.  What did you say it was?" 

Her grandson squared his shoulders.  "Alberto Miguel Carlos  Speranza," he repeated.  "My father"there was

pride in his voice  now"my father's name was Miguel Carlos.  Of course you knew  that." 

He spoke as if all creation must have known it.  Mrs. Snow looked  helplessly at her husband.  Captain Zelotes

rubbed his chin. 

"Well," he drawled dryly, "I guess likely we'll get along with  'Albert' for a spell.  I cal'late 'twill come more

handy to us Cape  folks.  We're kind of plain and everyday 'round here.  Sapper's  ready, ain't it, Mother?  Al

must be hungry.  I'm plaguey sure _I_  am." 

"But, Zelotes, maybe he'd like to go up to his bedroom first.  He's  been ridin' a long ways in the cars and

maybe he'd like to wash up  or  change his clothes?" 

"Change his clothes!  Lord sakes, Olive, what would he want to  change his clothes this time of night for?  You

don't want to  change  your clothes, do you, boy?" 

"No, sir, I guess not." 

"Sartin sure you don't.  Want to wash?  There's a basin and soap  and towel right out there in the kitchen." 

He pointed to the kitchen door.  At that moment the door was  partially opened and a brisk feminine voice

from behind it  inquired:  "How about eatin'?  Are you all ready in there?" 

It was Captain Snow who answered. 

"You bet we are, Rachel!" he declared.  "All ready and then some.  Trot her out.  Sit down, Mother.  Sit down,

Al.  Now then, Rachel,  all aboard." 

Rachel, it appeared, was the owner of the brisk feminine voice just  mentioned.  She was brisk herself, as to

age about forty, plump,  rosy  and very businesslike.  She whisked the platter of fried  mackerel and  the dishes

of baked potatoes, stewed corn, hot  biscuits and all the  rest, to the table is no time, and then, to  Albert's

astonishment, sat  down at that table herself.  Mrs. Snow  did the honors. 

"Albert," she said, "this is Mrs. Ellis, who helps me keep house.  Rachel, this is my grandson,

AlberterSperanza." 

She pronounced the surname in a tone almost apologetic.  Mrs. Ellis  did not attempt to pronounce it.  She

extended a plump hand and  observed:  "Is that so?  Real glad to know you, Albert.  How do you  think you're

goin' to like South Harniss?" 

Considering that his acquaintance with the village had been so  decidedly limited, Albert was somewhat

puzzled how to reply.  His  grandfather saved him the trouble. 


The Portygee

The Portygee 8



Top




Page No 11


"Lord sakes, Rachel," he declared, "he ain't seen more'n three  square foot of it yet.  It's darker'n the inside of a

nigger's  undershirt outdoors tonight.  Well, AlAlbert, I mean, how are  you  on mackerel?  Pretty good

stowage room below decks?  About so  much,  eh?" 

Mrs. Snow interrupted. 

"Zelotes," she said reprovingly, "ain't you forgettin' somethin'?" 

"Eh?  Forgettin'?  Heavens to Betsy, so I am!  Lord, we thank thee  for these and all other gifts, Amen.  What did

I do with the fork;  swallow it?" 

As long as he lives Albert Speranza will not forget that first meal  in the home of his grandparents.  It was so

strange, so different  from any other meal he had ever eaten.  The food was good and there  was an abundance

of it, but the surroundings were so queer.  Instead  of the wellordered and sedate school meal, here all the

eatables from  fish to pie were put upon the table at the same time  and the  servantor housekeeper, which to

his mind were one and the  samesat  down, not only to eat with the family, but to take at  least an equal  part

in the conversation.  And the conversation  itself was so  different.  Beginning with questions concerning his

own journey from  the New York town where the school was located, it  at length reached  South Harniss and

there centered about the  diminutive person of Laban  Keeler, his loquacious and tuneful  rescuer from the

platform of the  railway station. 

"Where are your things, Albert?" asked Mrs. Snow.  "Your trunk or  travelin' bag, or whatever you had, I

mean?" 

"My trunks are coming by express," began the boy.  Captain Zelotes  interrupted him. 

"Your trunks?" he repeated.  "Got more'n one, have you?" 

"Whywhy, yes, there are three.  Mr. Holdenhe is the headmaster,  you know" 

"Eh?  Headmaster?  Oh, you mean the boss teacher up there at the  school?  Yes, yes.  Umhm." 

"Yes, sir.  Mr. Holden says the trunks should get here in a few  days." 

Mrs. Ellis, the housekeeper, made the next remark.  "Did I  understand you to say you had THREE trunks?"

she demanded. 

"Why, yes." 

"Three trunks for one boy!  For mercy sakes, what have you got in  'em?" 

"Whywhy, my things.  My clothes andandeverything." 

"Everything, or just about, I should say.  Goodness gracious me,  when I go up to Boston I have all I can do to

fill up one trunk.  And  I'm bigger'n you arebigger 'round, anyway." 

There was no doubt about that.  Captain Zelotes laughed shortly. 

"That statement ain't what I'd call exaggerated, Rachel," he  declared.  "Every time I see you and Laban out

walkin' together he  has to keep on the sunny side or be in a total eclipse.  And, by  the  way, speakin' of

Laban  Say, son, how did you and he get  along  comin' down from the depot?" 


The Portygee

The Portygee 9



Top




Page No 12


"All right.  It was pretty dark." 

"I'll bet you!  Laban wasn't very talkative, was he?" 

"Why, yes, sir, he talked a good deal but he sang most of the  time." 

This simple statement appeared to cause a most surprising  sensation.  The Snows and their housekeeper

looked at each other.  Captain  Zelotes leaned back in his chair and whistled. 

"Whew!" he observed.  "Hum!  Sho!  Thunderation!" 

"Oh, dear!" exclaimed his wife. 

Mrs. Ellis, the housekeeper, drew a long breath.  "I might have  expected it," she said tartly.  "It's past time.

He's pretty nigh  a  month overdue, as 'tis." 

Captain Snow rose to his feet.  "I was kind of suspicious when he  started for the barn," he declared.  "Seemed

to me he was singin'  then.  WHAT did he sing, boy?" he asked, turning suddenly upon his  grandson. 

"Whywhy, I don't know.  I didn't notice particularly.  You see,  it was pretty cold and" 

Mrs. Ellis interrupted.  "Did he sing anything about somebody's  bein' his darlin' hankypanky and wearin' a

number two?" she  demanded  sharply. 

"Whywhy, yes, he did." 

Apparently that settled it.  Mrs. Snow said, "Oh, dear!" again and  the housekeeper also rose from the table. 

"You'd better go right out to the barn this minute, Cap'n Lote,"  she said, "and I guess likely I'd better go with

you." 

The captain already had his cap on his head. 

"No, Rachel," he said, "I don't need you.  Cal'late I can take care  of 'most anything that's liable to have

happened.  If he ain't put  the bridle to bed in the stall and hung the mare up on the harness  pegs I judge I can

handle the job.  Wonder how fur along he'd got.  Didn't hear him singin' anything about 'Hyannis on the Cape,'

did  you, boy?" 

"No." 

"That's some comfort.  Now, don't you worry, Mother.  I'll be back  in a few minutes." 

Mrs. Snow clasped her hands.  "Oh, I HOPE he hasn't set the barn  afire," she wailed. 

"No danger of that, I guess.  No, Rachel, you 'tend to your supper.  I don't need you." 

He tramped out into the hall and the door closed behind him.  Mrs.  Snow turned apologetically to her puzzled

grandson, who was  entirely  at a loss to know what the trouble was about. 

"You see, Albert," she hesitatingly explained, "LabanMr. Keeler  the man who drove you down from the

depothehe's an awful nice  man  and your grandfather thinks the world and all of him, butbut  every


The Portygee

The Portygee 10



Top




Page No 13


once in a while he  Oh, dear, I don't know how to say it to  you,  but" 

Evidently Mrs. Ellis knew how to say it, for she broke into the  conversation and said it then and there. 

"Every once in a while he gets tipsy," she snapped.  "And I only  wish I had my fingers this minute in the hair

of the scamp that  gave  him the liquor." 

A light broke upon Albert's mind.  "Oh!  Oh, yes!" he exclaimed.  "I thought he acted a little queer, and once I

thought I smelt  Oh,  that was why he was eating the peppermints!" 

Mrs. Snow nodded.  There was a moment of silence.  Suddenly the  housekeeper, who had resumed her seat in

compliance with Captain  Zelotes' order, slammed back her chair and stood up. 

"I've hated the smell of peppermint for twentytwo year," she  declared, and went out into the kitchen.  Albert,

looking after  her,  felt his grandmother's touch upon his sleeve. 

"I wouldn't say any more about it before her," she whispered.  "She's awful sensitive." 

Why in the world the housekeeper should be particularly sensitive  because the man who had driven him from

the station ate peppermint  was quite beyond the boy's comprehension.  Nor could he thoroughly  understand

why the suspicion of Mr. Keeler's slight inebriety  should  cause such a sensation in the Snow household.  He

was  inclined to  think the tipsiness rather funny.  Of course alcohol  was lectured  against often enough at school

and on one occasion a  member of the  senior classa twentyyearold "holdover" who  should have

graduated  the fall beforehad been expelled for having  beer in his room; but  during his long summer

vacations, spent  precariously at hotels or in  short visits to his father's friends,  young Speranza had learned to

be  tolerant.  Tolerance was a  necessary virtue in the circle surrounding  Speranza Senior, in his  later years.  The

popping of corks at all  hours of the night and  bottles full, half full or empty, were sounds  and sights to which

Albert had been well accustomed.  When one has  more than once seen  his own father overcome by

conviviality and the  affair treated as  a huge joke, one is not inclined to be too  censorious when others  slip.

What if the queer old Keeler guy was  tight?  Was that  anything to raise such a row about? 

Plainly, he decided, this was a strange place, this household of  his grandparents.  His premonition that they

might be "Rubes"  seemed  likely to have been well founded.  What would his father  his great,

worldfamous fatherhave thought of them?  "Bah! these  Yankee  bourgeoisie!"  He could almost hear him

say it.  Miguel  Carlos  Speranza detestedin privatethe Yankee bourgeoisie.  He  took their  money and he

married one of their daughters, but he  detested them.  During his last years, when the money had not  flowed

his way as  copiously, the detest grew. 

"You won't say anything about Laban before Mrs. Ellis, will you,  Albert?" persisted Mrs. Snow.  "She's

dreadful sensitive.  I'll  explain by and by." 

He promised, repressing a condescending smile. 

Both the housekeeper and Captain Snow returned in a few minutes.  The latter reported that the mare was safe

and sound in her stall. 

"The harness was mostly on the floor, but Jess was all right, thank  the Lord," observed the captain. 

"Jess is our horse's name, Albert," explained Mrs. Snow.  "That is,  her name's Jessamine, but Zelotes can't

ever seem to say the whole  of  any name.  When we first bought Jessamine I named her Magnolia,  but he

called her 'Mag' all the time and I COULDN'T stand that.  Have some  more preserves, Albert, do." 


The Portygee

The Portygee 11



Top




Page No 14


All through the meal Albert was uneasily conscious that his  grandfather was looking at him from under the

shaggy brows,  measuring  him, estimating him, reading him through and through.  He  resented the  scrutiny

and the twinkle of sardonic humor which, it  seemed to him,  accompanied it.  His way of handling his knife

and  fork, his clothes,  his tie, his manner of eating and drinking and  speaking, all these  Captain Zelotes

seemed to note and appraise.  But whatever the results  of his scrutiny and appraisal might be  he kept them

entirely to  himself.  When he addressed his grandson  directly, which was not  often, his remarks were trivial

commonplaces  and, although pleasant  enough, were terse and to the point. 

Several times Mrs. Snow would have questioned Albert concerning the  life at school, but each time her

husband interfered. 

"Not now, not now, Mother," he said.  "The boy ain't goin' to run  away tonight.  He'll be here tomorrow and

a good many tomorrows,  if"and here again Albert seemed to detect the slight sarcasm and  the

twinkle"if we oldfashioned 'down easters' ain't too common  and  everyday for a hightoned young chap

like him to put up with.  No, no,  don't make him talk tonight.  Can't you see he's so sleepy  that it's  only the

exercise of openin' his mouth to eat that keeps  his eyes from  shuttin'?  How about that, son?" 

It was perfectly true.  The long train ride, the excitement, the  cold wait on the station platform and the

subsequent warmth of the  room, the hearty meal, all these combined to make for sleepiness  so  overpowering

that several times the boy had caught his nose  descending  toward his plate in a most inelegant nod.  But it hurt

his pride to  think his grandfather had noticed his condition. 

"Oh, I'm all right," he said, with dignity. 

Somehow the dignity seemed to have little effect upon Captain  Zelotes. 

"Umyes, I know," observed the latter dryly, "but I guess likely  you'll be more all right in bed.  Mother,

you'll show Albert where  to  turn in, won't you?  There's your suitcase out there in the  hall, son.  I fetched it in

from the barn just now." 

Mrs. Snow ventured a protest. 

"Oh, Zelotes," she cried, "ain't we goin' to talk with him at ALL?  Why, there is so much to say!" 

"'Twill say just as well tomorrow mornin', Mother; better, because  we'll have all day to say it in.  Get the

lamp." 

Albert looked at his watch. 

"Why, it's only halfpast nine," he said. 

Captain Zelotes, who also had been looking at the watch, which was  a very fine and very expensive one,

smiled slightly.  "Halfpast  nine  some nights," he said, "is equal to halfpast twelve others.  This is  one of the

some.  There, there, son, you're so sleepy this  minute that  you've got a list to starboard.  When you and I have

that talk that's  comin' to us we want to be shipshape and on an  even keel.  Rachel,  light that lamp." 

The housekeeper brought in and lighted a small hand lamp.  Mrs.  Snow took it and led the way to the hall and

the narrow, breakneck  flight of stairs.  Captain Zelotes laid a hand on his grandson's  shoulder. 

"Goodnight, son," he said quietly. 


The Portygee

The Portygee 12



Top




Page No 15


Albert looked into the gray eyes.  Their expression was not  unkindly, but there was, or he imagined there was,

the same  quizzical, sardonic twinkle.  He resented that twinkle more than  ever; it made him feel very young

indeed, and correspondingly  obstinate.  Something of that obstinacy showed in his own eyes as  he  returned his

grandfather's look. 

"Goodnightsir," he said, and for the life of him he could not  resist hesitating before adding the "sir."  As

he climbed the steep  stairs he fancied he heard a short sniff or chucklehe was not  certain whichfrom the

big man in the diningroom. 

His bedroom was a goodsized room; that is, it would have been of  good size if the person who designed it

had known what the term  "square" meant.  Apparently he did not, and had built the apartment  on the

hitormiss, higgletypigglety pattern, with unexpected  alcoves cut into the walls and closets and chimneys

built out from  them.  There were three windows, a big bed, an oldfashioned  bureau,  a chest of drawers, a

washstand, and several oldfashioned  chairs.  Mrs. Snow put the lamp upon the bureau.  She watched him

anxiously as  he looked about the room. 

"Dodo you like it?" she asked. 

Albert replied that he guessed he did.  Perhaps there was not too  much certainty in his tone.  He had never

before seen a room like  it. 

"Oh, I hope you will like it!  It was your mother's room, Albert.  She slept here from the time she was seven

untiluntil she went  away." 

The boy looked about him with a new interest, an odd thrill.  His  mother's room.  His mother.  He could just

remember her, but that  was  all.  The memories were childish and unsatisfactory, but they  were  memories.  And

she had slept there; this had been her room  when she  was a girl, before she married, beforelong before

such a  person as  Alberto Miguel Carlos Speranza had been even dreamed of.  That was  strange, it was queer

to think about.  Long before he was  born, when  she was years younger than he as he stood there now, she  had

stood  there, had looked from those windows, had 

His grandmother threw her arms about his neck and kissed him.  Her  cheek was wet. 

"Goodnight, Albert," she said chokingly, and hurried out of the  room. 

He undressed quickly, for the room was very cold.  He opened the  window, after a desperate struggle, and

climbed into bed.  The  wind,  whistling in, obligingly blew out the lamp for him.  It  shrieked and  howled about

the eaves and the old house squeaked and  groaned.  Albert  pulled the comforter up about his neck and

concentrated upon the  business of going to sleep.  He, who could  scarcely remember when he  had had a real

home, was desperately  homesick. 

Downstairs in the diningroom Captain Zelotes stood, his hands in  his pockets, looking through the mica

panes of the stove door at  the  fire within.  His wife came up behind him and laid a hand on  his  sleeve. 

"What are you thinkin' about, Father?" she asked. 

Her husband shook his head.  "I was wonderin'," he said, "what my  granddad, the original Cap'n Lote Snow

that built this house, would  have said if he'd known that he'd have a greatgreatgrandson come  to  live in it

who was," scornfully, "a halfbreed." 

Olive's grip tightened on his arm. 


The Portygee

The Portygee 13



Top




Page No 16


"Oh, DON'T talk so, Zelotes," she begged.  "He's our Janie's boy." 

The captain opened the stove door, regarded the redhot coals for  an instant, and then slammed the door shut

again. 

"I know, Mother," he said grimly.  "It's for the sake of Janie's  half that I'm takin' in the other." 

"Butbut, Zelotes, don't you think he seems like a nice boy?" 

The twinkle reappeared in Captain Lote's eyes. 

"I think HE thinks he's a nice boy, Mother," he said.  "There,  there, let's go to bed." 

CHAPTER II

The story of the events which led up to the coming, on this  December night, of a "halfbreed" grandson to

the Snow homestead,  was  an old story in South Harniss.  The date of its beginning was  as far  back as the year

1892. 

In the fall of that year Captain Zelotes Snow was in Savannah.  He  was in command of the coasting schooner

Olive S. and the said  schooner  was then discharging a general cargo, preparatory to  loading with rice  and

cotton for Philadelphia.  With the captain in  Savannah was his  only daughter, Jane Olivia, age a scant

eighteen,  pretty, charming,  romantic and head over heels in love with a  handsome baritone then  singing in a

popularpriced grand opera  company.  It was because of  this handsome baritone, who, by the  way, was a

Spaniard named Miguel  Carlos Speranza, that Jane Snow  was then aboard her father's vessel.  Captain Lote

was not in the  habit of taking his womenfolks on his  voyages with him.  "Skirts  clutter up the deck too

much," was his  opinion. 

He had taken Jane, however, not only on this voyage, but on that  preceding it, which had been to Rio.  It was

Captain Lote's belief,  and his wife's hope, that a succession of sea winds might blow away  recollections of

Senor Speranza"fan the garlic out of her head,"  as  the captain inelegantly expressed it.  Jane had spent her

sixteenth  and seventeenth years at a school for girls near Boston.  The opera  company of which Speranza was

a member was performing at  one of the  minor theaters.  A party of the school girls, duly  chaperoned and

facultyguarded, of course, attended a series of  matinees.  At these  matinees Jane first saw her hero, brave in

doublet and hose, and  braver still in melody and romance.  She and  her mates looked and  listened and

worshiped from afar, as is the  habit of maidenly youth  under such circumstances.  There is no  particular

danger in such  worship provided the worshiper remains  always at a safely remote  distance from the idol.  But

in Jane's  case this safetybar was  removed by Fate.  The wife of a friend of  her father's, the friend  being a

Boston merchant named Cole with  whom Captain Zelotes had had  business dealings for many years, was  a

music lover.  She was in the  habit of giving what she was pleased  to call "musical teas" at her  home.  Jane, to

whom Mr. and Mrs.  Cole had taken a marked fancy, was  often invited to those teas and,  because the Coles

were "among our  nicest people," she was permitted  by the school authorities to attend. 

At one of those teas Senor Miguel Carlos Speranza was the brightest  star.  The Senor, then in his

twentyninth year, handsome, talented  and picturesque, shone refulgent.  Other and far more experienced

feminine hearts than Jane Snow's were flutteringly disturbed by the  glory of his rays.  Jane and he met, they

shook hands, they  conversed.  And at subsequent teas they met again, for Speranza, on  his part, was strongly

attracted to the simple, unaffected Cape Cod  schoolgirl.  It was not her beauty alonethough beauty she had

and  of an unusual typeit was something else, a personality which  attracted all who met her.  The handsome

Spaniard had had many love  affairs of a more or less perfunctory kind, but here was something  different,


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 14



Top




Page No 17


something he had not known.  He began by exerting his  powers of fascination in a lazy, careless way.  To his

astonishment  the said powers were not overwhelming.  If Jane was fascinated she  was not conquered.  She

remained sweet, simple, direct, charmingly  aloof. 

And Speranza was at first puzzled, then piqued, then himself madly  fascinated.  He wrote fervid letters, he

begged for interviews, he  haunted each one of Mrs. Cole's "teas."  And, at last, he wrung  from  Jane a

confession of her love, her promise to marry him.  And  that  very week Miss Donaldson, the head of the

school, discovered  and read  a package of the Senor's letters to her pupil. 

Captain Zelotes happened to be at home from a voyage.  Being  summoned from South Harniss, he came to

Boston and heard the tale  from Miss Donaldson's agitated lips.  Jane was his joy, his pride;  her future was the

great hope and dream of his life.  WHEN she  marriedwhich was not to be thought of for an indefinite

number of  years to comeshe would of course marry awell, not a President  of  the United States,

perhapsbut an admiral possibly, or a  millionaire,  or the owner of a fleet of steamships, or something  like

that.  The  idea that she should even think of marrying a  playactor was  unbelievable.  The captain had never

attended the  performance of an  opera; what was more, he never expected to attend  one.  He had been  given to

understand that a "parcel of playactin'  men and women  hollered and screamed to music for a couple of

hours."  Olive, his  wife, had attended an opera once and, according  to her, it was more  like a cat fight than

anything else.  Nobody  but foreigners ever had  anything to do with operas.  And for  foreigners of all

kindsbut the  Latin variety of foreigner in  particularCaptain Zelotes Snow  cherished a detest which was

almost fanatic. 

And now his daughter, his own Janie, was receiving ardent love  letters from a playacting foreigner, a

Spaniard, a "Portygee," a  "macaronieater"!  When finally convinced that it was true, that  the  letters had

really been written to Jane, which took some time,  he  demanded first of all to be shown the "Portygee."  Miss

Donaldson  could not, of course, produce the latter forthwith, but  she directed  her irate visitor to the theater

where the opera  company was then  performing.  To the theater Captain Zelotes went.  He did not find

Speranza there, but from a frightened attendant he  browbeat the  information that the singer was staying at a

certain  hotel.  So the  captain went to the hotel.  It was eleven o'clock in  the morning,  Senor Speranza was in

bed and could not be disturbed.  Couldn't, eh?  By the great and everlasting et cetera and continued  he was

going to  be disturbed then and there.  And unless some of  the hotel's "hired  help" set about the disturbing it

would be done  for them.  So, rather  than summon the police, the hotel management  summoned its guest, and

the first, and only, interview between the  father and lover of Jane  Snow took place. 

It was not a long interview, but it was spirited.  Captain Zelotes  began by being what he considered

diplomatic.  Having assured his  wife before leaving home, and the alarmed Miss Donaldson  subsequently, that

there was to be no trouble whatevereverything  would be settled as smooth and easy as slidin' downhill;

"that  feller  won't make any fuss, you'll see"having thus prophesied,  the captain  felt it incumbent upon

himself to see to the  fulfillment.  So he began  by condescendingly explaining that of  course he was kind of

sorry for  the young man before him, young  folks were young folks and of course  he presumed likely 'twas

natural enough, and the like of that, you  understand.  But of  course also Mr. Speranza must realize that the

thing could not go  on any further.  Jane was his daughter and her  people were nice  people, and naturally, that

being the case, her  mother and he would  be pretty particular as to who she kept company  with, to say  nothing

of marrying, which event was not to be thought of  for ten  years, anyway.  Now he didn't want to

beerpersonal or  anything  like that, and of course he wouldn't think of saying that Mr.  Speranza wasn't a

nice enough man forwell, forfor . . .  You  see,  everybody wasn't as particular as he and Mrs. Snow were.

But 

Here Senor Speranza interrupted.  He politely desired to know if  the person speaking was endeavoring to

convey the idea that he,  Miguel Carlos Speranza, was not of sufficient poseetion, goodness,  standing, what it

is? to be considered as suitor for that person's  daughter's hand.  Did Meester Snow comprehend to whom he


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 15



Top




Page No 18


addressed  himself? 

The interview terminated not long after.  The captain's parting  remark was in the nature of an ultimatum.  It

was to the effect  that  if Speranza, or any other condemned undesirable like him,  dared to so  much as look in

the direction of Jane Olivia Snow, his  daughter, he  personally would see that the return for that look  was a

charge of  buckshot.  Speranza, whitefaced and furiously  gesticulative,  commanded the astonished bellboy to

put that "Bah!  pigidiot!" out  into the hall and air the room immediately  afterward. 

Having, as he considered, satisfactorily attended to the  presumptuous  lover, Captain Zelotes returned to the

school and to what  he  believed would be the comparatively easy task, the bringing of his  daughter to reason.

Jane had always been an obedient girl, she was  devoted to her parents.  Of course, although she might feel

rather  disappointed at first, she would soon get over it.  The idea that  she  might flatly refuse to get over it, that

she might have a will  of her  own, and a determination equal to that of the father from  whom she  inherited it,

did not occur to the captain at all. 

But his enlightenment was prompt and complete.  Jane did not rage  or become hysterical, she did not even

weep in his presence.  But,  quietly, with a set of her square little chin, she informed Captain  Zelotes that she

loved Speranza, that she meant to marry him and  that  she should marry him, some day or other.  The captain

raged,  commanded, pleaded, begged.  What was the matter with her?  What  had  come over her?  Didn't she

love her father and mother any more  that  she should set out to act this way?  Yes, she declared that  she loved

them as much as ever, but that she loved her lover more  than all the  world, and no onenot even her

parentsshould  separate them. 

Captain Zelotes gave it up at last.  That is, he gave up the appeal  to reason and the pleadings.  But he did not

give up the idea of  having his own way in the matter; being Zelotes Snow, he certainly  did not give that up.

Instead he took his daughter home with him  to  South Harniss, where a tearful and heartbroken Olive added

her  persuasions to his.  But, when she found Jane obdurate, Mrs. Snow  might have surrendered.  Not her

husband, however.  Instead he  conceived a brilliant idea.  He was about to start on a voyage to  Rio  Janeiro; he

would take his wife and daughter with him.  Under  their  immediate observation and far removed from the

influence of  "that  Portygee," Jane would be in no danger and might forget. 

Jane made no remonstrance.  She went to Rio and returned.  She was  always calm, outwardly pleasant and

quiet, never mentioned her  lover  unless in answer to a question; but she never once varied  from her

determination not to give him up.  The Snows remained at  home for a  month.  Then Zelotes, Jane

accompanying him, sailed from  Boston to  Savannah.  Olive did not go with them; she hated the sea  and by

this  time both she and her husband were somewhat reassured.  So far as they  could learn by watchful

observation of their  daughter, the latter had  not communicated with Speranza nor  received communications

from him.  If she had not forgotten him it  seemed likely that he had forgotten  her.  The thought made the

captain furiously angry, but it comforted  him, too. 

During the voyage to Savannah this sense of comfort became  stronger.  Jane seemed in better spirits.  She was

always obedient,  but now she began to seem almost cheerful, to speak, and even laugh  occasionally just as

she used to.  Captain Zelotes patted himself  on  the back, figuratively.  His scheme had been a good one. 

And in Savannah, one afternoon, Jane managed to elude her father's  observation, to leave the schooner and to

disappear completely.  And  that night came a letter.  She and Miguel Carlos Speranza had  been in

correspondence all the time, how or through whose  connivance is a  mystery never disclosed.  He had come to

Savannah,  in accordance with  mutual arrangement; they had met, were married,  and had gone away  together. 

"I love you, Father," Jane wrote in the letter.  "I love you and  Mother so very, VERY much.  Oh, PLEASE

believe that!  But I love  him,  too.  And I could not give him up.  You will see why when you  know  him, really


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 16



Top




Page No 19


know him.  If it were not for you I should be SO  happy.  I  know you can't forgive me now, but some day I am

sure you  will forgive  us both." 

Captain Zelotes was far, far from forgiveness as he read that  letter.  His first mate, who was beside him when

he opened and read  it, was actually frightened when he saw the look on the skipper's  face.  "He went white,"

said the mate; "not pale, but white, same  as  a dead man, oror the underside of a flatfish, or somethin'.  'For

the  Lord sakes, Cap'n,' says I, 'what's the matter?'  He never  answered  me, stood starin' at the letter.  Then he

looked up, not  at me, but as  if somebody else was standin' there on t'other side  of the cabin  table.  'Forgive

him!' he says, kind of slow and under  his breath.  'I  won't forgive his black soul in hell.'  When I  heard him say

it I give  you my word my hair riz under my cap.  If  ever there was killin' in a  man's voice and in his looks

'twas in  Cap'n Lote's that night.  When I  asked him again what was the  matter he didn't answer any more than

he  had the first time.  A few  minutes afterwards he went into his  stateroom and shut the door.  I  didn't see him

again until the next  mornin'." 

Captain Zelotes made no attempt to follow the runaway couple.  He  did take pains to ascertain that they were

legally married, but  that  was all.  He left his schooner in charge of the mate at  Savannah and  journeyed north

to South Harniss and his wife.  A week  he remained at  home with her, then returned to the Olive S. and  took

up his command  and its duties as if nothing had happened.  But  what had happened  changed his whole life.  He

became more taciturn,  a trifle less  charitable, a little harder and more worldly.  Before  the catastrophe  he had

been interested in business success and the  making of money  chiefly because of his plans for his daughter's

future.  Now he worked  even harder because it helped him to forget.  He became sole owner of  the Olive S.,

then of other schooners.  People spoke of him as one  destined to become a wealthy man. 

Jane lived only a few years after her marriage.  She died at the  birth of her second child, who died with her.

Her first, a boy,  was  born a year after the elopement.  She wrote her mother to tell  that  news and Olive

answered the letter.  She begged permission of  her  husband to invite Jane and the baby to visit the old home.

At  first  Zelotes said no, flatly; the girl had made her bed, let her  lie in it.  But a year later he had so far

relented as to give  reluctant consent  for Jane and the child to come, provided her  condemned husband did not

accompany them.  "If that lowlived  Portygee sets foot on my premises,  so help me God, I'll kill him!"

declared the captain.  In his  vernacular all foreigners were  "Portygees." 

But Jane was as proud and stubborn as he.  Where her husband was  not welcome she would not go.  And a

little later she had gone on  the  longest of all journeys.  Speranza did not notify her parents  except  to send a

clipped newspaper account of her death and burial,  which  arrived a week after the latter had taken place.  The

news  prostrated  Olive, who was ill for a month.  Captain Zelotes bore  it, as he had  borne the other great

shock, with outward calm and  quiet.  Yet a year  afterward he suddenly announced his determination  of giving

up the sea  and his prosperous and growing shipping  business and of spending the  rest of his days on the

Cape. 

Olive was delighted, of course.  Richesthat is, more than a  comfortable competencyhad no temptations

for her.  The old house,  home of three generations of Snows, was painted, repaired and, to  some extent,

modernized.  For another year Captain Zelotes  "loafed,"  as he called it, although others might have considered

his activities  about the place anything but that.  At the end of  that year he  surprised every one by buying from

the heirs of the  estate the  business equipment of the late Eben Raymond, hardware  dealer and  lumber

merchant of South Harniss, said equipment  comprising an office,  a store and lumber yards near the railway

station.  "Got to have  somethin' to keep me from gettin'  barnacled," declared Captain Lote.  "There's enough

old hulks  rottin' at their moorin's down here as  'tis.  I don't know anything  about lumber and half as much

about  hardware, but I cal'late I can  learn."  As an aid in the learning  process he retained as  bookkeeper Laban

Keeler, who had acted in that  capacity for the  former proprietor. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 17



Top




Page No 20


The years slipped away, a dozen of them, as smoothly and lazily as  South Harniss years have always slipped.

Captain Zelotes was past  sixty now, but as vigorous as when forty, stubborn as ever, fond of  using

quarterdeck methods on shore and especially in townmeeting,  and very often in trouble in consequence.

He was a member of the  Board of Selectmen and was in the habit of characterizing those  whose  opinions

differed from his as "narrowminded."  They retorted  by  accusing him of being "pigheaded."  There was

some truth on  both  sides.  His detest of foreigners had not abated in the least. 

And then, in this December of the year 1910, fell as from a clear  sky the legacy of a grandson.  From Senor

Miguel Carlos Speranza  the  Snows had had no direct word, had received nothing save the  newspaper  clipping

already mentioned.  Olive had never seen him;  her husband had  seen him only on the occasion of the

memorable  interview in the hotel  room.  They never spoke of him, never  mentioned him to each other.

Occasionally, in the Boston  newspapers, his likeness in costume had  appeared amid the music  notes or

theatrical jottings.  But these had  not been as numerous  of late.  Of his son, their own daughter's child,  they

knew  nothing; he might be alive or he might be dead.  Sometimes  Olive  found herself speculating concerning

him, wondering if he was  alive, and if he resembled Jane.  But she put the speculation from  her thoughts; she

could not bear to bring back memories of the old  hopes and their bitter ending.  Sometimes Captain Lote at his

desk  in  the office of "Z. Snow Co., Lumber and Builders' Hardware,"  caught  himself dreaming of his idolized

daughter and thinking how  different  the future might have been for him had she married a  "white man," the

kind of man he had meant for her to marry.  There  might be  grandchildren growing up now, fine boys and

girls, to  visit the old  home at South Harniss.  "Ah hum!  Well! . . .  Labe,  how long has this  bill of Abner

Parker's been hangin' on?  For  thunder sakes, why don't  he pay up?  He must think we're runnin' a

meetin'house Christmas  tree." 

The letter from the lawyer had come first.  It was written in New  York, was addressed to "Captain Lotus

Snow," and began by taking  for  granted the fact that the recipient knew all about matters of  which he  knew

nothing.  Speranza was dead, so much was plain, and  the inference  was that he had been fatally injured in an

automobile  accident,  "particulars of which you have of course read in the  papers."  Neither  Captain Lote nor

his wife had read anything of  the kind in the papers.  The captain had been very busy of late and  had read little

except  political news, and Mrs. Snow never read of  murders and accidents,  their details at least.  She looked

up from  the letter, which her  husband had hastened home from the office to  bring her, with a  startled face. 

"Oh, Zelotes," she cried, "he's dead!" 

The captain nodded. 

"Seems so," he said.  "That part's plain enough, but go on.  The  rest of it is what I can't get a handhold on.

See what you make  of  the rest of it, Olive." 

The rest of it was to the effect that the writer, being Mr.  Speranza's business adviser, "that is to say, as much

or more so  than  any one else," had been called in at the time of the accident,  had  conferred with the injured

man, and had learned his last  wishes.  "He  expressed himself coherently concerning his son," went  on the

letter,  "and it is in regard to that son that I am asking an  interview with  you.  I should have written sooner, but

have been  engaged with matters  pertaining to Mr. Speranza's estate and  personal debts.  The latter  seem to be

large" 

"I'LL bet you!" observed Captain Zelotes, sententiously,  interrupting his wife's reading by pointing to this

sentence  with a  big forefinger. 

"'And the estate's affairs much tangled,'" went on Olive, reading  aloud.  "'It seems best that I should see you

concerning the boy at  once.  I don't know whether or not you are aware that he is at  school  in , New

York.  I am inclined to think that the estate  itself will  scarcely warrant the expense of his remaining there.


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 18



Top




Page No 21


Could you make it  convenient to come to New York and see me at  once?  Or, if not, I  shall be in Boston on

Friday of next week and  can you meet me there?  It seems almost impossible for me to come  to you just now,

and, of  course, you will understand that I am  acting as a sort of temporary  executor merely because Mr.

Speranza  was formerly my friend and not  because I have any pecuniary  interest in the settlement of his

affairs. 

"'Very truly yours, 

"'MARCUS W. WEISSMANN.'" 

"Weissman!  Another Portygee!" snorted Captain Lote. 

"Butbut what does it MEAN?" begged Mrs. Snow.  "Whywhy should  he want to see you, Zelotes?  And

the boywhywhy, that's HER  boy.  It's Janie's boy he must mean, Zelotes." 

Her husband nodded. 

"Hers and that blasted furriner's," he muttered.  "I suppose so." 

"Oh, DON'T speak that way, Zelotes!  Don't!  He's dead." 

Captain Lote's lips tightened.  "If he'd died twenty years ago  'twould have been better for all hands," he

growled. 

"Janie's boy!" repeated Olive slowly.  "Whywhy, he must be a big  boy now.  Almost grown up." 

Her husband did not speak.  He was pacing the floor, his hands in  his pockets. 

"And this man wants to see you about him," said Olive.  Then, after  a moment, she added timidly:  "Are you

goin', Zelotes?" 

"Goin'?  Where?" 

"To New York?  To see this lawyer man?" 

"I?  Not by a jugful!  What in blazes should I go to see him for?" 

"Wellwell, he wants you to, you know.  He wants to talk with you  about thethe boy." 

"Humph!" 

"It's her boy, Zelotes." 

"Humph!  Young Portygee!" 

"Don't, Zelotes!  Please! . . .  I know you can't forgive that  that man.  We can't either of us forgive him;

but" 

The captain stopped in his stride.  "Forgive him!" he repeated.  "Mother, don't talk like a fool.  Didn't he take

away the one thing  that I was workin' for, that I was plannin' for, that I was LIVIN'  for?  I" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 19



Top




Page No 22


She interrupted, putting a hand on his sleeve. 

"Not the only thing, dear," she said.  "You had me, you know." 

His expression changed.  He looked down at her and smiled. 

"That's right, old lady," he admitted.  "I had you, and thank the  Almighty for it.  Yes, I had you . . .  But," his

anger returning,  "when I think how that damned scamp stole our girl from us and then  neglected her and

killed her" 

"ZELOTES!  How you talk!  He DIDN'T kill her.  How can you!" 

"Oh, I don't mean he murdered her, of course.  But I'll bet all  I've got that he made her miserable.  Look here,

Mother, you and  she  used to write back and forth once in a while.  In any one of  those  letters did she ever say

she was happy?" 

Mrs. Snow's answer was somewhat equivocal.  "She never said she was  unhappy," she replied.  Her husband

sniffed and resumed his pacing  up  and down. 

After a little Olive spoke again. 

"New York IS a good ways," she said.  "Maybe 'twould be better for  you to meet this lawyer man in Boston.

Don't you think so?" 

"Bah!" 

Another interval.  Then:  "Zelotes?" 

"Yes," impatiently.  "What is it?" 

"It's her boy, after all, isn't it?  Our grandson, yours and mine.  Don't you thinkdon't you think it's your duty

to go, Zelotes?" 

Captain Lote stamped his foot. 

"For thunderation sakes, Olive, let up!" he commanded.  "You ought  to know by this time that there's one

thing I hate worse than doin'  my duty, that's bein' preached to about it.  Let up!  Don't you say  another word." 

She did not, having learned much by years of experience.  He said  the next word on the subject himself.  At

noon, when he came home  for  dinner, he said, as they rose from the table:  "Where's my  suitcase,  up attic?" 

"Why, yes, I guess likely 'tis.  Why?" 

Instead of answering he turned to the housekeeper, Mrs. Ellis. 

"Rachel," he said, "go up and get that case and fetch it down to  the bedroom, will you?  Hurry up!  Train

leaves at halfpast two  and  it's 'most one now." 

Both women stared at him.  Mrs. Ellis spoke first. 

"Why, Cap'n Lote," she cried; "be you goin' away?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 20



Top




Page No 23


Her employer's answer was crisp and very much to the point.  "I am  if I can get that case time enough to pack

it and make the train,"  he  observed.  "If you stand here askin' questions I probably shall  stay  to home." 

The housekeeper made a hasty exit by way of the back stairs.  Mrs.  Snow still gazed wonderingly at her

husband. 

"Zelotes," she faltered, "are youare you" 

"I'm goin' to New York on tonight's boat.  I've telegraphed that  that

WeissWeisswhatdoyoucallitthat Portygee lawyerthat  I'll be to his office tomorrow

mornin'." 

"But, Zelotes, we haven't scarcely talked about it, you and I, at  all.  You might have waited till he came to

Boston.  Why do you go  so  SOON?" 

The captain's heavy brows drew together. 

"You went to the dentist's last Friday," he said.  "Why didn't you  wait till next week?" 

"Whywhy, what a question!  My tooth ached and I wanted to have it  fixed quick as possible." 

"Umm, yes.  Well, this tooth aches and I want it fixed or hauled  out, one or t'other.  I want the thing off my

mind. . . .  Don't  TALK  to me?" he added, irritably.  "I know I'm a fool.  And," with  a  peremptory wave of the

hand, "don't you DARE say anything about  DUTY!" 

He was back again two days later.  His wife did not question him,  but waited for him to speak.  Those years of

experience already  mentioned had taught her diplomacy.  He looked at her and pulled  his  beard.  "Well," he

observed, when they were alone together, "I  saw  him." 

"Thethe boy?" eagerly. 

"No, no!  Course not!  The boy's at school somewhere up in New York  State; how could I see him!  I saw that

lawyer and I found out  aboutabout the other scamp.  He was killed in an auto accident,  drunk at the time, I

cal'late.  Nigh's I can gather he's been  drinkin' pretty heavy for the last six or seven years.  Always  lived  high,

same as his kind generally does, and spent money like  water, I  judgebut goin' down hill fast lately.  His

voice was  givin' out on  him and he realized it, I presume likely.  Now he's  dead and left  nothin' but trunks full

of stage clothes and  photographs and,"  contemptuously, "letters from fool women, and  debtsLord, yes!

debts  enough." 

"But the boy, Zelotes.  Janie's boy?" 

"He's been at this school place for pretty nigh ten years, so the  lawyer feller said.  That lawyer was a pretty

decent chap, too, for  a  furriner.  Seems he used to know thisSperanza rascalwhen  Speranza  was younger

and more decentif he ever was really decent,  which I  doubt.  But this lawyer man was his friend then and

about  the only one  he really had when he was hurt.  There was plenty of  makebelieve  friends hangin' on, like

pilotfish to a shark, for  what they could  get by spongin' on him, but real friends were  scarce." 

"And the boy" 

"For the Lord sakes, Mother, don't keep sayin' 'The boy,' 'the  boy,' over and over again like a talkin' machine!

Let me finish  about the father first.  This Weiserthingamajigthe lawyer,  had  quite a talk with Speranza


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 21



Top




Page No 24


afore he died, or while he was  dyin'; he  only lived a few hours after the accident and was out of  his head part

of that.  But he said enough to let Weisserer  Oh, why CAN'T I  remember that Portygee's name?to

let him know  that he'd like to have  him settle up what was left of his affairs,  and to send word to us

aboutabout the boy.  There!  I hope you  feel easier, Mother; I've  got 'round to 'the boy' at last." 

"But why did he want word sent to us, Zelotes?  He never wrote a  line to us in his life." 

"You bet he didn't!" bitterly; "he knew better.  Why did he want  word sent now?  The answer to that's easy

enough.  'Cause he wanted  to get somethin' out of us, that's the reason.  From what that  lawyer  could gather,

and from what he's found out since, there  ain't money  enough for the boy to stay another six weeks at that

school, or  anywhere else, unless the young feller earns it himself.  And, leavin'  us out of the count, there isn't a

relation this side  of the salt  pond.  There's probably a million or so over there in  Portygeeland,"  with a

derisive sniff; "those foreigners breed like  flies.  But THEY  don't count." 

"But did he want word sent to us about the" 

"Sshh!  I'm tellin' you, Olive, I'm tellin' you.  He wanted word  sent because he was in hopes that weyou and

I, Motherwould take  that son of his in at our house here and give him a home.  The  cheek  of it!  After what

he'd done to you and me, blast him!  The  solid  brass nerve of it!" 

He stormed up and down the room.  His wife did not seem nearly so  much disturbed as he at the thought of

the Speranza presumption.  She  looked anxiousyes, but she looked eager, too, and her gaze  was fixed  upon

her husband's face. 

"Oh!" she said, softly.  "Oh! . . .  Andand what did you say,  Zelotes?" 

"What did I say?  What do you suppose I said?  I said no, and I  said it good and loud, too." 

Olive made no comment.  She turned away her head, and the captain,  who now in his turn was watching her,

saw a suspicious gleam, as of  moisture, on her cheek.  He stopped his pacing and laid a hand on  her  shoulder. 

"There, there, Mother," he said, gently.  "Don't cry.  He's  comin'." 

"Comin'?"  She turned pale.  "Comin'?" she repeated.  "Who?" 

"That boy! . . .  Sshh! shh!" impatiently.  "Now don't go askin' me  questions or tellin' me what I just said I said.

I SAID the right  thing, but  Well, hang it all, what else could I DO?  I wrote the  boyAlberta letter and

I wrote the boss of the school another  one.  I sent a check along for expenses and  Well, he'll be here  'most

any day now, I shouldn't wonder.  And WHAT in the devil are  we goin'  to do with him?" 

His wife did not reply to this outburst.  She was trembling with  excitement. 

"Isis his name Albert?" she faltered. 

"Umhm.  Seems so." 

"Why, that's your middle name!  Do youdo you s'pose Janie could  have named him forfor you?" 

"I don't know." 

"Of course," with some hesitation, "it may be she didn't.  If she'd  named him Zelotes" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER II 22



Top




Page No 25


"Good heavens, woman!  Isn't one name like that enough in the  family?  Thank the Lord we're spared two of

'em!  But there! he's  comin'.  And when he gets herethen what?" 

Olive put her arm about her big husband. 

"I hopeyes, I'm sure you did right, Zelotes, and that all's goin'  to turn out to be for the best." 

"Are you?  Well, _I_ ain't sure, not by a thousand fathom." 

"He's Janie's boy." 

"Yes.  And he's that playactor's boy, too.  One Speranza pretty  nigh ruined your life and mine, Olive.  What'll

this one do? . . .  Well, God knows, I suppose likely, but He won't tell.  All we can  do  is wait and see.  I tell you

honest I ain't very hopeful." 

CHAPTER III

A brisk rap on the door; then a man's voice. 

"Hello, there!  Wake up." 

Albert rolled over, opened one eye, then the other and raised  himself on his elbow. 

"Eh?  Whwhat?" he stammered. 

"Seven o'clock!  Time to turn out." 

The voice was his grandfather's.  "Ohoh, all right!" he answered. 

"Understand me, do you?" 

"Yesyes, sir.  I'll be right down." 

The stairs creaked as Captain Zelotes descended them.  Albert  yawned cavernously, stretched and slid one

foot out of bed.  He  drew  it back instantly, however, for the sensation was that of  having  thrust it into a bucket

of cold water.  The room had been  cold the  previous evening; plainly it was colder still now.  The  temptation

was  to turn back and go to sleep again, but he fought  against it.  Somehow  he had a feeling that to disregard

his  grandfather's summons would be  poor diplomacy. 

He set his teeth and, tossing back the bed clothes, jumped to the  floor.  Then he jumped again, for the floor

was like ice.  The  window  was wide open and he closed it, but there was no warm  radiator to  cuddle against

while dressing.  He missed his  compulsory morning  shower, a miss which did not distress him  greatly.  He

shook himself  into his clothes, soused his head and  neck in a basin of ice water  poured from a pitcher, and,

before  brushing his hair, looked out of  the window. 

It was a sharp winter morning.  The wind had gone down, but before  subsiding it had blown every trace of

mist or haze from the air,  and  from his windowsill to the horizon every detail was clean cut  and  distinct.  He

was looking out, it seemed, from the back of the  house.  The roof of the kitchen extension was below him and,

to the  right,  the high roof of the barn.  Over the kitchen roof and to the  left he  saw little rolling hills, valleys,

cranberry swamps, a  pond.  A road  wound in and out and, scattered along it, were  houses, mostly white  with


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 23



Top




Page No 26


green blinds, but occasionally varied by  the gray of unpainted,  weathered shingles.  A long, lowspreading

building a half mile off  looked as if it might be a summer hotel,  now closed and shuttered.  Beyond it was a

cluster of gray shanties  and a gleam of water,  evidently a wharf and a miniature harbor.  And, beyond that, the

deep,  brilliant blue of the sea.  Brown and  blue were the prevailing colors,  but, here and there, clumps and

groves of pines gave splashes of  green. 

There was an exhilaration in the crisp air.  He felt an unwonted  liveliness and a desire to be active which

would have surprised some  of his teachers at the school he had just left.  The depression of  spirits of which he

had been conscious the previous night had  disappeared along with his premonitions of unpleasantness.  He felt

optimistic this morning.  After giving his curls a rake with the  comb, he opened the door and descended the

steep stairs to the lower  floor. 

His grandmother was setting the breakfast table.  He was a little  surprised to see her doing it.  What was the

use of having servants  if one did the work oneself?  But perhaps the housekeeper was ill. 

"Good morning," he said. 

Mrs. Snow, who had not heard him enter, turned and saw him.  When  he crossed the room, she kissed him on

the cheek. 

"Good morning, Albert," she said.  "I hope you slept well." 

Albert replied that he had slept very well indeed.  He was a trifle  disappointed that she made no comment on

his promptness in answering  his grandfather's summons.  He felt such promptness deserved  commendation.

At school they rang two bells at ten minute intervals,  thus giving a fellow a second chance.  It had been a

point of senior  etiquette to accept nothing but that second chance.  Here,  apparently, he was expected to jump

at the first.  There was a  matter  of course about his grandmother's attitude which was  disturbing. 

She went on setting the table, talking as she did so. 

"I'm real glad you did sleep," she said.  "Some folks can hardly  ever sleep the first night in a strange room.

ZelotesI mean your  grandpa's gone out to see to the horse and feed the hens and the  pig.  He'll be in

pretty soon.  Then we'll have breakfast.  I  suppose  you're awful hungry." 

As a matter of fact he was not very hungry.  Breakfast was always a  more or less perfunctory meal with him.

But he was surprised to  see  the variety of eatables upon that table.  There were cookies  there,  and doughnuts,

and even half an apple pie.  Pie for  breakfast!  It had  been a newspaper joke at which he had laughed  many

times.  But it  seemed not to be a joke here, rather a solemn  reality. 

The kitchen door opened and Mrs. Ellis put in her head.  To  Albert's astonishment the upper part of the head,

beginning just  above the brows, was swathed in a huge bandage.  The lower part was  a  picture of hopeless

misery. 

"Has Cap'n Lote come in yet?" inquired the housekeeper, faintly. 

"Not yet, Rachel," replied Mrs. Snow.  "He'll be here in a minute,  though.  Albert's down, so you can begin

takin' up the things." 

The head disappeared.  A sigh of complete wretchedness drifted in  as the door closed.  Albert looked at his

grandmother in alarm. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 24



Top




Page No 27


"Is she sick?" he faltered. 

"Who?  Rachel?  No, she ain't exactly sick . . .  Dear me!  Where  did I put that clean napkin?" 

The boy stared at the kitchen door.  If his grandmother had said  the housekeeper was not exactly dead he

might have understood.  But  to say she was not exactly sick 

"Butbut what makes her look so?" he stammered.  "Andand what's  she got that on her head for?  And she

groaned!  Why, she MUST be  sick!" 

Mrs. Snow, having found the clean napkin, laid it beside her  husband's plate. 

"No," she said calmly.  "It's one of her sympathetic attacks;  that's what she calls 'em, sympathetic attacks.  She

has 'em every  time Laban Keeler starts in on one of his periodics.  It's nerves,  I  suppose.  Cap'n Zelotesyour

grandfathersays it's everlastin'  foolishness.  Whatever 'tis, it's a nuisance.  And she's so  sensible  other times,

too." 

Albert was more puzzled than ever.  Why in the world Mrs. Ellis  should tie up her head and groan because the

little Keeler person  had  gone on a spree was beyond his comprehension. 

His grandmother enlightened him a trifle. 

"You see," she went on, "she and Laban have been engaged to be  married ever since they were young folks.

It's Laban's weakness  for  liquor that's kept 'em apart so long.  She won't marry him  while he  drinks and he

keeps swearin' off and then breaking down.  He's a good  man, too; an awful good man and capable as all

getout  when he's  sober.  Lately that is, for the last seven or eight  years, beginnin'  with the time when that

lecturer on mesmerism and  telegraphyno,  telepathythoughttransfers and suchwas at the  town

hallRachel  has been havin' these sympathetic attacks of  hers.  She declares that  alcoholtakin' is a disease

and that Laban  suffers when he's tipsy and  that she and he are so bound up  together that she suffers just the

same as he does.  I must say I  never noticed him sufferin' very much,  not at the beginnin,'  anyhowacts more

as he was havin' a good  timebut she seems to.  I don't wonder you smile," she added.  "'Tis  funny, in a way,

and  it's queer that such a practical, commonsense  woman as Rachel  Ellis is, should have such a notion.  It's

hard on us,  though.  Don't say anything to her about it, and don't laugh at her,  whatever you do." 

Albert wanted to laugh very much.  "But, Mrs. Snow" he began. 

"Mercy sakes alive!  You ain't goin' to call me 'Mrs. Snow,' I  hope." 

"No, of course not.  But, Grandmother why do you and Captainyou  and Grandfather keep her and Keeler if

they are so much trouble?  Why  don't you let them go and get someone else?" 

"Let 'em go?  Get someone else!  Why, we COULDN'T get anybody else,  anyone who would be like them.

They're almost a part of our  family;  that is, Rachel is, she's been here since goodness knows  when.  And,

when he's sober Laban almost runs the lumber business.  Besides,  they're nice folksalmost always." 

Plainly the ways of South Harniss were not the ways of the world he  had known.  Certainly these people were

"Rubes" and queer Rubes,  too.  Then he remembered that two of them were his grandparents and  that  his

immediate future was, so to speak, in their hands.  The  thought  was not entirely comforting or delightful.  He

was still  pondering  upon it when his grandfather came in from the barn. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 25



Top




Page No 28


The captain said good morning in the same way he had said good  night, that is, he and Albert shook hands

and the boy was again  conscious of the gaze which took him in from head to foot and of  the  quiet twinkle in

the gray eyes. 

"Sleep well, son?" inquired Captain Zelotes. 

"Yes . . .  Yes, sir." 

"That's good.  I judged you was makin' a pretty good try at it when  I thumped on your door this mornin'.

Somethin' new for you to be  turned out at seven, eh?" 

"No, sir." 

"Eh?  It wasn't?" 

"No, sir.  The rising bell rang at seven up at school.  We were  supposed to be down at breakfast at a quarter

past." 

"Humph!  You were, eh?  Supposed to be?  Does that mean that you  were there?" 

"Yes, sir." 

There was a surprised look in the gray eyes now, a fact which  Albert noticed with inward delight.  He had

taken one "rise" out  of  his grandfather, at any rate.  He waited, hoping for another  opportunity, but it did not

come.  Instead they sat down to  breakfast. 

Breakfast, in spite of the morning sunshine at the windows, was  somewhat gloomy.  The homesickness,

although not as acute as on the  previous night, was still in evidence.  Albert felt lost, out of  his  element,

lonely.  And, to add a touch of real miserableness,  the  housekeeper served and ate like a near relative of the

deceased  at a  funeral feast.  She moved slowly, she sighed heavily, and the  bandage  upon her forehead

loomed large and portentous.  When spoken  to she  seldom replied before the third attempt.  Captain Zelotes

lost  patience. 

"Have another egg?" he roared, brandishing the spoon containing it  at arm's length and almost under her nose.

"Egg!  Egg!  EGG!  If  you  can't hear it, smell it.  Only answer, for heaven sakes!" 

The effect of this outburst was obviously not what he had hoped.  Mrs. Ellis stared first at the egg quivering

before her face, then  at  the captain.  Then she rose and marched majestically to the  kitchen.  The door closed,

but a heartrending sniff drifted in  through the  crack.  Olive laid down her knife and fork. 

"There!" she exclaimed, despairingly.  "Now see what you've done.  Oh, Zelotes, how many times have I told

you you've got to treat her  tactful when she's this way?" 

Captain Lote put the egg back in the bowl. 

"DAMN!" he observed, with intense enthusiasm. 

His wife shook her head. 

"Swearin' don't help it a mite, either," she declared.  "Besides I  don't know what Albert here must think of

you."  Albert, who,  between  astonishment and a wild desire to laugh, was in a critical  condition,  appeared


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 26



Top




Page No 29


rather embarrassed.  His grandfather looked at  him and smiled  grimly. 

"I cal'late one damn won't scare him to death," he observed.  "Maybe he's heard somethin' like it afore.  Or do

they say, 'Oh,  sugar!' up at that school you come from?" he added. 

Albert, not knowing how to reply, looked more embarrassed than  ever.  Olive seemed on the point of

weeping. 

"Oh, Zelotes, how CAN you!" she wailed.  "And today, of all days!  His very first mornin'!" 

Captain Lote relented. 

"There, there, Mother!" he said.  "I'm sorry.  Forget it.  Sorry if  I shocked you, Albert.  There's times when

saltwater language is  the  only thing that seems to help me out . . .  Well, Mother, what  next?  What'll we do

now?" 

"You know just as well as I do, Zelotes.  There's only one thing  you can do.  That's go out and beg her pardon

this minute.  There's  a  dozen places she could get right here in South Harniss without  turnin'  her hand over.

And if she should leave I don't know WHAT  I'd do." 

"Leave!  She ain't goin' to leave any more'n than the ship's cat's  goin' to jump overboard.  She's been here so

long she wouldn't know  how to leave if she wanted to." 

"That don't make any difference.  The pitcher that goes to the  wellerer" 

She had evidently forgotten the rest of the proverb.  Her husband  helped her out. 

"Flocks together or gathers no moss, or somethin', eh?  All right,  Mother, don't fret.  There ain't really any

occasion to, considerin'  we've been through somethin' like this at least once every six  months  for ten years." 

"Zelotes, won't you PLEASE go and ask her pardon?" 

The captain pushed back his chair.  "I'll be hanged if it ain't a  healthy note," he grumbled, "when the skipper

has to go and  apologize  to the cook because the cook's made a fool of herself!  I'd like to  know what kind of

rum Labe drinks.  I never saw any but  his kind that  would go to somebody else's head.  Two people gettin'

tight and only  one of 'em drinkin' is somethin'" 

He disappeared into the kitchen, still muttering.  Mrs. Snow smiled  feebly at her grandson. 

"I guess you think we're funny folks, Albert," she said.  "But  Rachel is one hired help in a thousand and she

has to be treated  just  so." 

Five minutes later Cap'n 'Lote returned.  He shrugged his shoulders  and sat down at his place. 

"All right, Mother, all right," he observed.  "I've been heavin'  ile on the troubled waters and the sea's

smoothin' down.  She'll be  kind and condescendin' enough to eat with us in a minute or so." 

She was.  She came into the diningroom with the air of a saint  going to martyrdom and the remainder of the

meal was eaten by the  quartet almost in silence.  When it was over the captain said: 

"Well, Al, feel like walkin', do you?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 27



Top




Page No 30


"Why, why, yes, sir, I guess so." 

"Humph!  You don't seem very wild at the prospect.  Walkin' ain't  much in your line, maybe.  More used to

autoin', perhaps?" 

Mrs. Snow put in a word.  "Don't talk so, Zelotes," she said.  "He'll think you're makin' fun of him." 

"Who?  Me?  Not a bit of it.  Well, Al, do you want to walk down to  the lumber yard with me?" 

The boy hesitated.  The quiet note of sarcasm in his grandfather's  voice was making him furiously angry once

more, just as it had done  on the previous night. 

"Do you want me to?" he asked, shortly. 

"Why, yes, I cal'late I do." 

Albert, without another word, walked to the hatrack in the hall  and began putting on his coat.  Captain Lote

watched him for a  moment  and then put on his own. 

"We'll be back to dinner, Mother," he said.  "Heave ahead, Al, if  you're ready." 

There was little conversation between the pair during the half mile  walk to the office and yards of "Z. Snow

and Co., Lumber and  Builders' Hardware."  Only once did the captain offer a remark.  That  was just as they

came out by the big posts at the entrance to  the  driveway.  Then he said: 

"Al, I don't want you to get the idea from what happened at the  table just nowthat foolishness about Rachel

Ellisthat your  grandmother ain't a sensible woman.  She is, and there's no better  one on earth.  Don't let that

fact slip your mind." 

Albert, somewhat startled by the abruptness of the observation,  looked up in surprise.  He found the gray eyes

looking down at him. 

"I noticed you lookin' at her," went on his grandfather, "as if you  was kind of wonderin' whether to laugh at

her or pity her.  You  needn't do either.  She's kindhearted and that makes her put up  with  Rachel's silliness.

Then, besides, Rachel herself is common  sense and  practical ninetenths of the time.  It's always a good  idea,

son, to  sail one v'yage along with a person before you decide  whether to class  'em as A. B. or just

roustabout." 

The blood rushed to the boy's face.  He felt guilty and the feeling  made him angrier than ever. 

"I don't see why," he burst out, indignantly, "you should say I was  laughing atat Mrs. Snow" 

"At your grandmother." 

"Wellyesat my grandmother.  I don't see why you should say  that.  I wasn't." 

"Wasn't you?  Good!  I'm glad of it.  I wouldn't, anyhow.  She's  liable to be about the best friend you'll have in

this world." 

To Albert's mind flashed the addition:  "Better than you, that  means," but he kept it to himself. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 28



Top




Page No 31


The lumber yards were on a spur track not very far from the railway  station where he had spent that miserable

half hour the previous  evening.  The darkness then had prevented his seeing them.  Not  that  he would have

been greatly interested if he had seen them, nor  was he  more interested now, although his grandfather took

him on a  personally  conducted tour between the piles of spruce and pine and  hemlock and  pointed out which

was which and added further details.  "Those are two  by fours," he said.  Or, "Those are larger joist,  different

sizes."  "This is good, clear stock, as good a lot of  white pine as we've got  hold of for a long spell."  He gave

particulars concerning the  "handiest way to drive a team" to one or  the other of the piles.  Albert found it

rather boring.  He longed  to speak concerning  enormous lumber yards he had seen in New York  or Chicago or

elsewhere.  He felt almost a pitying condescension  toward this provincial  grandparent who seemed to think

his little  piles of "two by fours" so  important. 

It was much the same, perhaps a little worse, when they entered the  hardware shop and the office.  The rows

and rows of little drawers  and boxes, each with samples of its contentsscrews, or bolts, or  hooks, or

knobsaffixed to its front, were even more boring than  the  lumber piles.  There was a countryfied,

middleaged person in  overalls  sweeping out the shop and Captain Zelotes introduced him. 

"Albert," he said, "this is Mr. Issachar Price, who works around  the place here.  Issy, let me make you

acquainted with my grandson,  Albert." 

Mr. Price, looking over his spectacles, extended a horny hand and  observed:  "Yus, yus.  Pleased to meet you,

Albert.  I've heard  tell  of you." 

Albert's private appraisal of "Issy" was that the latter was  another funny Rube.  Whatever Issy's estimate of his

employer's  grandson might have been, he, also, kept it to himself. 

Captain Zelotes looked about the shop and glanced into the office. 

"Humph!" he grunted.  "No sign or symptoms of Laban this mornin', I  presume likely?" 

Issachar went on with his sweeping. 

"Nary one," was his laconic reply. 

"Humph!  Heard anything about him?" 

Mr. Price moistened his broom in a bucket of water.  "I see Tim  Kelley on my way down street," he said.

"Tim said he run afoul of  Laban along about ten last night.  Said he cal'lated Labe was on  his  way.  He was

singin' 'Hyannis on the Cape' and so Tim figgered  he'd  got a pretty fair start already." 

The captain shook his head.  "Tut, tut, tut!" he muttered.  "Well,  that means I'll have to do office work for the

next week or so.  Humph!  I declare it's too bad just now when I was countin' on him  to"  He did not finish

the sentence, but instead turned to his  grandson and said:  "Al, why don't you look around the hardware  store

here while I open the mail and the safe.  If there's anything  you see  you don't understand Issy'll tell you about

it." 

He went into the office.  Albert sauntered listlessly to the window  and looked out.  So far as not understanding

anything in the shop  was  concerned he was quite willing to remain in ignorance.  It did  not  interest him in the

least.  A moment later he felt a touch on  his  elbow.  He turned, to find Mr. Price standing beside him. 

"I'm all ready to tell you about it now," volunteered the unsmiling  Issy.  "Sweepin's all finished up." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 29



Top




Page No 32


Albert was amused.  "I guess I can get along," he said. 

"Don't worry." 

"_I_ ain't worried none.  I don't believe in worryin'; worryin'  don't do folks no good, the way I look at it.  But

long's Cap'n  Lote  wants me to tell you about the hardware I'd ruther do it now,  than any  time.  Henry

Cahoon's team'll be here for a load of lath  in about ten  minutes or so, and then I'll have to leave you.  This

here's the shelf  where we keep the buttshinges, you understand.  Brass along here, and  iron here.  Got quite

a stock, ain't we." 

He took the visitor's arm in his mighty paw and led him from  shelves to drawers and from drawers to boxes,

talking all the time,  so the boy thought, "like a catalogue."  Albert tried gently to  break  away several times and

yawned often, but yawns and hints were  quite  lost on his guide, who was intent only upon the businessand

victimin hand.  At the window looking across toward the main road  Albert paused longest.  There was a girl

in sightshe looked, at  that distance, as if she might be a rather pretty girland the  young  man was

languidly interested.  He had recently made the  discovery that  pretty girls may be quite interesting; and,

moreover,  one or two of  them whom he had met at the school danceswhen the  young ladies from  the

Misses Bradshaws' seminary had come over, duly  guarded and  chaperoned, to onestep and foxtrot with the

young  gentlemen of the  schoolone or two of these young ladies had  intimated a certain  interest in him.  So

the feminine possibility  across the road  attracted his noticeonly slightly, of course; the  sophisticated

metropolitan notice is not easily arousedbut still,  slightly. 

"Come on, come on," urged Issachar Price.  "I ain't begun to show  ye the whole of it yet . . .  Eh?  Oh, Lord,

there comes Cahoon's  team now!  Well, I got to go.  Show you the rest some other time.  So  long . . .  Eh?  Cap'n

Lote's callin' you, ain't he?" 

Albert went into the office in response to his grandfather's call  to find the latter seated at an oldfashioned

rolltop desk, piled  with papers. 

"I've got to go down to the bank, Al," he said.  "Some business  about a note that Laban ought to be here to see

to, but ain't.  I'll  be back pretty soon.  You just stay here and wait for me.  You  might  be lookin' over the books,

if you want to.  I took 'em out of  the safe  and they're on Labe's desk there," pointing to the high  standing desk

by the window.  "They're worth lookin' at, if only to  see how neat  they're kept.  A set of books like that is an

example  to any young  man.  You might be lookin' 'em over." 

He hurried out.  Albert smiled condescendingly and, instead of  looking over Mr. Keeler's books, walked over

to the window and  looked  out of that.  The girl was not in sight now, but she might  be soon.  At any rate

watching for her was as exciting as any  amusement he  could think of about that dull hole.  Ah hum! he

wondered how the  fellows were at school. 

The girl did not reappear.  Signs of animation along the main road  were limited.  One or two men went by,

then a group of children  obviously on their way to school.  Albert yawned again, took the  silver cigarette case

from his pocket and looked longingly at its  contents.  He wondered what his grandfather's ideas might be on

the  tobacco question.  But his grandfather was not there then . . .  and  he might not return for some time . . .

and . . .  He took a  cigarette  from the case, tapped, with careful carelessness, its end  upon the  casehe would

not have dreamed of smoking without first  going through  the tapping processlighted the cigarette and blew

a  large and  satisfying cloud.  Between puffs he sang: 

"To you, beautiful lady,  I raise my eyes.  My heart, beautiful  lady,  To your heart cries:  Come, come, beautiful

lady,  To  Paradise,  As the sweet, sweet'" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 30



Top




Page No 33


Some one behind him said:  "Excuse me."  The appeal to the  beautiful lady broke off in the middle, and he

whirled about to  find  the girl whom he had seen across the road and for whose  reappearance  he had been

watching at the window, standing in the  office doorway.  He looked at her and she looked at him.  He was

embarrassed.  She did  not seem to be. 

"Excuse me," she said:  "Is Mr. Keeler here?" 

She was a pretty girl, so his hasty estimate made when he had first  sighted her was correct.  Her hair was dark,

so were her eyes, and  her cheeks were becomingly colored by the chill of the winter air.  She was a country

girl, her hat and coat proved that; not that they  were in bad taste or unbecoming, but they were simple and

their  style  perhaps nearer to that which the young ladies of the Misses  Bradshaws'  seminary had worn the

previous winter.  All this Albert  noticed in  detail later on.  Just then the particular point which  attracted his

embarrassed attention was the look in the dark eyes.  They seemed to  have almost the same disturbing quality

which he had  noticed in his  grandfather's gray ones.  Her mouth was very proper  and grave, but her  eyes

looked as if she were laughing at him. 

Now to be laughed at by an attractive young lady is disturbing and  unpleasant.  It is particularly so when the

laughter is from the  provinces and the laugheeso to speaka dignified and sophisticated  city man.  Albert

summoned the said dignity and sophistication to  his  rescue, knocked the ashes from his cigarette and said,

haughtily: 

"I beg your pardon?" 

"Is Mr. Keeler here?" repeated the girl. 

"No, he is out." 

"Will he be back soon, do you think?" 

Recollections of Mr. Price's recent remark concerning the missing  bookkeeper's "good start" came to Albert's

mind and he smiled,  slightly.  "I should say not," he observed, with delicate irony. 

"Is IssyI mean Mr. Price, busy?" 

"He's out in the yard there somewhere, I believe.  Would you like  to have me call him?" 

"Why, yesif you pleasesir." 

The "sir" was flattering, if it was sincere.  He glanced at her.  The expression of the mouth was as grave as

ever, but he was still  uncertain about those eyes.  However, he was disposed to give her  the  benefit of the

doubt, so, stepping to the side door of the  officethat leading to the yardshe opened it and shouted:

"Price!  . . .  Hey, Price!" 

There was no answer, although he could hear Issachar's voice and  another above the rattle of lath bundles. 

"Price!" he shouted, again.  "Priice!" 

The rattling ceased.  Then, in the middle distance, above a pile of  "two by fours," appeared Issachar's head,

the features agitated and  the forehead bedewed with the moisture of honest toil. 

"Huh?" yelled Issy.  "What's the matter?  Be you hollerin' to me?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 31



Top




Page No 34


"Yes.  There's some one here wants to see you." 

"Hey?" 

"I say there's some one here who wants to see you." 

"What for?" 

"I don't know." 

"Well, find out, can't ye?  I'm busy." 

Was that a laugh which Albert heard behind him?  He turned around,  but the young lady's face wore the same

grave, even demure,  expression. 

"What do you want to see him for?" he asked. 

"I wanted to buy something." 

"She wants to buy something," repeated Albert, shouting. 

"Hey?" 

"She wants toBUYsomething."  It was humiliating to have to  scream in this way. 

"Buy?  Buy what?" 

"What do you want to buy?" 

"A hook, that's all.  A hook for our kitchen door.  Would you mind  asking him to hurry?  I haven't much time." 

"She wants a hook." 

"Eh?  We don't keep books.  What kind of a book?" 

"Not bookHOOK.  HOOK!  Oh, great Scott!  Hook!  HOOK!  Hook  for  a door!  And she wants you to

hurry." 

"Eh?  Well, I can't hurry now for nobody.  I got to load these  laths and that's all there is to it.  Can't you wait on

him?"  Evidently the customer's sex had not yet been made clear to the  Price  understanding.  "You can get a

hook for him, can't ye?  You  know where  they be, I showed ye.  Ain't forgot so soon, 'tain't  likely." 

The head disappeared behind the "two by fours."  Its face was red,  but no redder than Mr. Speranza's at that

moment. 

"Fool rube!" he snorted, disgustedly. 

"Excuse me, but you've dropped your cigarette," observed the young  lady. 

Albert savagely slammed down the window and turned away.  The  dropped cigarette stump lay where it had

fallen, smudging and  smelling. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 32



Top




Page No 35


His caller looked at it and then at him. 

"I'd pick it up, if I were you," she said.  "Cap'n Snow HATES  cigarettes." 

Albert, his dignity and indignation forgotten, returned her look  with one of anxiety. 

"Does he, honest?" he asked. 

"Yes.  He hates them worse than anything." 

The cigarette stump was hastily picked up by its owner. 

"Where'll I put it?" he asked, hurriedly. 

"Why don't you  Oh, don't put it in your pocket!  It will set you  on fire.  Put it in the stove, quick." 

Into the stove it went, all but its fragrance, which lingered. 

"Do you think you COULD find me that hook?" asked the girl. 

"I'll try.  _I_ don't know anything about the confounded things." 

"Oh!" innocently.  "Don't you?" 

"No, of course I don't.  Why should I?" 

"Aren't you working here?" 

"Here?  Work HERE?  ME?  Well, IshouldsayNOT!" 

"Oh, excuse me.  I thought you must be a new bookkeeper, oror a  new partner, or something." 

Albert regarded her intently and suspiciously for some seconds  before making another remark.  She was as

demurely grave as ever,  but  his suspicions were again aroused.  However, she WAS pretty,  there  could be no

doubt about that. 

"Maybe I can find the hook for you," he said.  "I can try, anyway." 

"Oh, thank you ever so much," gratefully.  "It's VERY kind of you  to take so much trouble." 

"Oh," airily, "that's all right.  Come on; perhaps we can find it  together." 

They were still looking when Mr. Price came panting in. 

"Whew!" he observed, with emphasis.  "If anybody tells you heavin'  bundles of laths aboard a truckwagon

ain't hard work you tell him  for me he's a liar, will ye.  Whew!  And I had to do the heft of  everything, 'cause

Cahoon sent that onearmed nephew of his to  drive  the team.  A healthy lot of good a onearmed man is to

help  heave  lumber!  I says to him, says I:  'What in time did'  Eh?  Why, hello,  Helen!  Good mornin'.  Land

sakes! you're out airly,  ain't ye?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 33



Top




Page No 36


The young lady nodded.  "Good morning, Issachar," she said.  "Yes,  I am pretty early and I'm in a dreadful

hurry.  The wind blew our  kitchen door back against the house last night and broke the hook.  I  promised

Father I would run over here and get him a new one and  bring  it back to him before I went to school.  And it's

quarter to  nine  now." 

"Land sakes, so 'tis!  Ain'tererwhat'shisnameAlbert here,  found it for you yet?  He ain't no kind

of a hand to find things,  is  he?  We'll have to larn him better'n that.  Yes indeed!" 

Albert laughed, sarcastically.  He was about to make a satisfyingly  crushing reproof to this piece of

impertinence when Mr. Price began  to sniff the air. 

"What in tunket?" he demanded.  "Sn'f!  Sn'f!  Who's been smokin'  in here?  And cigarettes, too, by crimus!

Sn'f!  Sn'f!  Yes, sir,  cigarettes, by crimustee!  Who's been smokin' cigarettes in here?  If  Cap'n Lote knew

anybody'd smoked a cigarette in here I don't  know's he  wouldn't kill 'em.  Who done it?" 

Albert shivered.  The girl with the dark blue eyes flashed a quick  glance at him.  "I think perhaps someone

went by the window when it  was open just now," she suggested.  "Perhaps they were smoking and  the smoke

blew in." 

"Eh?  Well, maybe so.  Must have been a mighty rank cigarette to  smell up the whole premises like this just

goin' past a window.  Whew!  Gosh! no wonder they say them things are rank pison.  I'd  sooner  smoke

skunkcabbage myself; 'twouldn't smell no worse and  'twould be a  dum sight safer.  Whew! . . .  Well, Helen,

there's  about the kind of  hook I cal'late you need.  Fifteen cents 'll let  you out on that.  Cheap enough for half

the money, eh?  Give my  respects to your pa,  will ye.  Tell him that sermon he preached  last Sunday was fine,

but  I'd like it better if he'd laid it on to  the Univer'lists a little  harder.  Folks that don't believe in hell  don't

deserve no  consideration, 'cordin' to my notion.  So long,  Helen . . .  Oh say,"  he added, as an afterthought, "I

guess you  and Albert ain't been  introduced, have ye?  Albert, this is Helen  Kendall, she's our  Orthodox

minister's daughter.  Helen, this young  feller is  Alberterer  Consarn it, I've asked Cap'n Lote that  name

a dozen  times if I have once!  What is it, anyway?" 

"Speranza," replied the owner of the name. 

"That's it, Sperandy.  This is Albert Sperandy, Cap'n Lote's  grandson." 

Albert and Miss Kendall shook hands. 

"Thanks," said the former, gratefully and significantly. 

The young lady smiled. 

"Oh, you're welcome," she said.  I knew who you were all the time  or I guessed who you must be.  Cap'n

Snow told me you were coming." 

She went out.  Issachar, staring after her, chuckled admiringly.  "Smartest girl in THIS town," he observed,

with emphasis.  "Head of  her class up to high school and only sixteen and threequarters at  that." 

Captain Zelotes came bustling in a few minutes later.  He went to  his desk, paying little attention to his

grandson.  The latter  loitered idly up and down the office and hardware shop, watching  Issachar wait on

customers or rush shouting into the yard to attend  to the wants of others there.  Plainly this was Issachar's busy

day. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 34



Top




Page No 37


"Crimus!" he exclaimed, returning from one such excursion and  mopping his forehead.  "This doin' two men's

work ain't no fun.  Every  time Labe goes on a time seem's if trade was brisker'n it's  been for a  month.  Seems

as if all creation and part of East  Harniss had been  hangin' back waitin' till he had a shade on 'fore  they come

to trade.  Makes a feller feel like votin' the  Prohibition ticket.  I WOULD vote  it, by crimustee, if I thought

'twould do any good.  'Twouldn't  though; Labe would take to  drinkin' bay rum or Florida water or  somethin',

same as Hoppy  Rogers done when he was alive.  Jim Young  says he went into Hoppy's  barbershop once and

there was Hoppy with a  bottle of a new kind of  hairtonic in his hand.  'Drummer that was  here left it for a

sample,' says Hoppy.  'Wanted me to try it and, if  I liked it, he  cal'lated maybe I'd buy some.  I don't think I

shall,  though,' he  says; 'don't taste right to me.'  Yes, sir, Jim Young  swears that's  true.  Wan't enough

snakekiller in that hair tonic to  suit Hoppy.  I  Yes, Cap'n Lote, what is it?  Want me, do ye?" 

But the captain did not, as it happened, want Mr. Price at that  time.  It was Albert whose name he had called.

The boy went into  the  office and his grandfather rose and shut the door. 

"Sit down, Al," he said, motioning toward a chair.  When his  grandson had seated himself Captain Zelotes

tilted back his own  desk  chair upon its springs and looked at him. 

"Well, son," he said, after a moment, "what do you think of it?" 

"Think of it?  I don't know exactly what" 

"Of the place here.  Shop, yards, the whole business.  Z. Snow and  Companywhat do you think of it?" 

Privately Albert was inclined to classify the entire outfit as one  horse and countrified, but he deemed it

wiser not to express this  opinion.  So he compromised and replied that it "seemed to be all  right." 

His grandfather nodded.  "Thanks," he observed, dryly.  "Glad you  find it that way.  Well, then, changin' the

subject for a minute or  two, what do you think about yourself?" 

"About myself?  About me?  I don't understand?" 

"No, I don't suppose you do.  That's what I got you over here this  mornin' for, so as we could

understandyou and me.  Al, have you  given any thought to what you're goin' to do from this on?  How

you're goin' to live?" 

Albert looked at him uncomprehendingly. 

"How I'm going to live?" he repeated.  "Whywhy, I thoughtI  supposed I was going to live with

youwith you and Grandmother." 

"Umhm, I see." 

"I just kind of took that for granted, I guess.  You sent for me to  come here.  You took me away from school,

you know." 

"Yes, so I did.  You know why I took you from school?" 

"No, II guess I DON'T, exactly.  I thoughtI supposed it was  because you didn't want me to go there any

more." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 35



Top




Page No 38


"'Twasn't that.  I don't know whether I would have wanted you to go  there or not if things had been different.

From what I hear it was  a  pretty extravagant place, and lookin' at it from the outside  without  knowin' too

much about it, I should say it was liable to  put a lot of  foolish and expensive notions into a boy's head.  I  may

be wrong, of  course; I have been wrong at least a few times in  my life." 

It was evident that he considered the chances of his being wrong in  this instance very remote.  His tone again

aroused in the youth the  feeling of obstinacy, of rebellion, of desire to take the other  side. 

"It is one of the best schools in this country," he declared.  "My  father said so." 

Captain Zelotes picked up a pencil on his desk and tapped his chin  lightly with the blunt end.  "Um," he

mused.  "Well, I presume  likely  he knew all about it." 

"He knew as much asmost people," with a slight but significant  hesitation before the "most." 

"Umhm.  Naturally, havin' been schooled there himself, I suppose." 

"He wasn't schooled there.  My father was a Spaniard." 

"So I've heard. . . .  Well, we're kind of off the subject, ain't  we?  Let's leave your father's nationality out of it

for a while.  And  we'll leave the school, too, because no matter if it was the  best one  on earth you couldn't go

there.  I shouldn't feel 'twas  right to spend  as much money as that at any school, and youwell,  son, you ain't

got  it to spend.  Did you have any idea what your  father left you, in the  way of tangible assets?" 

"No.  I knew he had plenty of money always.  He was one of the most  famous singers in this country." 

"Maybe so." 

"It WAS so," hotly.  "And he was paid enough in one week to buy  this whole townor almost.  Why, my

father" 

"Sshh!  Sssh!" 

"No, I'm not going to hush.  I'm proud of my father.  He was aa  great man.  Andand I'm not going to stand

here and have you" 

Between indignation and emotion he choked and could not finish the  sentence.  The tears came to his eyes. 

"I'm not going to have you or anyone else talk about him that way,"  he concluded, fiercely. 

His grandfather regarded him with a steady, but not at all  unkindly, gaze. 

"I ain't runnin' down your father, Albert," he said. 

"Yes, you are.  You hated him.  Anybody could see you hated him." 

The captain slowly rapped the desk with the pencil.  He did not  answer at once. 

"Well," he said, after a moment, "I don't know as I ought to deny  that.  I don't know as I can deny it and be

honest.  Years ago he  took away from me what amounted to threequarters of everything  that  made my life

worth while.  Some day you'll know more about it  than you  do now, and maybe you'll understand my p'int of


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 36



Top




Page No 39


view  better.  No, I  didn't like your father  Eh?  What was you  sayin'?" 

Albert, who had muttered something, was rather confused.  However,  he did not attempt to equivocate.  "I said

I guessed that didn't  make  much difference to Father," he answered, sullenly. 

"I presume likely it didn't.  But we won't go into that question  now.  What I'm tryin' to get at in this talk we're

having is you  and  your future.  Now you can't go back to school because you can't  afford  it.  All your father

left when he died wasthis is the  honest truth  I'm tellin' you now, and if I'm puttin' it pretty  blunt it's

because I  always think it's best to get a bad mess out  of the way in a  hurryall your father left was debts.  He

didn't  leave money enough  to bury him, hardly." 

The boy stared at him aghast.  His grandfather, leaning a little  toward him, would have put a hand on his knee,

but the knee was  jerked out of the way. 

"There, that's over, Al," went on Captain Zelotes.  "You know the  worst now and you can say, 'What of it?'  I

mean just that:  What  of  it?  Bein' left without a cent, but with your health and a fair  chance  to make

goodthat, at seventeen or eighteen ain't a bad  lookout, by  any manner of means.  It's the outlook _I_ had at

fifteenexceptin'  the chanceand I ain't asked many favors of  anybody since.  At your  age, or a month or

two older, do you know  where I was?  I was first  mate of a threemasted schooner.  At  twenty I was skipper;

and at  twentyfive, by the Almighty, I owned  a share in her.  Al, all you  need now is a chance to go to work.

And I'm goin' to give you that  chance." 

Albert gasped.  "Do you meando you mean I've got to be aa  sailor?" he stammered. 

Captain Zelotes put back his head and laughed, laughed aloud. 

"A sailor!" he repeated.  "Ho, ho!  No wonder you looked scared.  No, I wan't cal'latin' to make a sailor out of

you, son.  For one  reason, sailorin' ain't what it used to be; and, for another, I  have  my doubts whether a young

feller of your bringin' up would  make much  of a go handlin' a bunch of fo'mast hands the first day  out.  No, I

wasn't figgerin' to send you to sea . . .  What do you  suppose I  brought you down to this place for this

mornin'?" 

And then Albert understood.  He knew why he had been conducted  through the lumber yards, about the

hardware shop, why his  grandfather and Mr. Price had taken so much pains to exhibit and  explain.  His heart

sank. 

"I brought you down here," continued the captain, "because it's a  firstrate idea to look a vessel over afore

you ship aboard her.  It's  kind of late to back out after you have shipped.  Ever since I  made up  my mind to

send for you and have you live along with your  grandmother  and me I've been plannin' what to do with you.  I

knew,  if you was a  decent, ambitious young chap, you'd want to do  somethin' towards  makin' a start in life.

We can usethat is,  this business can use  that kind of a chap right now.  He could larn  to keep books and

know  lumber and hardware and how to sell and how  to buy.  He can larn the  whole thing.  There's a chance

here, son.  It's your chance; I'm givin'  it to you.  How big a chance it turns  out to be 'll depend on you,

yourself." 

He stopped.  Albert was silent.  His thoughts were confused, but  out of their dismayed confusion two or three

fixed ideas reared  themselves like crags from a whirlpool.  He was to live in South  Hamiss alwaysalways;

he was to keep books  Heavens, how he hated  mathematics, detail work of any kind!for drunken old

Keeler; he  was  to "heave lumber" with Issy Price.  He  Oh, it was dreadful!  It was  horrible.  He couldn't!  He

wouldn't!  He 


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 37



Top




Page No 40


Captain Zelotes had been watching him, his heavy brows drawing  closer together as the boy delayed

answering. 

"Well?" he asked, for another minute. "Did you hear what I said?" 

"Yes." 

"Understood, did you?" 

"Yessir." 

"Well?" 

Albert was clutching at straws.  "II don't know how to keep  books," he faltered. 

"I didn't suppose you did.  Don't imagine they teach anything as  practical as bookkeepin' up at that school of

yours.  But you can  larn, can't you?" 

"II guess so." 

"I guess so, too.  Good Lord, I HOPE so!  Humph!  You don't seem to  be jumpin' for joy over the prospect.

There's a half dozen smart  young fellers here in South Harniss that would, I tell you that." 

Albert devoutly wished they had jumpedand landedbefore his  arrival.  His grandfather's tone grew more

brusque. 

"Don't you want to work?" he demanded. 

"Why, yes, II suppose I do.  II hadn't thought much about it." 

"Humph!  Then I think it's time you begun.  Hadn't you had ANY  notion of what you wanted to do when you

got out of that school of  yours?" 

"I was going to college." 

"Humph! . . .  Yes, I presume likely.  Well, after you got out of  college, what was you plannin' to do then?" 

"I wasn't sure.  I thought I might do something with my music.  I  can play a little.  I can't singthat is, not well

enough.  If I  could," wistfully, "I should have liked to be in opera, as father  was, of course." 

Captain Zelotes' only comment was a sniff or snort, or combination  of both.  Albert went on. 

"I had thought of writingwriting books and poems, you know.  I've  written quite a good deal for the school

magazine.  And I think I  should like to be an actor, perhaps.  I" 

"Good God!"  His grandfather's fist came down upon the desk before  him.  Slowly he shook his head. 

"Aa poetry writer and an actor!" he repeated.  "Whew! . . .  Well, there!  Perhaps maybe we hadn't better talk

any more just  now.  You can have the rest of the day to run around town and sort  of get  acquainted, if you

want to.  Then tomorrow mornin' you and  I'll come  over here together and we'll begin to break you in.  I

shouldn't  wonder," he added, dryly, "if you found it kind of dull  at  firstcompared to that school and poetry


The Portygee

CHAPTER III 38



Top




Page No 41


makin' and suchbut  it'll  be respectable and it'll pay for board and clothes and  somethin' to  eat once in a

while, which may not seem so important  to you now as  'twill later on.  And some day I cal'lateanyhow  we'll

hopeyou'll  be mighty glad you did it." 

Poor Albert looked and felt anything but glad just then.  Captain  Zelotes, his hands in his pockets, stood

regarding him.  He, too,  did  not look particularly happy. 

"You'll remember," he observed, "or perhaps you don't know, that  when your father asked us to look out for

you" 

Albert interrupted.  "Diddid father ask you to take care of me?"  he cried, in surprise. 

"Umhm.  He asked somebody who was with him to ask us to do just  that." 

The boy drew a long breath.  "Well, then," he said, hopelessly,  "I'llI'll try." 

"Thanks.  Now you run around town and see the sights.  Dinner's at  half past twelve prompt, so be on hand for

that." 

After his grandson had gone, the captain, hands still in his  pockets, stood for some time looking out of the

window.  At length  he  spoke aloud. 

"A play actor or a poetry writer!" he exclaimed.  "Tut, tut, tut!  No use talkin', blood will tell!" 

Issachar, who was putting coal on the office fire, turned his head. 

"Eh?" he queried. 

"Nothin'," said Captain Lote. 

He would have been surprised if he could have seen his grandson  just at that moment.  Albert, on the beach

whither he had strayed  in  his desire to be alone, safely hidden from observation behind a  sand  dune, was

lying with his head upon his arms and sobbing  bitterly. 

A disinterested person might have decided that the interview which  had just taken place and which Captain

Zelotes hopefully told his  wife that morning would probably result in "a clear, comf'table  understandin'

between the boy and me"such a disinterested person  might have decided that it had resulted in exactly the

opposite.  In  calculating the results to be obtained from that interview the  captain  had not taken into

consideration two elements, one his own  and the  other his grandson's.  These elements were prejudice and

temperament. 

CHAPTER IV

The next morning, with much the same feeling that a convict must  experience when he enters upon a life

imprisonment, Albert entered  the employ of "Z. Snow and Co., Lumber and Builders' Hardware."  The  day, he

would have sworn it, was at least a year long.  The  interval  between breakfast and dinner was quite six

months, yet the  dinner hour  itself was the shortest sixty minutes he had ever  known.  Mr. Keeler  had not yet

returned to his labors, so there was  no instruction in  bookkeeping; but his grandfather gave him letters  to file

and long  dreary columns of invoice figures to add.  Twice  Captain Zelotes went  out and then, just as Albert

settled back for  a rest and breathing  spell, Issachar Price appeared, warned  apparently by some sort of


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 39



Top




Page No 42


devilish intuition, and invented  "checking up stock" and similar  menial and tiresome tasks to keep  him

uncomfortable till the captain  returned.  The customers who  came in asked questions concerning him  and he

was introduced to at  least a dozen citizens of South Harniss,  who observed "Sho!" and  "I want to know!"

when told his identity and,  in some instances,  addressed him as "Bub," which was of itself a crime  deserving

capital punishment. 

That night, as he lay in bed in the back bedroom, he fell asleep  facing the dreary prospect of another

monotonous imprisonment the  following day, and the next day, and the day after that, and after  thatand

after thatand so onand onand onforever and ever,  as  long as life should last.  This, then, was to be

the end of all  his  dreams, this drudgery in a country town among these commonplace  country people.  This

was the end of his dreams of some day writing  deathless odes and sonnets or thrilling romances; of treading

the  boards as the hero of romantic drama while stareyed daughters of  multimillionaires gazed from the

boxes in spellbound rapture.  This .  . .  The thought of the stareyed ones reminded him of the  girl who  had

come into the office the afternoon of his first visit  to that  torture chamber.  He had thought of her many times

since  their meeting  and always with humiliation and resentment.  It was  his own foolish  tongue which had

brought the humiliation upon him.  When she had  suggested that he might be employed by Z. Snow and Co.

he had replied:  "Me?  Work HERE!  Well, I should say NOT!"  And  all the time she,  knowing who he was,

must have known he was doomed  to work there.  He  resented that superior knowledge of hers.  He  had made a

fool of  himself but she was to blame for it.  Well, by  George, he would NOT  work there!  He would run away,

he would show  her, and his grandfather  and all the rest what was what.  Night  after night he fell asleep

vowing to run away, to do all sorts of  desperate deeds, and morning  after morning he went back to that  office. 

On the fourth morning the prodigal came home, the stray lamb  returned to the foldMr. Keeler returned to

his desk and his  duties.  There was a premonition of his return at the Snow breakfast  table.  For three days Mrs.

Ellis had swathed her head in white and  her soul  in black.  For three days her favorite accompaniment to

conversation  had been a groan or a sigh.  Now, on this fourth  morning, she appeared  without the bandage on

her brow or the crape  upon her spirit.  She was  not hilarious but she did not groan once,  and twice during the

meal  she actually smiled. Captain Lote  commented upon the change, she being  absent from table

momentarily. 

"Whew!" he observed, in an undertone, addressing his wife.  "If it  ain't a comfort to see the wrinkles on

Rachel's face curvin' up  instead of down.  I'm scared to death that she'll go out some time  in  a cold spell when

she's havin' one of them sympathetics of hers,  and  her face'll freeze that way.  Well, Albert," turning to his

grandson,  "the colors'll be h'isted to the truck now instead of  halfmast and  life'll be somethin' besides one

everlastin' 'last  look at the  remains.' Now we can take off the mournin' till the  next funeral." 

"Yes," said Olive, "and Laban'll be back, too.  I'm sure you must  have missed him awfully, Zelotes." 

"Missed him!  I should say so.  For one thing, I miss havin' him  between me and Issy.  When Labe's there Is

talks to him and Labe  keeps on thinkin' of somethin' else and so it don't worry him any.  I  can't do that, and

my eardrums get to wearin' thin and that makes  me  nervous.  Maybe you've noticed that Issy's flow of

conversation  ain't  what you'd call a trickle," he added, turning to Albert. 

Albert had noticed it.  "But," he asked, "what makes RachelMrs.  Ellisso cheerful this morning?  Does she

know that Mr. Keeler  will  be back at work?  How does she know?  She hasn't seen him, has  she?" 

"No," replied the captain.  "She ain't seen him.  Nobody sees him,  far's that goes.  He generally clears out

somewheres and locks  himself up in a room, I judge, till his vacation's over.  I suppose  that's one way to have

fun, but it ain't what I'd call hilarious." 

"Don't, Zelotes," said Mrs. Snow.  "I do wish you wouldn't call it  fun." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 40



Top




Page No 43


"I don't, but Laban seems to.  If he don't do it for fun I don't  know what he does it for.  Maybe it's from a sense

of duty.  It  ain't  to oblige me, I know that." 

Albert repeated his question.  "But how does she know he will be  back today?" he asked. 

His grandmother shook her head.  "That's the mysterious part about  it," she whispered.  "It makes a person

think there may be  somethin'  in the sympathetic notion she talks so much about.  She  don't see him  at all and

yet we can always tell when he's comin'  back to work by her  spirits.  If he ain't back today he will be

tomorrow, you'll see.  She never misses by more than a day.  _I_  think it's real sort of  mysterious, but Zelotes

laughs at me." 

Captain Lote's lip twitched.  "Yes, Mother," he said, "it's about  as mysterious as the clock's strikin' twelve

when it's noon.  _I_  know it's morally sartin that Labe'll be back aboard today or to  morrow because his

sprees don't ever last more than five days.  I  can't swear to how she knows, but that's how _I_ knowand I'm

darned  sure there's no 'sympathy' about my part."  Then, as if  realizing that  he had talked more than usual, he

called, brusquely:  "Come on, Al,  come on.  Time we were on the job, boy." 

Sure enough, as they passed the window of the office, there, seated  on the stool behind the tall desk, Albert

saw the diminutive figure  of the man who had been his driver on the night of his arrival.  He  was curious to

see how the delinquent would apologize for or  explain  his absence.  But Mr. Keeler did neither, nor did

Captain  Snow ask a  question.  Instead the pair greeted each other as if  they had parted  in that office at the

close of business on the  previous day. 

"Mornin', Cap'n Lote," said Laban, quietly. 

"Mornin', Labe," replied the captain, just as calmly. 

He went on and opened his own desk, leaving his grandson standing  by the door, not knowing whether to

speak or offer to shake hands.  The situation was a little difficult, particularly as Mr. Keeler  gave  no sign of

recognition, but, after a glance at his employer's  companion, went on making entries in the ledger. 

Captain Zelotes looked up a moment later.  His gray eyes inspected  the pair and the expression on Albert's

face caused them to twinkle  slightly.  "Labe," he said, "this is my grandson, Albert, the one I  told you was

comin' to live with us." 

Laban turned on the stool, regarded Albert over his spectacles, and  extended a hand. 

"Pleased to meet you," he said.  "Yes, yes . . .  Yes, yes, yes. .  .  Pleased to meet you.  Cap'n Lote said you was

comin'erer  Alfred.  Howdy do." 

They shook hands.  Mr. Keeler's hand trembled a little, but that  was the only symptom of his recent "vacation"

which the youth could  notice.  Certain vivid remembrances of his father's bad humor on  mornings following

convivial evenings recurred to him.  Was it  possible that this odd, precise, driedup little man had been on a

spree for four days?  It did not seem possible.  He looked more as  if  he might be expected to rap on the desk

and ask the school to  come to  order. 

"Albert's goin' to take hold here with us in the office," went on  Captain Lote.  "You'll remember I spoke to

you about that when we  talked about his comin'.  Al, LabeMr. Keeler herewill start you  in larnin' to

bookkeep.  He'll be your first mate from now on.  Don't  forget you're a fo'mast hand yet awhile and the way for

a  fo'mast hand  to get ahead is to obey orders.  And don't," he added,  with a quiet  chuckle, "do any playactin'

or poetrymakin' when  it's your watch on  deck.  Laban nor I ain't very strong for play  actin', are we, Labe?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 41



Top




Page No 44


Laban, to whom the reference was anything but clear, replied rather  vaguely that he didn't know as he was,

very.  Albert's temper  flared  up again.  His grandfather was sneering at him once more; he  was  always

sneering at him.  All right, let him sneernow.  Some  day he  would be shown.  He scowled and turned away.

And Captain  Zelotes,  noticing the scowl, was reminded of a scowl he had seen  upon the face  of a Spanish

opera singer some twenty years before.  He did not like to  be reminded of that man. 

He went out soon afterward and then Laban, turning to Albert, asked  a few questions. 

"How do you think you're goin' to like South Harniss, Ansel?" he  asked. 

Albert was tempted to reply that he, Keeler, had asked him that  very question before, but he thought it best

not to do so. 

"I don't know yet," he answered, carelessly.  "Well enough, I  guess." 

"You'll like it fustrate bimeby.  Everybody does when they get  used to it.  Takes some time to get used to a

place, don't you know  it does, Ansel?" 

"My name is Albert." 

"Eh?  Yes, yes, so 'tis.  Yes, yes, yes.  I don't know why I called  you Ansel, 'less 'twas on account of my

knowin' an Ansel Olsen  once .  . .  Hum . . .  Yes, yes.  Well, you'll like South Harniss  when you  get used to it." 

The boy did not answer.  He was of the opinion that he should die  long before the getting used process was

completed.  Mr. Keeler  continued. 

"Come on yesterday's train, did you?" he asked. 

Albert looked at him.  Was the fellow joking?  He did not look as  if he was. 

"Why no," he replied.  "I came last Monday night.  Don't you  remember?" 

"Eh?  Oh, yes . . .  Yes, yes, yes . . .  Last Monday night you  come, eh?  On the night train, eh?"  He hesitated a

moment and then  asked.  "Cap'n Lote fetch you down from the depot?" 

Albert stared at him openmouthed. 

"Why, no!" he retorted.  "You drove me down yourself." 

For the first time a slight shade of embarrassment crossed the  bookkeeper's features.  He drew a long breath. 

"Yes," he mused.  "Yes, yes, yes.  I kind of thought Iyes, yes,  II thought likely I did . . .  Yes, yes,

course I did, course I  did.  Well, now maybe we'd better be startin' you in to worker  Augustus.  Know

anything about doubleentry, do you?" 

Albert did not, nor had he the slightest desire to learn.  But  before the first hour was over he foresaw that he

was destined to  learn, if he remained in that office, whether he wanted to or not.  Laban Keeler might be, and

evidently was, peculiar in his ways, but  as a bookkeeper he was thoroughness personified.  And as a teacher  of

his profession he was just as thorough.  All that forenoon  Albert  practiced the first principles of "double

entry" and, after  the  blessed hour for dinner, came back to practice the remainder of  the  working day. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 42



Top




Page No 45


And so for many days.  Little by little he learned to invoice and  journalize and "post in the ledger" and all the

rest of the detail  of  bookkeeping.  Not that his instructor permitted him to do a  great deal  of actual work upon

the books of Z. Snow and Co.  Those  books were too  spotless and precious for that.  Looking over them  Albert

was  surprised and obliged to admit a grudging admiration at  the manner in  which, for the most part, they had

been kept.  Page  after page of the  neatest of minute figures, not a blot, not a  blur, not an erasure.  So  for

months; then, in the minor books,  like the daybook or journal,  would suddenly break out an eruption  of

smudges and scrawls in the  rugged handwriting of Captain  Zelotes.  When he first happened upon  one of

these Albert  unthinkingly spoke to Mr. Keeler about it.  He  asked the latter  what it meant. 

Laban slowly stroked his nose with his thumb and finger, a habit he  had. 

"I cal'late I was away for a spell then," he said, gravely.  "Yes,  yes . . .  Yes, yes, yes.  I was away for a little

spell." 

He went soberly back to his desk.  His new assistant, catching a  glimpse of his face, felt a pang of real pity for

the little man.  Of  course the reason for the hiatus in the books was plain enough.  He  knew about those "little

spells."  Oddly enough Laban seemed to  feel  sorry for them.  He remembered how funny the bookkeeper had

appeared  at their first meeting, when one "spell" was just  developing, and the  contrast between the singing,

chirruping clown  and the precise, grave  little person at the desk struck even his  youthful mind as peculiar.  He

had read "Doctor Jekyll and Mr.  Hyde," and now here was an example  of something similar.  He was

beginning to like Laban Keeler, although  he was perfectly sure that  he should never like bookkeeping. 

He did not slave at the books all the time, of course.  For  stretches, sometimes lasting whole days, his slavery

was of another  sort.  Then he was working in the lumber yard with Issachar, or  waiting on customers in the

hardware shop.  The cold of winter set  in  in earnest now and handling "two by fours" and other timber out

where  the raw winds swept piercingly through one's overcoat and  garments and  flesh to the very bone was a

trying experience.  His  hands were  chapped and cracked, even though his grandmother had  knit him a pair  of

enormous red mittens.  He appreciated the warmth  of the mittens,  but he hated the color.  Why in the name of

all  that was inartistic  did she choose red; not a deep, rich crimson,  but a screeching  vermilion, like a fireman's

shirt? 

Issachar, when he had the opportunity, was a hard boss.  It suited  Mr. Price to display his superior knowledge

and to find fault with  his helper's lack of skill.  Albert's hot temper was at the boiling  point many times, but he

fought it down.  Occasionally he retorted  in  kind, but his usual and most effective weapon was a more or less

delicate sarcasm.  Issachar did not understand sarcasm and under  rapid fire he was inclined to lose his head. 

"Consarn it!" he snapped, irritably, on one occasion.  "Consarn it,  Al, why don't you h'ist up on t'other end of

that j'ist?  What do  you  cal'late you're out here along of me for; to look harnsome?" 

Albert shook his head.  "No, Is," he answered, gravely.  "No, that  wouldn't be any use.  With you around

nobody else has a lookin at  the 'handsome' game.  Issy, what do you do to your face?" 

"Do to it?  What do you mean by do to it?" 

"What do you do to it to make it look the way it does?  Don't tell  me it grew that way naturally." 

"Grew!  Course it grew!  What kind of talk's that?" 

"Issy, with a face like yours how do you keep the birds away?" 

"Eh?  Keep the birds away!  Now look here, just" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 43



Top




Page No 46


"Excuse me.  Did I say 'birds,' Issy?  I didn't mean birds like  like crows.  Of course a face like yours would

keep the crows away  all right enough.  I meant girls.  How do you keep the girls away?  I  should think they

would be making love all the time." 

"Aw, you shut up!  Just 'cause you're Cap'n Lote's grandson I  presume likely you think you can talk any kind

of talk, don't ye?" 

"Not any kind, Is.  I can't talk like you.  Will you teach me?" 

"Shut up!  Now, by Crimus, youyou furrineryou Speranzy" 

Mr. Keeler appeared at the office window.  His shrill voice rose  pipingly in the wintry air as he demanded to

know what was the  trouble out there. 

Mr. Price, still foaming, strode toward the window; Albert  laughingly followed him. 

"What's the matter?" repeated Laban.  "There's enough noise for a  sewin' circle.  Be still, Is, can't you, for a

minute.  Al, what's  the trouble?" 

"Issy's been talking about his face," explained Albert, soberly. 

"I ain't neither.  I was h'istin' up my end of a j'ist, same as I'm  paid to do, and, 'stead of helpin' he stands there

and heaves out  talk aboutabout" 

"Well, about what?" 

"Aw, aboutabout me andand girlsand all sorts of dum  foolishness.  I tell ye, I've got somethin' else to

do beside  listen  to that kind of cheap talk." 

"Um.  Yes, yes.  I see.  Well, Al, what have you got to say?" 

"Nothing.  I'm sure I don't know what it is all about.  I was  working as hard as I could and all at once he began

pitching into  me." 

"Pitchin' into you?  How?" 

"Oh, I don't know.  Something about my looks he didn't like, I  guess.  Wanted to know if I thought I was as

handsome as he was, or  something like that." 

"Eh?  I never neither!  All I said was" 

Mr. Keeler raised his hand.  "Seems to be a case for an umpire," he  observed.  "Um.  Seem's if 'twas, seems so,

seems so.  Well,  Captain  Lote's just comin' across the road and, if you say the  word, I'll call  him in to referee.

What do you say?" 

They said nothing relevant to the subject in hand.  Issachar made  the only remark.  "CrimusTEE!" he

ejaculated.  "Come on, Al, come  on." 

The pair hurried away to resume lumber piling.  Laban smiled  slightly and closed the window.  It may be

gathered from this  incident that when the captain was in charge of the deck there was  little idle persiflage

among the "fo'mast hands."  They, like  others  in South Harniss, did not presume to trifle with Captain  Lote


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 44



Top




Page No 47


Snow. 

So the business education of Alberto Miguel Carlos Speranza  progressed.  At the end of the first six weeks in

South Harniss he  had learned a little about bookkeeping, a little about selling  hardware, a little about

measuring and marking lumber.  And it must  be admitted that that little had been acquired, not because of

vigorous application on the part of the pupil, but because, being  naturally quick and intelligent, he could not

help learning  something.  He liked the work just as little as he had in the  beginning of his apprenticeship.  And,

although he was forgetting  his  thoughts of running away, of attempting fortune on his own  hook, he  was just

as rebellious as ever against a future to be  spent in that  office and at that work. 

Outside the office and the hateful bookkeeping he was beginning to  find several real interests.  At the old

house which had for  generations been called "the Snow place," he was beginning to feel  almost at home.  He

and his grandmother were becoming close  friends.  She was not looking for trouble, she never sat for long

intervals  gazing at him as if she were guessing, guessing, guessing  concerning  him.  Captain Zelotes did that,

but Olive did not.  She  had taken the  boy, her "Janie's boy," to her heart from the moment  she saw him and

she mothered him and loved him in a way whichso  long as it was not  done in publiccomforted his

lonely soul.  They  had not yet reached  the stage where he confided in her to any great  extent, but that was

certain to come later.  It was his grandmother's  love and the  affection he was already beginning to feel for her

which, during these  first lonesome, miserable weeks, kept him from,  perhaps, turning the  running away

fantasy into a reality. 

Another inmate of the Snow household with whom Albert was becoming  better acquainted with was Mrs.

Rachel Ellis.  Their real  acquaintanceship began one Sunday forenoon when Captain Zelotes and  Olive had

gone to church.  Ordinarily he would have accompanied  them,  to sit in the straightbacked old pew on a

cushion which felt  lumpy  and smelt ancient and musty, and pretend to listen while old  Mr.  Kendall preached

a sermon which was ancient and musty likewise. 

But this Sunday morning he awoke with a headache and his  grandmother  had pleaded for him, declaring that

he ought to "lay to  bed" a while  and get over it.  He got over it with surprising  quickness after the  church bell

ceased ringing, and came downstairs to  read Ivanhoe in  the sitting room.  He had read it several times  before,

but he  wanted to read something and the choice of volumes in  the Snow  bookcase was limited.  He was

stretched out on the sofa with  the  book in his hand when the housekeeper entered, armed with a  dustcloth.

She went to church only "every other" Sunday.  This  was  one of the others without an every, and she was at

home. 

"What are you readin', Albert?" she asked, after a few' minutes  vigorous wielding of the dustcloth.  "It must

be awful interestin',  you stick at it so close." 

The Black Knight was just then hammering with his battleaxe at the  gate of Front de Buef's castle, not

minding the stones and beams  cast  down upon him from above "no more than if they were thistle  down or

feathers."  Albert absently admitted that the story was  interesting.  The housekeeper repeated her request to be

told its  name. 

"Ivanhoe," replied the boy; adding, as the name did not seem to  convey any definite idea to his interrogator's

mind:  "It's by  Walter  Scott, you know." 

Mrs. Ellis made no remark immediately.  When she did it was to the  effect that she used to know a colored

man named Scott who worked  at  the hotel once.  "He swept out and carried trunks and such  things,"  she

explained.  "He seemed to be a real nice sort of  colored man, far  as ever I heard." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 45



Top




Page No 48


Albert was more interested in the Black Knight of Ivanhoe than the  black man of the hotel, so he went on

reading.  Rachel sat down in  a  chair by the window and looked out, twisting and untwisting the  dustcloth in

her lap. 

"I presume likely lots and lots of folks have read that book, ain't  they?" she asked, after another interval. 

"What?  Oh, yes, almost everybody.  It's a classic, I suppose." 

"What's that?" 

"What's what?" 

"What you said the book was.  A classsomethin' or other?" 

"Oh, a classic.  Why, it'sit's something everybody knows about,  oror ought to know about.  One of the

big things, you know.  Likelike Shakespeare oror Robinson Crusoe or Paradise Lost or  lots of them.

It's a book everybody reads and always will." 

"I see.  Humph!  Well, I never read it. . . .  I presume likely you  think that's pretty funny, don't you?" 

Albert tore himself away from the fight at the gate. 

"Why, I don't know," he replied. 

"Yes, you do.  You think it's awful funny.  Well, you wouldn't if  you knew more about how busy I've been all

my life.  I ain't had  time  to read the way I'd ought to.  I read a book once though that  I'll  never forget.  Did you

ever read a book called Foul Play?" 

"No. . . .  Why, hold on, though; I think I have.  By Charles  Reade, wasn't it?" 

"Yes, that's who wrote it, a man named Charles Reade.  Laban told  me that part of it; he reads a lot, Laban

does.  I never noticed  who  wrote it, myself.  I was too interested in it to notice little  extry  things like that.  But

ain't that a WONDERFUL book?  Ain't  that the  best book you ever read in all your LIFE?" 

She dropped the dustcloth and was too excited and enthusiastic to  pick it up.  Albert did his best to recall

something definite  concerning Foul Play.  The book had been in the school library and  he, who read almost

everything, had read it along with the others. 

"Let me see," he said musingly.  "About a shipwrecksomething  about a shipwreck in it, wasn't there?" 

"I should say there was!  My stars above!  Not the common kind of  shipwreck, neither, the kind they have

down to Setuckit P'int on  the  shoals.  No siree!  This one was sunk on purpose.  That Joe  Wylie  bored holes

right down through her with a gimlet, the wicked  thing!  And that set 'em afloat right out on the sea in a boat,

and  there  wan't anything to eat till Robert Penfoldoh, HE was the  smart one;  he'd find anything, that

man!he found the barnacles on  the bottom of  the boat, just the same as he found out how to  diffuse

intelligence  tied onto a duck's leg over land knows how  many legsleagues, I  meanof ocean.  But that

come later.  Don't  you remember THAT?" 

Albert laughed.  The story was beginning to come back to him. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 46



Top




Page No 49


"Oh, sure!" he exclaimed.  "I remember now.  Hethe Penfold  fellowand the girl landed on this island and

had all sorts of  adventures, and fell in love and all that sort of stuff, and then  her  dad came and took her back

to England and sheshe did  something or  other there toto get the Penfold guy out of  trouble." 

"Did somethin'!  I should say she did!  Why, she found out all  about who forged the letterthe note, I

meanthat's what she  done.  'Twas Arthur Wardlaw, that's who 'twas.  And he was tryin'  to get  Helen all the

time for himself, the skinner!  Don't talk to  me about  that Arthur Wardlaw!  I never could bear HIM." 

She spoke as if she had known the detested Wardlaw intimately from  childhood.  Young Speranza was hugely

amused.  Ivanhoe was quite  forgotten. 

"Foul Play was great stuff," he observed.  "When did you read it?" 

"Eh?  When?  Oh, ever and ever so long ago.  When I was about  twenty, I guess, and laid up with the measles.

That's the only  time  I ever was real what you might call down sick in my life, and  I  commenced with

measles.  That's the way a good many folks  commence, I  know, but they don't generally wait till they're out of

their 'teens  afore they start.  I was workin' for Mrs. Philander  Bassett at the  time, and she says to me:  'Rachel,'

she says,  'you're on the mendin'  hand now, wouldn't you like a book to read?'  I says, 'Why, maybe I  would.'

And she fetched up three of 'em.  I  can see 'em now, all  three, plain as day.  One was Barriers Burned  Away.

She said that was  somethin' about a big fire.  Well, I'm  awful nervous about fires, have  been from a child, so I

didn't read  that.  And another had the  queerest kind of a name, if you'd call  it a name at all; 'twas She." 

Albert nodded. 

"Yes," he said.  "I've read that." 

"Have you?  Well, I begun to, but my stars, THAT wasn't any book to  give to a person with nerve symptoms.

I got as far as where those  Indians or whatever they was started to put redhot kettles on  folks's heads, and

that was enough for ME.  'Give me somethin'  civilized,' says I, 'or not at all.'  So I commenced Foul Play, and  I

tell you I kept right on to the end. 

"I don't suppose," she went on, "that there ever was a much better  book than that wrote, was there?" 

Albert temporized.  "It is a good one," he admitted. 

"Don't seem to me there could be much better.  Laban says it's  good, though he won't go so far as to say it's

the very best.  He's  read lots and lots of books, Laban has.  Reads an awful lot in his  spare time.  He's what

you'd call an educated person, which is what  I  ain't.  And I guess you'll say that last is plain enough without

bein'  told," she added. 

Her companion, not exactly knowing how to answer, was silent for a  moment.  Rachel, who had picked up

and was again twisting the dust  cloth, returned to the subject she so delighted in. 

"But that Foul Play book," she continued, "I've read till I've  pretty nigh wore the covers off.  When Mrs.

Bassett saw how much I  liked it she gave it to me for a present.  I read a little bit in  it  every little while.  I kind

of fit the folks in that book to  folks in  real life, sort of compare 'em, you know.  Do you ever do  that?" 

Albert, repressing a chuckle, said, "Sure!" again.  She nodded. 

"Now there's General Rolleson in that book," she said.  "Do you  know who he makes me think of?  Cap'n

Lote, your grandpa, that's  who." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 47



Top




Page No 50


General Rolleson, as Albert remembered him, was an extremely  dignified, cultured and precise old

gentleman.  Just what  resemblance  there might be between him and Captain Zelotes Snow,  exskipper of the

Olive S., he could not imagine.  He could not  repress a grin, and the  housekeeper noticed it. 

"Seems funny to you, I presume likely," she said.  "Well, now you  think about it.  This General Rolleson man

was kind of proud and  sot  in his ways just as your grandpa is, Albert.  He had a daughter  he  thought all the

world of; so did Cap'n Lote.  Along come a  person that  wanted to marry the daughter.  In the book 'twas

Robert  Penfold, who  had been a convict.  In your grandpa's case, 'twas  your pa, who had  been a playactor.

So you see" 

Albert sat up on the sofa.  "Hold on!" he interrupted indignantly.  "Do you mean to compare my father with

awith a CONVICT?  I want  you  to understand" 

Mrs. Ellis held up the dustcloth.  "Now, now, now," she protested.  "Don't go puttin' words in my mouth that

I didn't say.  I don't  doubt  your pa was a nice man, in his way, though I never met him.  But  'twan't Cap'n

Lote's way any more than Robert Penfold's was  General  Rolleson's." 

"My father was famous," declared the youth hotly.  "He was one of  the most famous singers in this country.

Everybody knows that  that  is, everybody but Grandfather and the gang down here," he  added, in  disgust. 

"I don't say you're wrong.  Laban tells me that some of those  singin' folks get awful high wages, more than the

cap'n of a  steamboat, he says, though that seems like stretchin' it to me.  But,  as I say, Cap'n Lote was proud,

and nobody but the best would  satisfy  him for Janie, your mother.  Well, in that way, you see, he  reminds me

of General Rolleson in the book." 

"Look here, Mrs. Ellis.  Tell me about this business of Dad's  marrying my mother.  I never knew much of

anything about it." 

"You didn't?  Did your pa never tell you?" 

"No." 

"Humph!  That's funny.  Still, I don't know's as 'twas, after all,  considerin' you was only a boy.  Probably he'd

have told you some  day.  Well, I don't suppose there's any secret about it.  'Twas  town  talk down here when it

happened." 

She told him the story of the runaway marriage.  Albert listened  with interest and the almost incredulous

amazement with which the  young always receive tales of their parents' love affairs.  Love,  for  people of his

age or a trifle older, was a natural and  understandable  thing, but for his father, as he remembered him, to  have

behaved in  this way was incomprehensible. 

"So," said Rachel, in conclusion, "that's how it happened.  That's  why Cap'n Lote couldn't ever forgive your

father." 

He tossed his head.  "Well, he ought to have forgiven him," he  declared.  "He was dead lucky to get such a

man for a soninlaw,  if  you ask me." 

"He didn't think so.  And he wouldn't ever mention your pa's name." 

"Oh, I don't doubt that.  Anybody can see how he hated Father.  And  he hates me the same way," he added

moodily. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 48



Top




Page No 51


Mrs. Ellis was much disturbed.  "Oh, no, he don't," she cried.  "You mustn't think that, Albert.  He don't hate

you, I'm sure of  it.  He's just kind of doubtful about you, that's all.  He  remembers how  your pa actedor how

he thinks he actedand so he  can't help bein'  the least mite afraid the same thing may crop out  in you.  If you

just  stick to your job over there at the lumber  yards and keep on tryin' to  please him, he'll get all over that

suspicion, see if he don't.  Cap'n  Lote Snow is stubborn sometimes  and hard to turn, but he's square as a  brick.

There's some that  don't like him, and a good many that don't  agree with himbut  everybody respects him." 

Albert did not answer.  The housekeeper rose from her chair. 

"There!" she exclaimed.  "I don't know when I've set down for so  long.  Goodness knows I've got work enough

to do without settin'  around talkin'.  I can't think what possessed me to do it this  time,  unless 'twas seein' you

readin' that book."  She paused a  moment and  then said:  "Albert, II don't want you and your  grandpa to

have any  quarrels.  You seewell, you see, I used to  know your mother real  well, andand I thought an

awful sight of  her.  I wishI do wish  when you and the cap'n have any trouble or  anything, or when you

think  you're liable to have any, you'd come  and talk it over with me.  I'm  like the feller that Laban tells  about

in his dogfight yarn.  This  feller was watchin' the fight  and when they asked him to stop it afore  one or

t'other of the dogs  was killed, he just shook his head.  'Noo,' he says, kind of slow  and moderate, 'I guess I

shan't  interfere.  One of 'em's been  stealin' my chickens and the other one  bit me.  I'm a friend to  both parties,'

he says.  Course I don't mean  it exactly that way,"  she added, with a smile, "but you know what I do  mean, I

guess.  WILL you talk things over with me sometimes, Albert?" 

His answer was not very enthusiastic, but he said he guessed so,  and Rachel seemed satisfied with that.  She

went on with her  dusting,  and he with his reading, but the conversation was the  first of many  between the

pair.  The housekeeper appeared to  consider his having  read her beloved Foul Play a sort of password

admitting him to her  lodge and that thereafter they were, in  consequence, to be confidants  and comrades.  She

never hesitated to  ask him the most personal  questions concerning his work, his plans,  the friends or

acquaintances  he was making in the village.  Some of  those questions he answered  honestly and fully, some

he dodged,  some he did not answer at all.  Mrs. Ellis never resented his not  answering.  "I presume likely that

ain't any of my business, is  it?" she would say, and ask about  something else. 

On the other hand, she was perfectly outspoken concerning her own  affairs.  He was nearly overcome with

hilarious joy when, one day,  she admitted that, in her mind, Robert Penfold, the hero of Foul  Play, lived again

in the person of Laban Keeler. 

"Why, Mrs. Ellis," he cried, as soon as he could trust himself to  speak at all, "I don't see THAT.  Penfold was

a sixfooter, wasn't  he?  Andand athletic, you know, andand a minister, and young  younger, I

meanand" 

Rachel interrupted.  "Yes, yes, I know," she said.  "And Laban is  little, and not very young, and, whatever else

he is, he ain't a  minister.  I know all that.  I know the outside of him don't look  like Robert Penfold at all.  But,"

somewhat apologetically, "you  see  I've been acquainted with him so many years I've got into the  habit of

seein' his INSIDE.  Now that sounds kind of ridiculous, I  know," she  added.  "Sounds as if IIwell, as if I

was in the  habit of takin'  him apart, like a watch or somethin'.  What I mean  is that I know him  all through.

I've known him for a long, long  while.  He ain't much to  look at, bein' so little and sort of dried  up, but he's got

a big,  fine heart and big brains.  He can do 'most  anything he sets his hand  to.  When I used to know him, when

I was  a girl, folks was always  prophesyin' that Laban Keeler would turn  out to be a whole lot more'n  the

average.  He would, too, only for  one thing, and you know what  that is.  It's what has kept me from  marryin'

him all this time.  I  swore I'd never marry a man that  drinks, and I never will.  Why, if it  wasn't for liquor Labe

would  have been runnin' his own business and  gettin' rich long ago.  He  all but runs Cap'n Lote's place as 'tis.

The cap'n and a good many  other folks don't realize that, but it's  so." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IV 49



Top




Page No 52


It was plain that she worshiped the little bookkeeper and, except  during the periods of "vacation" and

"sympathetics," was  tremendously  proud of him.  Albert soon discovered that Mr.  Keeler's feeling for  her was

equally strong.  In his case, though,  there was also a strong  strain of gratitude. 

"She's a fine woman, Al," he confided to his assistant on one  occasion.  "A fine woman. . . .  Yes, yes, yes.

They don't  make 'em  any finer.  Ah hum!  And not so long ago I read about  a passel of darn  fools arguin' that

the angels in heaven was all  heones. . . .  Umph!  . . .  Sho, sho!  If men was as good as women,

AnselAlfredAlbert,  I meanwe could start an opposition heaven  down here most any time.  'Most any

timeyes, yes." 

It was considerable for him to say.  Except when on a vacation,  Laban was not loquacious. 

Each Sunday afternoon, when the weather was pleasant, he came,  dressed in his best black cutaway, shiny at

elbows and the under  part  of the sleeves, striped trousers and a pearl gray soft hat  with a  black band, a hat

which looked as much out of place above  his round,  withered little face as a red roof might have looked on  a

family  vault, and he and the housekeeper went for a walk. 

Rachel, in her Sunday black, bulked large beside him.  As Captain  Zelotes said, the pair looked like "a tug

takin' a liner out to  sea." 

CHAPTER V

Outside of the gates of the Snow place Albert was making many  acquaintances and a few friends.  After

church on Sundays his  grandmother had a distressful habit of suddenly seizing his arm or  his coattail as he

was hurrying toward the vestibule and the  sunshine of outdoors, and saying:  "Oh, Albert, just a minute!

Here's  somebody you haven't met yet, I guess.  Elsie"or Nellie or  Mabel or  Henry or Charlie or George,

whichever it happened to be  "this is my  grandson, Albert Speranza."  And the young person to  whom he

was thus  introduced would, if a male, extend a hesitating  hand, give his own an  embarrassed shake, smile

uncertainly and say,  "Yeseryes.  Pleased  to meet you."  Or, if of the other sex,  would blush a little and

venture the observation that it was a  lovely morning, and wasn't the  sermon splendid. 

These Sabbath introductions led to weekday, or rather week  evening, meetings.  The principal excitement

in South Harniss was  "going for the mail."  At noon and after supper fully onehalf of  the  village population

journeyed to the post office.  Albert's  labors for  Z. Snow and Co. prevented his attending the noon

gatheringshis  grandfather usually got the morning mailbut he  early formed the  habit of sauntering

"down street" in the evening  if the weather was  not too cold or disagreeable.  There he was  certain to find

groups of  South Harniss youth of both sexes,  talking, giggling, skylarking and  flirting.  Sometimes he joined

one or the other of these groups; quite  as often he did not, but  kept aloof and by himself, for it may as well  be

acknowledged now,  if it is not already plain, that the son of  Miguel Carlos Speranza  had inherited a share of

his father's  temperament and selfesteem.  The whim of the moment might lead him to  favor these young

people  with his society, but he was far from  considering himself under  obligation to do so.  He had not the

least  idea that he was in any  way a snob, he would have hotly resented being  called one, but he  accepted his

estimate of his own worth as something  absolute and  certain, to be taken for granted. 

Now this attitude of mind had its dangers.  Coupled with its  possessor's extraordinary good looks, it was

fascinating to a large  percentage of the village girls.  The Speranza eyes and the  Speranza  curls and nose and

chin were, when joined with the easy  condescension  of the Speranza manner, a combination fatal to the

susceptible.  The  South Harniss "flappers," most of them, enthused  over the new  bookkeeper in the lumber

office.  They ogled and  giggled and gushed in  his presence, and he was tolerant or bored,  just as he happened

to be  feeling at the moment.  But he never  displayed a marked interest in  any one of them, for the very good


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 50



Top




Page No 53


reason that he had no such  interest.  To him they were merely  girls, nice enough in their way,  perhaps, but that

way not his.  Most of the town young fellows of his  age he found had a "girl" and  almost every girl had a

"fellow"; there  was calf love in abundance,  but he was a different brand of veal. 

However, a great man must amuse himself, and so he accepted  invitations to church socials and suppers and

to an occasional  dance  or party.  His style of dancing was not that of South Harniss  in the  winter.  It was

common enough at the hotel or the "tea  house" in July  and August when the summer people were there, but

not at the town hall  at the Red Men's Annual Ball in February.  A  fellow who could foxtrot  as he could swept

all before him.  Sam  Thatcher, of last year's class  in the high school, but now clerking  in the drug store, who

had  hitherto reigned as the best "two  stepper" in town, suddenly became  conscious of his feet.  Then,  too, the

contents of the three trunks  which had been sent on from  school were now in evidence.  No Boston or

Brockton "Advanced  Styles" held a candle to those suits which the  tailor of the late  Miguel Carlos had turned

out for his patron's only  son.  No other  eighteenyearolder among the town's yeararound  residents

possessed a suit of evening clothes.  Albert wore his "Tux"  at the  Red Men's Ball and hearts palpitated

beneath new muslin gowns  and  bitter envy stirred beneath the Brockton "Advanced Styles." 

In consequence, by spring the social status of Albert Speranza  among those of his own age in the village had

become something  like  this:  He was in high favor with most of the girls and in  corresponding disfavor with

most of the young fellows.  The girls,  although they agreed that he was "standoffish and kind of queer,"

voted him "just lovely, all the same."  Their envious beaux  referred  to him sneeringly among themselves as a

"stuckup dude."  Some one of  them remembered having been told that Captain Zelotes,  years before,  had

been accustomed to speak of his hated soninlaw  as "the  Portygee."  Behind his back they formed the habit

of  referring to  their new rival in the same way.  The first time  Albert heard himself  called a "Portygee" was

after prayer meeting  on Friday evening, when,  obeying a whim, he had walked home with  Gertie Kendrick,

quite  forgetful of the fact that Sam Thatcher, who  aspired to be Gertie's  "steady," was himself waiting on the

church  steps for that privilege. 

Even then nothing might have come of it had he and Sam not met in  the path as he was sauntering back

across lots to the main road  and  home.  It was a brilliant moonlight night and the pair came  together,  literally,

at the bend where the path turns sharply  around the corner  of Elijah Doane's cranberry shanty.  Sam, plowing

along, head down and  hands in his pockets, swung around that corner  and bumped violently  into Albert, who,

a cigarette between his  lipsout here in the  fields, away from civilization and Captain  Zelotes, was a

satisfyingly  comfortable place to smoke a cigarette  was dreaming dreams of a  future far away from South

Harniss.  Sam  had been thinking of Gertie.  Albert had not.  She had been a mere  incident of the evening; he

had  walked home with her because he  happened to be in the mood for  companionship and she was rather

pretty and always talkative.  His  dreams during the stroll back  alone in the moonlight had been of lofty  things,

of poetry and fame  and high emprise; giggling Gerties had no  place in them.  It was  distinctly different with

Sam Thatcher. 

They crashed together, gasped and recoiled. 

"Oh, I'm sorry!" exclaimed Albert. 

"Can't you see where you're goin', you darned Portygee halfbreed?"  demanded Sam. 

Albert, who had stepped past him, turned and came back. 

"What did you say?" he asked. 

"I said you was a darned halfbreed, and you are.  You're a nogood  Portygee, like your father." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 51



Top




Page No 54


It was all he had time to say.  For the next few minutes he was too  busy to talk.  The Speranzas, father and son,

possessed temperament;  also they possessed temper.  Sam's face, usually placid and  goodnatured, for Sam

was by no means a bad fellow in his way, was  fiery red.  Albert's, on the contrary, went perfectly white.  He

seemed to settle back on his heels and from there almost to fly at  his insulter.  Five minutes or so later they

were both dusty and  dirty and dishevelled and bruised, but Sam was pretty thoroughly  licked.  For one thing,

he had been taken by surprise by his  adversary's quickness; for another, Albert's compulsory training in

athletics at school gave him an advantage.  He was by no means an  unscarred victor, but victor he was.  Sam

was defeated, and very  much  astonished.  He leaned against the cranberry house and held on  to his  nose.  It

had been a large nose in the beginning, it was  larger now. 

Albert stood before him, his facewhere it was not a pleasing  combination of black and bluestill white. 

"If youif you speak of my father or me again like that," he  panted, "I'llI'll kill you!" 

Then he strode off, a bit wobbly on his legs, but with dignity. 

Oddly enough, no one except the two most interested ever knew of  this encounter.  Albert, of course, did not

tell.  He was rather  ashamed of it.  For the son of Miguel Carlos Speranza to conquer  dragons was a worthy

and heroic business, but there seemed to be  mighty little heroism in licking Sam Thatcher behind 'Lije

Doane's  cranberry shack.  And Sam did not tell.  Gertie next day confided  that she didn't care two cents for that

stuckup Al Speranza,  anyway;  she had let him see her home only because Sam had danced so  many times

with Elsie Wixon at the ball that night.  So Sam said  nothing  concerning the fight, explaining the condition of

his nose  by saying  that he had run into something in the dark.  And he did  not appear to  hold a grudge against

his conqueror; on the contrary  when others spoke  of the latter as a "sissy," Sam defended him.  "He may be a

dude," said  Sam; "I don't say he ain't.  But he ain't  no sissy." 

When pressed to tell why he was so certain, his answer was:  "Because he don't act like one."  It was not a

convincing answer,  the  general opinion being that that was exactly how Al Speranza did  act. 

There was one young person in the village toward whom Albert found  himself making exceptions in his

attitude of serenely impersonal  tolerance.  That person was Helen Kendall, the girl who had come  into  his

grandfather's office the first morning of his stay in  South  Harniss.  He was forced to make these exceptions by

the young  lady  herself.  When he met her the second timewhich was after  church on  his first Sundayhis

manner was even more loftily  reserved than  usual.  He had distinct recollections of their first  conversation.

His own part in it had not been brilliant, and in it  he had made the  absurd statementabsurd in the light of

what came  afterthat he was  certainly NOT employed by Z. Snow and Co. 

So he was cool and superior when his grandmother brought them  together after the meeting was over.  If

Helen noticed the  superiority, she was certainly not overawed by it, for she was so  simple and natural and

pleasant that he was obliged to unbend and  be  natural too.  In fact, at their third meeting he himself spoke  of

the  interview in the lumber office and again expressed his  thanks for  warning him of his grandfather's

detestation of  cigarettes. 

"Gee!" he exclaimed, "I'm certainly glad that you put me on to the  old boy's feelings.  I think he'd have

murdered me if he had come  back and found me puffing a Pall Mall in there." 

She smiled.  "He does hate them, doesn't he?" she said. 

"Hate them!  I should say he did.  Hating cigarettes is about the  only point where he and Issy get along without

an argument.  If a  traveler for a hardware house comes into the office smoking a cig,  Issy opens all the

windows to let the smell out, and Grandfather  opens the door to throw the salesman out.  Well, not exactly to


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 52



Top




Page No 55


throw  him out, of course, but he never buys a single cent's worth  of a  cigarette smoker." 

Helen glanced at him.  "You must be awfully glad you're not a  traveling salesman," she said demurely. 

Albert did not know exactly what to make of that remark.  He, in  his turn, looked at her, but she was grave

and quite unconcerned. 

"Why?" he asked, after a moment. 

"Whywhat?" 

"Why ought I to be glad I'm not a traveling salesman?" 

"Oh, I don't know.  It just seemed to me that you ought, that's  all." 

"But why?" 

"Well, if you were you wouldn't make a great hit with your  grandfather, would you?" 

"Eh? . . .  Oh, you mean because I smoke.  Say, YOU'RE not silly  enough to be down on cigarettes the way

grandfather is, are you?" 

"Noo, I'm not down on them, especially.  I'm not very well  acquainted with them." 

"Neither is he.  He never smoked one in his life.  It's just  country prejudice, that's all." 

"Well, I live in the country, too, you know." 

"Yes, but you're different." 

"How do you know I am?" 

"Oh, because any one can see you are."  The manner in which this  remark was made, a manner implying a

wide knowledge of humanity and  a  hint of personal interest and discriminating appreciation, had  been  found

quite effective by the precocious young gentleman  uttering it.  With variations to suit the case and the

individual  it had been  pleasantly received by several of the Misses Bradshaw's  pupils.  He  followed it with

another equally tried and trustworthy. 

"Say," he added, "would YOU rather I didn't smoke?" 

The obvious reply should have been, "Oh, would you stop if I asked  you to?"  But Helen Kendall was a most

disconcerting girl.  Instead  of purring a pleased recognition of the implied flattery, she  laughed  merrily.  The

Speranza dignity was hurt. 

"What is there to laugh at?" he demanded.  "Are you laughing at  me?" 

The answer was as truthful as truth itself. 

"Why, of course I am," she replied; and then completed his  discomfiture by adding, "Why should I care

whether you smoke or  not?  You had better ask your grandfather that question, I should  think." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 53



Top




Page No 56


Now Alberto Miguel Carlos Speranza had not been accustomed to this  sort of treatment from young persons

of the other sex, and he  walked  away in a huff.  But the unusual is always attractive, and  the next  time he and

Miss Kendall met he was as gracious and  cordial as ever.  But it was not long before he learned that the

graciousness was, in  her case, a mistake.  Whenever he grew lofty,  she took him down,  laughed at him with

complete frankness, and  refused to treat him as  anything but a boy.  So they gradually grew  friendly, and

when they  met at parties or church socials he spent  most of the time in her  company, or, rather, he would

have so spent  it had she permitted.  But  she was provokingly impartial and was  quite as likely to refuse a

dance with him to sit out one with Sam  Thatcher or Ben Hammond or any  other village youth of her

acquaintance.  However, although she piqued  and irritated him, he  was obliged to admit to his inner

consciousness  that she was the  most interesting person he had yet discovered in  South Harniss,  also that even

in the eyes of such connoisseurs as his  fellow  members of the senior class at school she would have been

judged a  "good looker," in spite of her country clothes. 

He met her father, of course.  The Reverend Mr. Kendall was a  dreamy  little old gentleman with white hair

and the stooped shoulders  of a  student.  Everybody liked him, and it was for that reason  principally  that he

was still the occupant of the Congregational  pulpit, for to  quote Captain Zelotes, his sermons were inclined to

be  like the  sandy road down to Setuckit Point, "ten mile long and dry all  the  way."  He was a widower and his

daughter was his companion and  managing housekeeper.  There was a halfgrown girl, one of the  numerous

Price family, a cousin of Issachar's, who helped out with  the sweeping, dishwashing and cooking, but Helen

was the real head  of the household. 

"And she's a capable one, too," declared Mrs. Snow, when at supper  one evening Helen's name had come into

the conversation.  "I  declare  when I was there yesterday to see the minister about  readin' poetry to  us at

sewin'circle next Monday that parlor was  as neat as wax.  And  'twas all Helen's work that kept it so, that  was

plain enough.  You  could see her way of settin' a vase or  puttin' on a table cloth  wherever you looked.  Nobody

else has just  that way.  And she does it  after school or before school or 'most  any odd time.  And whatever  'tis

is done right." 

The housekeeper put in a word.  "There's no doubt about that," she  said, "and there ain't any more doubt that

she don't get much help  from her pa or that Maria B."  There were so many Prices within the  township limits

that individuals were usually distinguished by  their  middle initial.  "As for Mr. Kendall," went on Rachel, "he

moves with  his head in the clouds and his feet cruisin' with nobody  at the wheel  twothirds of the time.

Emma Smith says to me  yesterday, says she,  'Mr. Kendall is a saint on earth, ain't he,'  says she.  'Yes,' says I,

'and he'll be one in heaven any minute if  he goes stumblin' acrost the  road in front of Doctor Holliday's

automobile the way I see him  yesterday.'  The doctor put on the  brakes with a slam and a yell.  The  minister

stopped right there in  the middle of the road with the front  wheels of that auto not  MORE'N two foot from his

old baggy trousers'  knees, and says he,  'Eh?  Did you want me, Doctor?'  The doctor  fetched a long breath.

'Why, no, Mr. Kendall,' he says, 'I didn't, but  I come darn nigh  gettin' you.'  I don't know what WOULD

become of him  if he didn't  have Helen to look out for him." 

As they came to know each other better their conversation dealt  with matters more personal.  They sometimes

spoke of plans for the  future.  Albert's plans and ambitions were lofty, but rather vague.  Helen's were practical

and definite.  She was to graduate from high  school that spring.  Then she was hoping to teach in the primary

school there in the village; the selectmen had promised her the  opportunity. 

"But, of course," she said, "I don't mean to stay here always.  When I can, after I have saved some money and

if Father doesn't  need  me too badly, I shall go away somewhere, to Bridgewater, or  perhaps to  Radcliffe, and

study.  I want to specialize in my  teaching, you know." 

Albert regarded her with amused superiority. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 54



Top




Page No 57


"I don't see why on earth you are so anxious to be a schoolmarm,"  he said.  "That's the last job I'd want." 

Her answer was given promptly, but without the least trace of  temper.  That was one of the most provoking

things about this girl,  she would not lose her temper.  He usually lost his trying to make  her.  She spoke now,

pleasantly, and deliberately, but as if she  were  stating an undesirable fact. 

"I think it would be the last one you would get," she said. 

"Why?  Great Scott!  I guess I could teach school if I wanted to.  But you bet I wouldn't want to! . . .  NOW

what are you laughing  at?" 

"I'm not laughing." 

"Yes, you are.  I can always tell when you're laughing; you get  that look in your eyes, that sort ofof  Oh, I

can't tell you  what  kind of look it is, but it makes me mad.  It's the same kind  of look  my grandfather has, and

I could punch him for it sometimes.  Why should  you and he think I'm not going to amount to anything?" 

"I don't think so.  And I'm sure he doesn't either.  And I wasn't  laughing at you.  Or, if I was, itit was only

because" 

"Well, because what?" 

"Oh, because you are so AWFULLY sure you knowwell, know more than  most people." 

"Meaning I'm stuck on myself, I suppose.  Well, now I tell you I'm  not going to hang around in this onehorse

town all my life to  please  grandfather or any one else." 

When he mentioned his determination to win literary glory she was  always greatly interested.  Dreams of

histrionic achievement were  more coldly received.  The daughter of a New England country  clergyman, even

in these days of broadening horizons, could  scarcely  be expected to look with favor upon an actor's career. 

June came and with it the first of the summer visitors.  For the  next three months Albert was happy with a new

set of acquaintances.  They were HIS kind, these young folks from the city, and his spare  moments were for

the most part spent in their society.  He was  popular with them, too.  Some of them thought it queer that he

should  be living all the year in the village and keeping books for  a concern  like Z. Snow and Co., but juvenile

society is tolerant  and a youth who  could sing passably, dance wonderfully and, above  all, was as  beautifully

picturesque as Albert Speranza, was  welcomed, especially  by the girls.  So the Saturdays and Sundays  and

evenings of that  summer were pleasant for him.  He saw little  of Helen or Gertie  Kendrick while the hotel or

the cottages  remained open. 

Then came the fall and another long, dreary winter.  Albert plodded  on at his desk or in the yard, following

Mr. Keeler's suggestions,  obeying his grandfather's orders, tormenting Issy, doing his daily  stint because he

had to, not because he liked it.  For amusement he  read a good deal, went to the usual number of sociables and

entertainments, and once took part in amateur theatricals, a play  given by the church society in the town hall.

There was where he  shone.  As the dashing young hero he was resplendent.  Gertie  Kendrick gazed upon him

from the third settee center with shining  eyes.  When he returned home after it was over his grandmother and

Mrs. Ellis overwhelmed him with praises. 

"I declare you was perfectly splendid, Albert!" exclaimed Olive.  "I was so proud of you I didn't know what to

do." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 55



Top




Page No 58


Rachel looked upon him as one might look upon a god from Olympus. 

"All I could think of was Robert Penfold," she said.  "I says so to  Laban:  'Laban,' says I, ain't he Robert

Penfold and nobody else?'  There you was, tellin' that Hannibal Ellis that you was innocent  and  some day the

world would know you was, just the way Robert  Penfold  done in the book.  I never did like that Hannie Ellis!" 

Mrs. Snow smiled.  "Mercy, Rachel," she said, "I hope you're not  blamin' Hannie because of what he did in

that play.  That was his  part, he had to do it." 

But Rachel was not convinced.  "He didn't have to be so everlastin'  mean and spiteful about it, anyhow," she

declared.  "But there,  that  family of Ellises never did amount to nothin' much.  But, as I  said to  Laban, Albert,

you was Robert Penfold all over." 

"What did Labe say to that?" asked Albert, laughing. 

"He never had a chance to say nothin'.  Afore he could answer,  that Maria B. Priceshe was settin' right back

of me and eatin'  molasses candy out of a rattly paper bag till I thought I SHOULD  dieshe leaned forward

and she whispered:  'He looks more to me  like  that Stevie D. that used to work for Cap'n Crowell over to  the

Center.  Stevie D. had curly hair like that and HE was part  Portygee, you  remember; though there was a little

nigger blood in  him, too,' she  says.  I could have shook her!  And then she went to  rattlin' that bag  again." 

Even Mr. Keeler congratulated him at the office next morning.  "You  done well, Al," he said.

"Yesyesyes.  You done fustrate,  fustrate." 

His grandfather was the only one who refused to enthuse. 

"Well," inquired Captain Zelotes, sitting down at his desk and  glancing at his grandson over his spectacles,

"do you cal'late to  be  able to get down to earth this mornin' far enough to figger up  the  payroll?  You can put

what you made from playactin' on a  separate  sheet.  It's about as much as the average person makes at  that

job,"  he added. 

Albert's face flushed.  There were times when he hated his  grandfather.  Mr. Keeler, a moment later, put a

hand on his  shoulder. 

"You mustn't mind the old man, Al," he whispered.  "I expect that  seein' you last night brought your dad's job

back to him strong.  He  can't bear playactin', you know, on your dad's account.  Yes  yes.  That was it.

Yesyesyes." 

It may have been a truthful explanation, but as an apology it was a  limited success. 

"My father was a gentleman, at any rate," snapped Albert.  Laban  opened his mouth to reply, but closed it

again and walked back to  his  books. 

In May, which was an unusually balmy month, the Congregational  Sunday School gave an automobile

excursion and boxluncheon party  at  High Point Light down at Trumet.  As Rachel Ellis said, it was  pretty

early for picnickin', but if the Almighty's season was ahead  of time  there didn't seem to be any real good

reason why one of his  Sunday  schools shouldn't be.  And, which was the principal excuse  for the  hurry, the

hotel busses could be secured, which would not  be the case  after the season opened. 

Albert went to the picnic.  He was not very keen on going, but his  grandfather had offered him a holiday for

the purpose, and it was  one  of his principles never to refuse a chance to get away from  that  office.  Besides, a


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 56



Top




Page No 59


number of the young people of his age were  going,  and Gertie Kendrick had been particularly insistent. 

"You just MUST come, Al," she said.  "It won't be any fun at all if  you don't come." 

It is possible that Gertie found it almost as little fun when he  did come.  He happened to be in one of his

moods that day;  "Portygee  streaks," his grandfather termed these moods, and told  Olive that they  were "that

playactor breakin' out in him."  He  talked but little  during the ride down in the bus, refused to sing  when

called upon,  and, after dinner, when the dancing in the  pavilion was going on,  stepped quietly out of the side

door and  went tramping along the edge  of the bluff, looking out over the sea  or down to the beach, where,

one hundred and fifty feet below, the  big waves were curling over to  crash into a creamy mass of froth  and

edge the strand with lacy  ripples. 

The high clay bluffs of Trumet are unique.  No other part of the  Cape shows anything just like them.  High

Point Light crowns their  highest and steepest point and is the flashing beacon the rays of  which spell

"America" to the incoming liner Boston bound. 

Along the path skirting the edge of the bluff Albert strolled, his  hands in his pockets and his thoughts almost

anywhere except on the  picnic and the picnickers of the South Harniss Congregational  Church.  His particular

mood on this day was one of discontent and  rebellion  against the fate which had sentenced him to the

assistant  bookkeeper's  position in the office of Z. Snow and Co.  At no time  had he  reconciled himself to the

idea of that position as a  permanent one;  some day, somehow he was going to break away and

domarvelous things.  But occasionally, and usually after a  disagreeable happening in the  office, he awoke

from his youthful  day dreams of glorious futures to a  realization of the dismal to  day. 

The happening which had brought about realization in this instance  was humorous in the eyes of twothirds

of South Harniss's  population.  They were chuckling over it yet.  The majority of  the remaining third  were

shocked.  Albert, who was primarily  responsible for the whole  affair, was neither amused nor shocked;  he was

angry and humiliated. 

The Reverend Seabury Calvin, of Providence, R. I., had arrived in  town and opened his summer cottage

unusually early in the season.  What was quite as important, Mrs. Seabury Calvin had arrived with  him.  The

Reverend Calvin, whose stay was in this case merely  temporary, was planning to build an addition to his

cottage porch.  Mrs. Calvin, who was the head of the summer "Welfare Workers,"  whatever they were, had

called a meeting at the Calvin house to  make  Welfare plans for the season. 

The lumber for the new porch was ordered of Z. Snow and Co.  The  Reverend Calvin ordered it himself in

person.  Albert received the  order. 

"I wish this delivered tomorrow without fail," said Mr. Calvin.  Albert promised. 

But promises are not always easy to keep.  One of Z. Snow and Co.'s  teams was busy hauling lumber for the

new schoolhouse at Bayport.  The  other Issachar had commandeered for deliveries at Harniss  Center and

refused to give up his claim.  And Laban Keeler, as it  happened, was  absent on one of his "vacations."  Captain

Zelotes  was attending a  directors' meeting at Osham and from there was  going to Boston for a  day's stay. 

"The ship's in your hands, Al," he had said to his grandson.  "Let  me see how you handle her." 

So, in spite of Albert's promise, the Calvin lumber was not  delivered on time.  The Reverend gentleman called

to ask why.  His  manner was anything but receptive so far as excuses were concerned. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 57



Top




Page No 60


"Young man," he said loftily, "I am accustomed to do business with  business people.  Did you or did you not

promise to deliver my  order  yesterday?" 

"Why, yes sir, I promised, but we couldn't do it.  We" 

"I don't care to know why you didn't do it.  The fact that you did  not is sufficient.  Will that order of mine be

delivered today?" 

"If it is a possible thing, Mr. Calvin, it" 

"Pardon me.  Will it be delivered?" 

The Speranza temper was rising.  "Yes," said the owner of that  temper, succinctly. 

"Does yes mean yes, in this case; or does it mean what it meant  before?" 

"I have told you why" 

"Never mind.  Young man, if that lumber is not delivered today I  shall cancel the order.  Do you

understand?" 

Albert swallowed hard.  "I tell you, Mr. Calvin, that it shall be  delivered," he said.  "And it will be." 

But delivering it was not so easy.  The team simply could NOT be  taken off the schoolhouse job, fulfillment

of a contract was  involved  there.  And the other horse had gone lame and Issachar  swore by all  that was

solemn that the animal must not be used. 

"Let old Calvin wait till tomorrow," said Issy.  "You can use the  big team then.  And Cap'n Lote'll be home,

besides." 

But Albert was not going to let "old Calvin" wait.  That lumber was  going to be delivered, if he had to carry it

himself, stick by  stick.  He asked Mr. Price if an extra team might not be hired. 

"Ain't none," said Issy.  "Besides, where'd your granddad's profits  be if you spent money hirin' extry teams to

haul that little mite  of  stuff?  I've been in this business a good long spell, and I tell  you" 

He did not get a chance to tell it, for Albert walked off and left  him.  At halfpast twelve that afternoon he

engaged "Vessie" Young  christened Sylvester Young and a brother to the driver of the  depot  wagonto

haul the Calvin lumber in his rickety, fragrant old  wagon.  Simpson Mullencommonly called "Simp"was

to help in the  delivery. 

Against violent protests from Issy, who declared that Ves Young's  rattletrap wan't fit to do nothin' but haul

fish heads to the  fertilizer factory, the Calvin beams and boards were piled high on  the wagon and with Ves

on the driver's seat and Simp perched, like  a  disreputable carrion crow on top of the load, the equipage

started. 

"There!" exclaimed Albert, with satisfaction.  "He can't say it  wasn't delivered this time according to

promise." 

"Godfreys!" snorted Issy, gazing after the departing wagon.  "He  won't be able to say nothin' when he sees

that gitupand smells  it.  Ves carts everything in that cart from dead cows to gurry  barrels.  Whew!  I'd hate


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 58



Top




Page No 61


to have to set on that porch when 'twas  built of that  lumber.  And, unless I'm mistook, Ves and Simp had  been

havin' a  little somethin' strong to take, too." 

Mr. Price, as it happened, was not "mistook."  Mr. Young had, as  the South Harniss saying used to be, "had a

jug come down" on the  train from Boston that very morning.  The jug was under the seat of  his wagon and its

contents had already been sampled by him and by  Simp.  The journey to the Calvin cottage was enlivened by

frequent  stops for refreshment. 

Consequently it happened that, just as Mrs. Calvin's gathering of  Welfare Workers had reached the cake and

chocolate stage in their  proceedings and just as the Reverend Mr. Calvin had risen by  invitation to say a few

words of encouragement, the westerly wind  blowing in at the open windows bore to the noses and ears of the

assembled faithful a perfume and a sound neither of which was  sweet. 

Above the rattle and squeak of the Young wagon turning in at the  Calvin gate arose the voices of Vessie and

Simp uplifted in song. 

"'Here's to the good old whiskey, drink 'er daown,'" sang Mr.  Young. 

"'Here's to the good old whiskey,  Drink 'er daown!  Here's to the  good old whiskey,  It makes you feel so

frisky,  Drink 'er' 

Git up there, blank blank ye!  What the blankety blank you stoppin'  here for?  Git up!" 

The horse was not the only creature that got up.  Mrs. Calvin rose  from her chair and gazed in horror at the

window.  Her husband,  being  already on his feet, could not rise but he broke off short  the opening  sentence of

his "few words" and stared and listened.  Each Welfare  Worker stared and listened also. 

"Git up, you blankety blank blank," repeated Ves Young, with  cheerful enthusiasm.  Mr. Mullen, from the top

of the load of  lumber,  caroled dreamily on: 

"'Here's to the good old rum,  Drink 'er daown!  Here's to the good  old rum,  Drink 'er daown!  Here's to the

good old rum,  Ain't you glad  that you've got some?  Drink 'er daown!  Drink 'er daown!  Drink 'er  daown!'" 

And floating, as it were, upon the waves of melody came the odor of  the Young wagon, an odor combining

deceased fish and late lamented  cow and goodness knows what beside. 

The dissipated vehicle stopped beneath the parlor windows of the  Calvin cottage.  Mr. Young called to his

assistant. 

"Here we be, Simp!" he yelled.  "Aall ashore that's goin' ashore!  Wake up there, you unmentionably

described old rum barrel and help  unload this everlastingly condemned lumber." 

Mr. Calvin rushed to the window.  "What does this mean?" he  demanded, in frothing indignation. 

Vessie waved at him reassuringly.  "'Sall right, Mr. Calvin," he  shouted.  "Here's your lumber from Zelotes

Snow and Co., South  Harniss, Mass., U. S. A.  'Sall right.  Let 'er go, Simp!  Let 'er  blanketyblank go!" 

Mr. Mullen responded with alacrity and a whoop.  A half dozen  boards crashed to the ground beneath the

parlor windows.  Mrs.  Calvin  rushed to her husband's side. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 59



Top




Page No 62


"This is DREADFUL, Seabury!" she cried.  "Send those creatures  and  and that horrible wagon away at

once." 

The Reverend Calvin tried to obey orders.  He commanded Mr. Young  to go away from there that very

moment.  Vessie was surprised. 

"Ain't this your lumber?" he demanded. 

"It doesn't make any difference whether it is or not, I" 

"Didn't you tell Z. Snow and Co. that this lumber'd got to be  delivered today or you'd cancel the order?" 

"Never mind.  That is my business, sir.  You" 

"Hold on!  Hoold on!  _I_ got a business, too.  My business is  deliverin' what I'm paid to deliver.  Al

Speranzy he says to me:  'Ves,' he says, 'if you don't deliver that lumber to old man Calvin  today you don't

get no money, see.  Will you deliver it?'  Says I,  'You bet your crashetyblank life I'll (hic) d'liver it!  What I

say  I'll do, I'll do!'  And I'm deliverin' it, ain't I?  Hey?  Ain't I?  Well, then, what the"  And so forth and at

length,  while Mrs.  Calvin collapsed half fainting in an easychair, and  horrified Welfare  Workers covered

their earsand longed to cover  their noses. 

The lumber was delivered that day.  Its delivery was, from the  viewpoint of Messrs. Young and Mullen, a

success.  The spring  meeting  of the Welfare Workers was not a success. 

The following day Mr. Calvin called at the office of Z. Snow and  Co.  He had things to say and said them.

Captain Zelotes, who had  returned from Boston, listened.  Then he called his grandson. 

"Tell him what you've just told me, Mr. Calvin," he said. 

The reverend gentleman told it, with added details. 

"And in my opinion, if you'll excuse me, Captain Snow," he said, in  conclusion, "this young man knew what

he was doing when he sent  those  drunken scoundrels to my house.  He did it purposely, I am  convinced." 

Captain Zelotes looked at him. 

"Why?" he asked. 

"Why, becausebecause ofof what I said to himererwhen I  called here yesterday morning.  HeI

presume he took offense and  and this outrage is the result.  I am convinced that" 

"Wait a minute.  What did you say for him to take offense at?" 

"I demanded that order should be delivered as promised.  I am  accustomed to do business with business men

and" 

"Hold on just a minute more, Mr. Calvin.  We don't seem to be  gettin' at the clam in this shell as fast as we'd

ought to.  Al,  what  have you got to say about all this business?" 

Albert was white, almost as white as when he fought Sam Thatcher,  but as he stood up to Sam so also did he

face the irate clergyman.  He  told of the latter's visit to the office, of the threat to  cancel the  order unless


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 60



Top




Page No 63


delivery was promised that day, of how his  promise to  deliver was exacted, of his effort to keep that promise. 

"I HAD to deliver it, Grandfather," he said hotly.  "He had all but  called me a liar andand by George, I

wasn't going to" 

His grandfather held up a warning hand. 

"Sshh!  Ssh!" he said.  "Go on with your yarn, boy." 

Albert told of the lame horse, of his effort to hire another team,  and finally how in desperation he had

engaged Ves Young as a last  resort.  The captain's face was serious but there was the twinkle  under his heavy

brows.  He pulled at his beard. 

"Humph!" he grunted.  "Did you know Ves and Simp had been drinkin'  when you hired 'em?" 

"Of course I didn't.  After they had gone Issy said he suspected  that they had been drinking a little, but _I_

didn't know it.  All  I  wanted was to prove to HIM," with a motion toward Mr. Calvin,  "that I  kept my word." 

Captain Zelotes pulled at his beard.  "All right, Al," he said,  after a moment; "you can go." 

Albert went out of the private office.  After he had gone the  captain turned to his irate customer. 

"I'm sorry this happened, Mr. Calvin," he said, "and if Keeler or I  had been here it probably wouldn't.  But,"

he added, "as far as I  can  see, the boy did what he thought was the best thing to do.  And," the  twinkle

reappeared in the gray eyes, "you sartinly did  get your lumber  when 'twas promised." 

Mr. Calvin stiffened.  He had his good points, but he suffered from  what Laban Keeler once called "ingrowin'

importance," and this  ailment often affected his judgment.  Also he had to face Mrs.  Calvin  upon his return

home. 

"Do I understand," he demanded, "that you are excusing that young  man for putting that outrage upon me?" 

"Well, as I say, I'm sorry it happened.  But, honest, Mr. Calvin,  I don't know's the boy's to blame so very

much, after all.  He  delivered your lumber, and that's somethin'." 

"Is that all you have to say, Captain Snow?  Is thatthat impudent  young clerk of yours to go unpunished?" 

"Why, yes, I guess likely he is." 

"Then I shall NEVER buy another dollar's worth of your house again,  sir." 

Captain Zelotes bowed.  "I'm sorry to lose your trade, Mr. Calvin,"  he said.  "Good mornin'." 

Albert, at his desk in the outer office, was waiting rebelliously  to be called before his grandfather and

upbraided.  And when so  called he was in a mood to speak his mind.  He would say a few  things, no matter

what happened in consequence.  But he had no  chance  to say them.  Captain Zelotes did not mention the

Calvin  affair to  him, either that day or afterward.  Albert waited and  waited,  expecting trouble, but the trouble,

so far as his  grandfather was  concerned, did not materialize.  He could not  understand it. 

But if in that office there was silence concerning the unusual  delivery of the lumber for the Calvin porch,

outside there was talk  enough and to spare.  Each Welfare Worker talked when she reached  home and the


The Portygee

CHAPTER V 61



Top




Page No 64


story spread.  Small boys shouted after Albert when he  walked down the main street, demanding to know how

Ves Young's cart  was smellin' these days.  When he entered the post office some one  in  the crowd was almost

sure to hum, "Here's to the good old  whiskey,  drink her down."  On the train on the way to the picnic,  girls

and  young fellows had slyly nagged him about it.  The affair  and its  consequence were the principal causes of

his mood that day;  this  particular "Portygee streak" was due to it. 

The path along the edge of the high bluff entered a grove of  scraggy pitch pines about a mile from the

lighthouse and the picnic  ground.  Albert stalked gloomily through the shadows of the little  grove and

emerged on the other side.  There he saw another person  ahead of him on the path.  This other person was a

girl.  He  recognized her even at this distance.  She was Helen Kendall, 

She and he had not been quite as friendly of late.  Not that there  was any unfriendliness between them, but she

was teaching in the  primary school and, as her father had not been well, spent most of  her evenings at home.

During the early part of the winter he had  called occasionally but, somehow, it had seemed to him that she

was  not quite as cordial, or as interested in his society and  conversation  as she used to be.  It was but a slight

indifference  on her part,  perhaps, but Albert Speranza was not accustomed to  indifference on the  part of his

feminine acquaintances.  So he did  not call again.  He had  seen her at the picnic ground and they had  spoken,

but not at any  length. 

And he did not care to speak with her now.  He had left the  pavilion because of his desire to be alone, and that

desire still  persisted.  However, she was some little distance ahead of him and  he  waited in the edge of the

grove until she should go over the  crest of  the little hill at the next point. 

But she did not go over the crest.  Instead, when she reached it,  she walked to the very edge of the bluff and

stood there looking  off  at the ocean.  The sea breeze ruffled her hair and blew her  skirts  about her and she

made a pretty picture.  But to Albert it  seemed that  she was standing much too near the edge.  She could not

see it, of  course, but from where he stood he could see that the  bank at that  point was much undercut by the

winter rains and winds,  and although  the sod looked firm enough from above, in reality  there was little to

support it.  Her standing there made him a  trifle uneasy and he had a  mind to shout and warn her.  He

hesitated, however, and as he watched  she stepped back of her own  accord.  He turned, reentered the grove

and started to walk back  to the pavilion. 

He had scarcely done so when he heard a short scream followed by a  thump and a rumbling, rattling sound.

He turned like a flash, his  heart pounding violently. 

The bluff edge was untenanted.  A semicircular section of the sod  where Helen had stood was missing.  From

the torn opening where it  had been rose a yellow cloud of dust. 

CHAPTER VI

A goodly number of the South Harniss "natives," those who had not  seen him play tennis, would have been

willing to swear that running  was, for Albert Speranza, an impossibility.  His usual gait was a  rather languid

saunter.  They would have changed their minds had  they  seen him now. 

He ran along that path as he had run in school at the last track  meet, where he had been second in the

hundredyard dash.  He  reached  the spot where the sod had broken and, dropping on his  knees, looked

fearfully over.  The dust was still rising, the sand  and pebbles were  still rattling in a diminishing shower down

to the  beach so far below.  But he did not see what he had so feared to  see. 

What he did see, however, was neither pleasant nor altogether  reassuring.  The bluff below the sod at its top


The Portygee

CHAPTER VI 62



Top




Page No 65


dropped sheer and  undercut for perhaps ten feet.  Then the sand and clay sloped  outward  and the slope

extended down for another fifty feet, its  surface broken  by occasional clinging chunks of beach grass.  Then  it

broke sharply  again, a straight drop of eighty feet to the  mounds and dunes  bordering the beach. 

Helen had of course fallen straight to the upper edge of the slope,  where she had struck feet first, and from

there had slid and rolled  to the very edge of the long drop to the beach.  Her skirt had  caught  in the branches

of an enterprising bayberry bush which had  managed to  find roothold there, and to this bush and a clump of

beach grass she  was clinging, her hands outstretched and her body  extended along the  edge of the clay

precipice. 

Albert gasped. 

"Helen!" he called breathlessly. 

She turned her head and looked up at him.  Her face was white, but  she did not scream. 

"Helen!" cried Albert, again.  "Helen, do you hear me?" 

"Yes." 

"Are you badly hurt?" 

"No.  No, I don't think so." 

"Can you hold on just as you are for a few minutes?" 

"Yes, II think so." 

"You've got to, you know.  Here!  You're not going to faint, are  you?" 

"No, II don't think I am." 

"You can't!  You mustn't!  Here!  Don't you do it!  Stop!" 

There was just a trace of his grandfather in the way he shouted the  order.  Whether or not the vigor of the

command produced the result  is a question, but at any rate she did not faint. 

"Now you stay right where you are," he ordered again.  "And hang on  as tight as you can.  I'm coming down." 

Come down he did, swinging over the brink with his face to the  bank, dropping on his toes to the upper edge

of the slope and  digging  boots and fingers into the clay to prevent sliding further. 

"Hang on!" he cautioned, over his shoulder.  "I'll be there in a  second.  There!  Now wait until I get my feet

braced.  Now give me  your handyour left hand.  Hold on with your right." 

Slowly and cautiously, clinging to his hand, he pulled her away  from the edge of the precipice and helped her

to scramble up to  where  he clung.  There she lay and panted.  He looked at her  apprehensively. 

"Don't go and faint now, or any foolishness like that," he ordered  sharply. 

"No, no, I won't.  I'll try not to.  But how are we ever going to  climb upup there?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VI 63



Top




Page No 66


Above them and at least four feet out of reach, even if they stood  up, and that would be a frightfully risky

proceeding, the sod  projected over their heads like the eaves of a house. 

Helen glanced up at it and shuddered. 

"Oh, how CAN we?" she gasped. 

"We can't.  And we won't try." 

"Shall we call for help?" 

"Not much use.  Nobody to hear us.  Besides, we can always do that  if we have to.  I think I see a way out of

the mess.  If we can't  get  up, perhaps we can get down." 

"Get DOWN?" 

"Yes, it isn't all as steep as it is here.  I believe we might sort  of zigzag down if we were careful.  You hold on

here just as you  are; I'm going to see what it looks like around this next point." 

The "point" was merely a projection of the bluff about twenty feet  away.  He crawfished along the face of the

slope, until he could  see  beyond it.  Helen kept urging him to be carefuloh, be  careful! 

"Of course I'll be careful," he said curtly.  "I don't want to  break my neck.  Yesyes, by George, it IS easier

around there!  We  could get down a good way.  Here, here; don't start until you take  my  hand.  And be sure

your feet are braced before you move.  Come  on,  now." 

"II don't believe I can." 

"Of course you can.  You've GOT to.  Come on.  Don't look down.  Look at the sand right in front of you." 

Getting around that point was a decidedly ticklish operation, but  they managed it, he leading the way, making

sure of his foothold  before moving and then setting her foot in the print his own had  made.  On the other side

of the projection the slope was less  abrupt  and extended much nearer to the ground below.  They  zigzagged

down  until nearly to the edge of the steep drop.  Then  Albert looked about  for a new path to safety.  He found

it still  farther on. 

"It takes us down farther," he said, "and there are bushes to hold  on to after we get there.  Come on, Helen!

Brace up now, be a  sport!" 

She was trying her best to obey orders, but being a sport was no  slight undertaking under the circumstances.

When they reached the  clump of bushes her guide ordered her to rest. 

"Just stop and catch your breath," he said.  "The rest is going to  be easier, I think.  And we haven't so very far

to go." 

He was too optimistic.  It was anything but easy; in fact, the last  thirty feet was almost a tumble, owing to the

clay giving way  beneath  their feet.  But there was soft sand to tumble into and  they reached  the beach safe,

though in a dishevelled, scratched and  thoroughly  smeared condition.  Then Helen sat down and covered her

face with her  hands.  Her rescuer gazed triumphantly up at the  distant rim of broken  sod and grinned. 

"There, by George!" he exclaimed.  "We did it, didn't we?  Say,  that was fun!" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VI 64



Top




Page No 67


She removed her hands and looked at him. 

"WHAT did you say it was?" she faltered. 

"I said it was fun.  It was great!  Like something out of a book,  eh?" 

She began to laugh hysterically.  He turned to her in indignant  surprise.  "What are you laughing at?" he

demanded. 

"Ohoh, don't, please!  Just let me laugh.  If I don't laugh I  shall cry, and I don't want to do that.  Just don't

talk to me for  a  few minutes, that's all." 

When the few minutes were over she rose to her feet. 

"Now we must get back to the pavilion, I suppose," she said.  "My,  but we are sights, though!  Do let's see if

we can't make ourselves  a  little more presentable." 

She did her best to wipe off the thickest of the clay smears with  her handkerchief, but the experiment was

rather a failure.  As they  started to walk back along the beach she suddenly turned to him and  said: 

"I haven't told you howhow much obliged I am forfor what you  did.  If you hadn't come, I don't know

what would have happened to  me." 

"Oh, that's all right," he answered lightly.  He was reveling in  the dramatic qualities of the situation.  She did

not speak again  for  some time and he, too, walked on in silence enjoying his day  dream.  Suddenly he became

aware that she was looking at him  steadily and  with an odd expression on her face. 

"What is it?" he asked.  "Why do you look at me that way?" 

Her answer was, as usual, direct and frank. 

"I was thinking about you," she said.  "I was thinking that I must  have been mistaken, partly mistaken, at

least." 

"Mistaken?  About me, do you mean?" 

"Yes; I had made up my mind that you werewell, one sort of  fellow, and now I see that you are an entirely

different sort.  That  is, you've shown that you can be different." 

"What on earth do you mean by that?" 

"Why, I meanI mean  Oh, I'm sure I had better not say it.  You  won't like it, and will think I had better

mind my own affairs  which I should do, of course." 

"Go on; say it." 

She looked at him again, evidently deliberating whether or not to  speak her thought.  Then she said: 

"Well, I will say it.  Not that it is really my business, but  because in a way it is begging your pardon, and I

ought to do that.  You see, I had begun to believe that you werethat you werewell,  that you were not

veryvery active, you know." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VI 65



Top




Page No 68


"Active?  Say, look here, Helen!  What" 

"Oh, I don't wonder you don't understand.  I mean that you were  ratherrather fond of not doing

muchofof" 

"Eh?  Not doing much?  That I was lazy, do you mean?" 

"Why, not exactly lazy, perhaps, butbut  Oh, how CAN I say just  what I mean!  I mean that you were

always saying that you didn't  like  the work in your grandfather's office." 

"Which I don't." 

"And that some day you were going to do something else." 

Which I am." 

"Write or act or do something" 

"Yes, and that's true, too." 

"But you don't, you know.  You don't do anything.  You've been  talking that way ever since I knew you,

calling this a onehorse  town  and saying how you hated it, and that you weren't going to  waste your  life here,

and all that, but you keep staying here and  doing just the  same things.  The last long talk we had together you

told me you knew  you could write poems and plays and all sorts of  things, you just felt  that you could.  You

were going to begin  right away.  You said that  some months ago, and you haven't done  any writing at all.

Now, have  you?" 

"Noo.  No, but that doesn't mean I shan't by and by." 

"But you didn't begin as you said you would.  That was last spring,  more than a year ago, and I don't believe

you have tried to write a  single poem.  Have you?" 

He was beginning to be ruffled.  It was quite unusual for any one,  most of all for a girl, to talk to him in this

way. 

"I don't know that I have," he said loftily.  "And, anyway, I don't  see that it isis" 

"My business whether you have or not.  I know it isn't.  I'm sorry  I spoke.  But, you see, I  Oh, well, never

mind.  And I do want  you  to know how much I appreciate your helping me as you did just  now.  I  don't know

how to thank you for that." 

But thanks were not exactly what he wanted at that moment. 

"Go ahead and say the rest," he ordered, after a short pause.  "You've said so much that you had better finish

it, seems to me.  I'm  lazy, you think.  What else am I?" 

"You're brave, awfully brave, and you are so strong and quickyes,  andandmasterful; I think that is the

right word.  You ordered  me  about as if I were a little girl.  I didn't want to keep still,  as you  told me to; I

wanted to scream.  And I wanted to faint, too,  but you  wouldn't let me.  I had never seen you that way before.  I

didn't know  you could be like that.  That is what surprises me so.  That is why I  said you were so different." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VI 66



Top




Page No 69


Here was balm for wounded pride.  Albert's chin lifted.  "Oh, that  was nothing," he said.  "Whatever had to be

done must be done right  off, I could see that.  You couldn't hang on where you were very  long." 

She shuddered.  "No," she replied, "I could not.  But _I_ couldn't  think WHAT to do, and you could.  Yes, and

did it, and made me do  it." 

The chin lifted still more and the Speranza chest began to expand.  Helen's next remark was in the natures of a

reducer for the said  expansion. 

"If you could be so prompt and strong andand energetic then," she  said, "I can't help wondering why you

aren't like that all the  time.  I had begun to think you were justjust" 

"Lazy, eh?" he suggested. 

"Whywhy, noo, but careless and indifferent and with not much  ambition, certainly.  You had talked so

much about writing and yet  you never tried to write anything, thatthat" 

"That you thought I was all bluff.  Thanks!  Any more compliments?" 

She turned on him impulsively.  "Oh, don't!" she exclaimed.  "Please don't!  I know what I am saying sounds

perfectly horrid,  and  especially now when you have just saved me from being badly  hurt, if  not killed.  But

don't you see thatthat I am saying it  because I am  interested in you and sure you COULD do so much if

you  only would?  If  you would only try." 

This speech was a compound of sweet and bitter.  Albert  characteristically selected the sweet. 

"Helen," he asked, in his most confidential tone, "would you like  to have me try and write something?  Say,

would you?" 

"Of course I would.  Oh, will you?" 

"Well, if YOU asked me I might.  For your sake, you know." 

She stopped and stamped her foot impatiently. 

"Oh, DON'T be silly!" she exclaimed.  "I don't want you to do it  for my sake.  I want you to do it for your own

sake.  Yes, and for  your grandfather's sake." 

"My grandfather's sake!  Great Scott, why do you drag him in?  HE  doesn't want me to write poetry." 

"He wants you to do something, to succeed.  I know that." 

"He wants me to stay here and help Labe Keeler and Issy Price.  He  wants me to spend all my life in that

office of his; that's what HE  wants.  Now hold on, Helen!  I'm not saying anything against the  old  fellow.  He

doesn't like me, I know, but" 

"You DON'T know.  He does like you.  Or he wants to like you very  much indeed.  He would like to have you

carry on the Snow Company's  business after he has gone, but if you can'tor won'tdo that, I  know he

would be very happy to see you succeed at anything  anything." 

Albert laughed scornfully.  "Even at writing poetry?" he asked. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VI 67



Top




Page No 70


"Why, yes, at writing; although of course he doesn't know a thing  about it and can't understand how any one

can possibly earn a  living  that way.  He has read or heard about poets and authors  starving in  garrets and he

thinks they're all like that.  But if  you could only  show him and prove to him that you could succeed by

writing, he would  be prouder of you than any one else would be.  I  know it." 

He regarded her curiously.  "You seem to know a lot about my  grandfather," he observed. 

"I do know something about him.  He and I have been friends ever  since I was a little girl, and I like him very

much indeed.  If he  were my grandfather I should be proud of him.  And I think you  ought  to be." 

She flashed the last sentence at him in a sudden heat of  enthusiasm.  He was surprised at her manner. 

"Gee!  You ARE strong for the old chap, aren't you?" he said.  "Well, admitting that he is all right, just why

should I be proud  of  him?  I AM proud of my father, of course; he was somebody in the  world." 

"You mean he was somebody just because he was celebrated and lots  of people knew about him.  Celebrated

people aren't the only ones  who  do worth while things.  If I were you, I should be proud of  Captain  Zelotes

because he is what he has made himself.  Nobody  helped him; he  did it all.  He was a sea captain and a good

one.  He has been a  business man and a good one, even if the business  isn't so very big.  Everybody here in

South Harnissyes, and all  up and down the  Capeknows of him and respects him.  My father  says in all

the years  he has preached in his church he has never  heard a single person as  much as hint that Captain Snow

wasn't  absolutely honest, absolutely  brave, and the same to everybody,  rich or poor.  And all his life he  has

worked and worked hard.  What HE has belongs to him; he has earned  it.  That's why I should  be proud of him

if he were my grandfather." 

Her enthusiasm had continued all through this long speech.  Albert  whistled. 

"Whew!" he exclaimed.  "Regular cheer for Zelotes, fellows!  One  two!  Grandfather's got one person to

stand up for him, I'll say  that.  But why this sudden outbreak about him, anyhow?  It was me  you  were talking

about in the beginningthough I didn't notice any  loud  calls for cheers in that direction," he added. 

She ignored the last part of the speech.  "I think you yourself  made me think of him," she replied.  "Sometimes

you remind me of  him.  Not often, but once in a while.  Just now, when we were  climbing down  that awful

place you seemed almost exactly like him.  The way you knew  just what to do all the time, and your not

hesitating a minute, and  the way you took command of the situation  and," with a sudden laugh,  "bossed me

around; every bit of that was  like him, and not like you at  all.  Oh, I don't mean that," she  added hurriedly.  "I

mean it wasn't  like you as you usually are.  It was different." 

"Humph!  Well, I must say  See here, Helen Kendall, what is it  you expect me to do; sail in and write two or

three sonnets and a  'Come Into the Garden, Maud,' some time next week?  You're terribly  keen about

Grandfather, but he has rather got the edge on me so far  as age goes.  He's in the sixties, and I'm just about

nineteen." 

"When he was nineteen he was first mate of a ship." 

"Yes, so I've heard him say.  Maybe firstmating is a little bit  easier than writing poetry." 

"And maybe it isn't.  At any rate, he didn't know whether it was  easy or not until he tried.  Oh, THAT'S what I

would like to see  you  doTRY to do something.  You could do it, too, almost anything  you  tried, I do

believe.  I am confident you could.  But  Oh,  well, as  you said at the beginning, it isn't my business at all,

and I've said  ever and ever so much more than I meant to.  Please  forgive me, if you  can.  I think my tumble


The Portygee

CHAPTER VI 68



Top




Page No 71


and all the rest must  have made me silly.  I'm  sorry, Albert.  There are the steps up to  the pavilion.  See them!" 

He was tramping on beside her, his hands in his pockets.  He did  not look at the long flight of steps which had

suddenly come into  view around the curve of the bluff.  When he did look up and speak  it  was in a different

tone, some such tone as she had heard him use  during her rescue. 

"All right," he said, with decision, "I'll show you whether I can  try or not.  I know you think I won't, but I will.

I'm going up to  my room tonight and I'm going to try to write something or other.  It  may be the rottenest

poem that ever was ground out, but I'll  grind it  if it kills me." 

She was pleased, that was plain, but she shook her head. 

"Not tonight, Albert," she said.  "Tonight, after the picnic, is  Father's reception at the church.  Of course

you'll come to that." 

"Of course I won't.  Look here, you've called me lazy and  indifferent and a hundred other pet names this

afternoon.  Well,  this  evening I'll make you take some of 'em back.  Reception be  hanged!  I'm going to write

tonight." 

That evening both Mrs. Snow and Rachel Ellis were much disturbed  because Albert, pleading a headache,

begged off from attendance at  the reception to the Reverend Mr. Kendall.  Either, or both ladies  would have

been only too willing to remain at home and nurse the  sufferer through his attack, but he refused to permit the

sacrifice  on their part.  After they had gone his headache disappeared and,  supplied with an abundance of

paper, pens and ink, he sat down at  the  table in his room to invoke the Muse.  The invocation lasted  until  three

A. M.  At that hour, with a genuine headache, but a  sense of  triumph which conquered pain, Albert climbed

into bed.  Upon the table  lay a poem, a six stanza poem, having these words at  its head: 

TO MY LADY'S SPRING HAT  By A. M. Speranza. 

The following forenoon he posted that poem to the editor of The  Cape Cod Item.  And three weeks later it

appeared in the pages of  that journal.  Of course there was no pecuniary recompense for its  author, and the

fact was indisputable that the Item was generally  only too glad to publish contributions which helped to fill

its  columns.  But, nevertheless, Albert Speranza had written a poem and  that poem had been published. 

CHAPTER VII

It was Rachel who first discovered "To My Lady's Spring Hat" in the  Item three weeks later.  She came

rushing into the sitting room  brandishing the paper. 

"My soul!  My soul!  My soul!" she cried. 

Olive, sitting sewing by the window, was, naturally, somewhat  startled.  "Mercy on us, Rachel!" she

exclaimed.  "What IS it?" 

"Look!" cried the housekeeper, pointing to the contribution in the  "Poets' Corner" as Queen Isabella may

have pointed at the evidence  of  her proteges discovery of a new world.  "LOOK!" 

Mrs. Snow looked, read the verses to herself, and then aloud. 

"Why, I declare, they're real sort of pretty, ain't they?" she  exclaimed, in astonished admiration. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 69



Top




Page No 72


"Pretty!  They're perfectly elegant!  And right here in the paper  for all hands to see.  Ain't you PROUD of him,

Mrs. Snow?" 

Olive had been growing more and more proud of her handsome grandson  ever since his arrival.  She was

prouder still now and said so.  Rachel nodded, triumphantly. 

"He'll be a Robert Penfold afore he dies, or I miss MY guess!" she  declared. 

She showed it to feminine acquaintances all over town, and Olive,  when callers came, took pains to see that a

copy of the Item,  folded  with the "Poets' Corner" uppermost, lay on the center table.  Customers, dropping in

at the office, occasionally mentioned the  poem  to its author. 

"See you had a piece in the Item, Al," was their usual way of  referring to it.  "Pretty cute piece 'twas, too,

seemed to me.  Say,  that girl of yours must have SOME spring bunnit.  Ho, ho!" 

Issachar deigned to express approval, approval qualified with  discerning criticism of course, but approval

nevertheless. 

"Pretty good piece, Al," he observed.  "Pretty good.  Glad to see  you done so well.  Course you made one little

mistake, but 'twan't  a  very big one.  That part where you said  What was it, now?  Where'd I  put that piece of

poetry?  Oh, yes, here 'tis!  Where you  saiderer 

'It floats upon her golden curls  As froth upon the wave.' 

Now of course nothin'a hat or nothin' elseis goin' to float on  top of a person's head.  Froth floatin', that's

all right, you  understand; but even if you took froth right out of the water and  slapped it up onto anybody's

hair 'twouldn't FLOAT up there.  If  you'd said, 

'It SETS up onto her golden curls,  Same as froth sets on top of a  wave.' 

that would have been all right and true.  But there, don't feel bad  about it.  It's only a little mistake, same as

anybody's liable to  make.  Nine persons out of ten wouldn't have noticed it.  I'm extry  partic'lar, I presume

likely.  I'm findin' mistakes like that all  the  time." 

Laban's comment was less critical, perhaps, but more reserved. 

"It's pretty good, Al," he said.  "Yeseryes, sir, it's pretty  good.  It ain't all new, there's some of it that's

been written  before, but I rather guess that might have been said about  Shakespeare's poetry when he fust

commenced.  It's pretty good, Al.  Yesyes, yes.  It is so." 

Albert was inclined to resent the qualified strain in the  bookkeeper's praise.  He was tempted to be sarcastic. 

"Well," he observed, "of course you've read so much real poetry  that you ought to know." 

Laban nodded, slowly.  "I've read a good deal," he said quietly.  "Readin' is one of the few things I ain't made a

failure of in this  life.  Umhm.  One of the few.  Yes yesyes." 

He dipped his pen in the inkwell and carefully made an entry in the  ledger.  His assistant felt a sudden pang of

compunction. 

"I beg your pardon, Mr. Keeler," he said.  "That was pretty fresh  of me.  I'm sorry." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 70



Top




Page No 73


Laban looked up in mild surprise.  "Sorry?" he repeated.  "What  for? . . .  Oh, that's all right, Al, that's all right.

Lord knows  I'm the last one on earth who'd ought to criticize anybody.  All I  had in mind in sayin' what I did

was towell, to kind of keep you  from bein' too well satisfied and not try harder on the next one.  It  don't pay

to be too well satisfied. . . .  Years ago, I can  remember,  _I_ was pretty well satisfiedwith myself and my

work.  Sounds like a  joke, I know, but 'twas so. . . .  Well, I've had a  nice long chance  to get over it.  Umhm.

Yesyes.  So I have, so  I have." 

Only Captain Zelotes at first said nothing about the poem.  He read  it, his wife saw to that, but his comment

even to her was a non  committal grunt. 

"But don't you think it's real sort of pretty, Zelotes?" she asked. 

The captain grunted again.  "Why, I guess likely 'tis if you say  so, Mother.  I don't know much about such

things." 

"But everybody says it is." 

"Want to know!  Well, then 'twon't make much difference whether I  say it or not." 

"But ain't you goin' to say a word to Albert about it, Zelotes?" 

"Humph!  I don't know's I know what to say." 

"Why, say you like it." 

"Yees, and if I do he'll keep on writin' more.  That's exactly  what I don't want him to do.  Come now, Mother,

be sensible.  This  piece of his may be good or it may not, _I_ wouldn't undertake to  say.  But this I do know: I

don't want the boy to spend his time  writin' poetry slush for that 'Poets' Corner.'  Letitia Makepeace  did

thatshe had a piece in there about every weekand she died  in the  Taunton asylum." 

"But, Zelotes, it wasn't her poetry got her into the asylum." 

"Wan't it?  Well, she was in the poorhouse afore that.  I don't  know whether 'twas her poetryin' that got her in

there, but I know  darned well it didn't get her out." 

"But ain't you goin' to say one word?  'Twould encourage him so." 

"Good Lord!  We don't want to encourage him, do we?  If he was  takin' to thievin' you wouldn't encourage him

in that, would you?" 

"Thievin'!  Zelotes Snow, you don't mean to say you compare a poet  to a THIEF!" 

The captain grinned.  "Noo, Mother," he observed drily.  "Sometimes  a thief can manage to earn a livin' at his

job.  But  there, there,  don't feel bad.  I'll say somethin' to Al, long's you  think I ought  to." 

The something was not much, and yet Captain Zelotes really meant it  to be kindly and to sound like praise.

But praising a thing of  which  you have precious little understanding and with which you  have  absolutely no

sympathy is a hard job. 

"See you had a piece in the Item this week, Al," observed the  captain. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 71



Top




Page No 74


"Whyyes, sir," said Albert. 

"Umhm.  I read it.  I don't know much about such things, but they  tell me it is pretty good." 

"Thank you, sir." 

"Eh?  Oh, you're welcome." 

That was all.  Perhaps considering its source it was a good deal,  but Albert was not of the age where such

considerations are likely  to  be made. 

Helen's praise was warm and enthusiastic.  "I knew you could do it  if you only would," she declared.  "And oh,

I'm SO glad you did!  Now  you must keep on trying." 

That bit of advice was quite superfluous.  Young Speranza having  sampled the sublime intoxication of seeing

himself in print, was  not  ready to sober off yet a while.  He continued to bombard the  Item with  verses.  They

were invariably accepted, but when he sent  to a New York  magazine a poem which he considered a gem, the

promptness with which  it was returned staggered his conceit and was  in that respect a good  thing for him. 

However, he kept on trying.  Helen would not have permitted him to  give up even if he had wished.  She was

quite as much interested in  his literary aspirations as he was himself and her encouragement  was  a great help

to him.  After months of repeated trial and  repeated  rejection he opened an envelope bearing the name of a

fairly  wellknown periodical to find therein a kindly note stating  that his  poem, "Sea Spaces" had been

accepted.  And a week later  came a check  for ten dollars.  That was a day of days.  Incidentally  it was the day

of a trial balance in the office and the assistant  bookkeeper's  additions and multiplications contained no less

than  four ghastly  errors. 

The next afternoon there was an interview in the back office.  Captain Zelotes and his grandson were the

participants.  The  subject  discussed was "Business versus Poetry," and there was a  marked  difference of

opinion.  Albert had proclaimed his triumph at  home, of  course, had exhibited his check, had been the

recipient of  hugs and  praises from his grandmother and had listened to paeans  and  hallelujahs from Mrs.

Ellis.  When he hurried around to the  parsonage  after supper, Helen had been excited and delighted at the

good news.  Albert had been patted on the back quite as much as was  good for a  young man whose bump of

selfesteem was not inclined  toward  underdevelopment.  When he entered the private office of Z.  Snow and

Co. in answer to his grandfather's summons, he did so  lightheartedly,  triumphantly, with selfapproval

written large  upon him. 

But though he came like a conquering hero, he was not received like  one.  Captain Zelotes sat at his desk, the

copy of the Boston  morning  paper which he had been reading sticking out of the waste  basket into  which it

had been savagely jammed a half hour before.  The news had not  been to the captain's liking.  These were the

September days of 1914;  the German Kaiser was marching forward "mit  Gott" through Belgium, and  it began

to look as if he could not be  stopped short of Paris.  Consequently, Captain Zelotes, his  sympathies from the

first with  England and the Allies, was not  happy in his newspaper reading. 

Albert entered, head erect and eyes shining.  If Gertie Kendrick  could have seen him then she would have

fallen down and worshiped.  His grandfather looked at him in silence for a moment, tapping his  desk with the

stump of a pencil.  Albert, too, was silent; he was  already thinking of another poem with which to dazzle the

world,  and  his head was among the rosy clouds. 

"Sit down, Al," said Captain Zelotes shortly. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 72



Top




Page No 75


Albert reluctantly descended to earth and took the battered  armchair standing beside the desk.  The captain

tapped with his  pencil upon the figurecovered sheet of paper before him.  Then he  said: 

"Al, you've been here three years come next December, ain't you?" 

"Whyyes, sir, I believe I have." 

"Umhm, you have.  And for the heft of that time you've been in  this office." 

"Yes, sir." 

"Yes.  And Labe Keeler and I have been doin' our best to make a  business man out of you.  You understand we

have, don't you?" 

Albert looked puzzled and a little uneasy.  Into his roseate dreams  was just beginning to filter the idea that his

grandfather's tone  and  manner were peculiar. 

"Why, yes, sir, of course I understand it," he replied. 

"Well, I asked you because I wasn't quite sure whether you did or  not.  Can you guess what this is I've got on

my desk here?" 

He tapped the figurecovered sheet of paper once more.  Before  Albert could speak the captain answered his

own question. 

"I'll tell you what it is," he went on.  "It's one of the latest  samples of your smartness as a business man.  I

presume likely you  know that Laban worked here in this office until three o'clock this  mornin', didn't you?" 

Albert did not know it.  Mr. Keeler had told him nothing of the  sort. 

"Why, no," he replied.  "Did he?  What for?" 

"Yees, he did.  And what for?  Why, just to find out what was the  matter with his trial balance, that's all.

When one of Labe's  trial  balances starts out for snug harbor and ends up on a reef  with six  foot of water in

her hold, naturally Labe wants to get her  afloat and  pumped dry as quick as possible.  He ain't used to it,  for

one thing,  and it makes him nervous." 

Albert's uneasiness grew.  When his grandfather's speech became  sarcastic and nautical, the young man had

usually found that there  was trouble coming for somebody. 

"II'm sorry Laban had to stay so late," he stammered.  "I should  have been glad to stay and help him, but he

didn't ask me." 

"Noo.  Well, it may possibly be that he cal'lated he was carryin'  about all your help that the craft would

stand, as 'twas.  Any more  might sink her.  See here, young feller"  Captain Zelotes dropped  his quiet

sarcasm and spoke sharp and brisk:  "See here," he said,  "do you realize that this sheet of paper I've got here is

what  stands  for a day's work done by you yesterday?  And on this sheet  there was  no less than four silly

mistakes that a child ten years  old hadn't  ought to make, that an ablebodied idiot hadn't ought to  make.  But

YOU made 'em, and they kept Labe Keeler here till three  o'clock this  mornin'.  Now what have you got to say

for yourself?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 73



Top




Page No 76


As a matter of fact, Albert had very little to say, except that he  was sorry, and that his grandfather evidently

did not consider  worth  the saying.  He waved the protestation aside. 

"Sorry!" he repeated impatiently.  "Of course you're sorry, though  even at that I ain't sure you're sorry enough.

Labe was sorry,  too,  I don't doubt, when his bedtime went by and he kept runnin'  afoul of  one of your

mistakes after another.  I'm sorry, darned  sorry, to find  out that you can make such blunders after three  years

on board here  under such teachin' as you've had.  But bein'  sorry don't help any to  speak of.  Any fool can be

sorry for his  foolishness, but if that's  all, it don't help a whole lot.  Is  bein' sorry the best excuse you've  got to

offer?  What made you  make the mistakes in the first place?" 

Albert's face was darkly red under the lash of his grandfather's  tongue.  Captain Zelotes and he had had

disagreements and verbal  encounters before, but never since they had been together had the  captain spoken

like this.  And the young fellow was no longer  seventeen, he was twenty.  The flush began to fade from his

cheeks  and the pallor which meant the rise of the Speranza temper took its  place. 

"What made you make such fool blunders?" repeated the captain.  "You knew better, didn't you?" 

"Yes," sullenly, "I suppose I did." 

"You know mighty well you did.  And as nigh as I can larn from what  I got out of Labanwhich wasn't

much; I had to pump it out of him  word by wordthis ain't the first set of mistakes you've made.  You  make

'em right along.  If it wasn't for him helpin' you out and  coverin' up your mistakes, this firm would be in hot

water with its  customers twothirds of the time and the books would be fustrate  as  a puzzle, somethin' to

use for a guessin' match, but plaguey  little  good as straight accounts of a goin' concern.  Now what  makes you

act  this way?  Eh?  What makes you?" 

"Oh, I don't know.  See here, Grandfather" 

"Hold on a minute.  You don't know, eh?  Well, I know.  It ain't  because you ain't smart enough to keep a set of

books and keep 'em  well.  I don't expect you to be a Labe Keeler; there ain't many  bookkeepers like him on

this earth.  But I do know you're smart  enough to keep my books and keep 'em as they'd ought to be, if you

want to keep 'em.  The trouble with you is that you don't want to.  You've got too much of your

goodfornothin"  Captain Lote pulled  up short, cleared his throat, and went on:  "You've got too much

'poet' in you," he declared, "that's what's the matter." 

Albert leaned forward.  "That wasn't what you were going to say,"  he said quickly.  "You were going to say

that I had too much of my  father in me." 

It was the captain's turn to redden.  "Eh?" he stammered.  "Why,  II  How do you know what I was goin' to

say?" 

"Because I do.  You say it all the time.  Or, if you don't say it,  you look it.  There is hardly a day that I don't

catch you looking  at  me as if you were expecting me to commit murder or do some  outrageous  thing or other.

And I know, too, that it is all because  I'm my  father's son.  Well, that's all right; feel that way about  me if you

want to, I can't help it." 

"Here, here, Al!  Hold on!  Don't" 

"I won't hold on.  And I tell you this: I hate this work here.  You  say I don't want to keep books.  Well, I don't.

I'm sorry I made  the  errors yesterday and put Keeler to so much trouble, but I'll  probably  make more.  No,"

with a sudden outburst of determination,  "I won't  make any more.  I won't, because I'm not going to keep


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 74



Top




Page No 77


books any more.  I'm through." 

Captain Zelotes leaned back in his chair. 

"You're what?" he asked slowly. 

"I'm through.  I'll never work in this office another day.  I'm  through." 

The captain's brows drew together as he stared steadily at his  grandson.  He slowly tugged at his beard. 

"Humph!" he grunted, after a moment.  "So you're through, eh?  Goin' to quit and go somewheres else, you

mean?" 

"Yes." 

"Umhm.  I see.  Where are you goin' to go?" 

"I don't know.  But I'm not going to make a fool of myself at this  job any longer.  I can't keep books, and I

won't keep them.  I hate  business.  I'm no good at it.  And I won't stay here." 

"I see.  I see.  Well, if you won't keep on in business, what will  you do for a livin'?  Write poetry?" 

"Perhaps." 

"Umm.  Be kind of slim livin', won't it?  You've been writin'  poetry for about a year and a half, as I recollect,

and so far  you've  made ten dollars." 

"That's all right.  If I don't make it I may starve, as you are  always saying that writers do.  But, starve or not, I

shan't ask  YOU  to take care of me." 

"I've taken care of you for three years or so." 

"Yes.  But you did it becausebecause  Well, I don't know why  you did, exactly, but you won't have to do

it any longer.  I'm  through." 

The captain still stared steadily, and what he saw in the dark eyes  which flashed defiance back at him seemed

to trouble him a little.  His tugs at his beard became more strenuous. 

"Humph!" he muttered.  "Humph! . . .  Well, Al, of course I can't  make you stay by main force.  Perhaps I

couldyou ain't of age  yetbut I shan't.  And you want to quit the ship altogether, do  you?" 

"If you mean this officeyes, I do." 

"I see, I see.  Want to quit South Harniss and your grandmother  and Racheland Labeand Helenand

all the rest of 'em?" 

"Not particularly.  But I shall have to, of course." 

"Yes. . . .  Umhm. . . .  Yes.  Have you thought how your  grandmother's liable to feel when she hears you are

goin' to clear  out and leave her?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 75



Top




Page No 78


Albert had not thought in that way, but he did now.  His tone was a  trifle less combative as he answered. 

"She'll be sorry at first, I suppose," he said, "but she'll get  over it." 

"Umhm.  Maybe she will.  You can get over 'most anything in time  'MOST anything.  Well, and how about

me?  How do you think I'll  feel?" 

Albert's chin lifted.  "You!" he exclaimed.  "Why, you'll be mighty  glad of it." 

Captain Zelotes picked up the pencil stump and twirled it in his  fingers.  "Shall I?" he asked.  "You think I

will, do you?" 

"Of course you will.  You don't like me, and never did." 

"So I've heard you say.  Well, boy, don't you cal'late I like you  at least as much as you like me?" 

"No.  What do you mean?  I like you well enough.  That is, I should  if you gave me half a chance.  But you

don't do it.  You hate me  because my father" 

The captain interrupted.  His big palm struck the desk. 

"DON'T say that again!" he commanded.  "Look here, if I hated you  do you suppose I'd be talkin' to you like

this?  If I hated you do  you cal'late I'd argue when you gave me notice?  Not by a jugful!  No  man ever came to

me and said he was goin' to quit and had me beg  him  to stay.  If we was at sea he stayed until we made port;

then  he WENT,  and he didn't hang around waitin' for a boat to take him  ashore  neither.  I don't hate you, son.

I'd ask nothin' better  than a chance  to like you, but you won't give it to me." 

Albert's eyes and mouth opened. 

"_I_ won't give YOU a chance?" he repeated. 

"Sartin.  DO you give me one?  I ask you to keep these books of  mine.  You could keep 'em A Number One.

You're smart enough to do  it.  But you won't.  You let 'em go to thunder and waste your time  makin' up fool

poetry and such stuff." 

"But I like writing, and I don't like keeping books." 

"Keepin' books is a part of l'arnin' the business, and business is  the way you're goin' to get your livin' by and

by." 

"No, it isn't.  I am going to be a writer." 

"Now DON'T say that silly thing again!  I don't want to hear it." 

"I shall say it because it is true." 

"Look here, boy:  When I tell you or anybody else in this office to  do or not to do a thing, I expect 'em to obey

orders.  And I tell  you  not to talk any more of that foolishness about bein' a writer.  D'you  understand?" 

"Yes, of course I understand." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 76



Top




Page No 79


"All right, then, that much is settled. . . .  Here!  Where are you  goin'?" 

Albert had turned and was on his way out of the office.  He stopped  and answered over his shoulder, "I'm

going home," he said. 

"Goin' HOME?  Why, you came from home not more than an hour and a  half ago!  What are you goin' there

again now for?" 

"To pack up my things." 

"To pack up your things!  To pack up  Humph!  So you really mean  it!  You're really goin' to quit me like

this?  And your grandma,  too!" 

The young man felt a sudden pang of compunction, a twinge of  conscience. 

"Grandfather," he said, "I'm sorry.  I" 

But the change in his attitude and tone came too late.  Captain  Lote's temper was boiling now, contradiction

was its worst  provocative. 

"Goin' to quit!" he sneered.  "Goin' to quit because you don't like  to work.  All right, quit then!  Go ahead!  I've

done all I can to  make a man of you.  Go to the devil in your own way." 

"Grandfather, I" 

"Go ahead!  _I_ can't stop you.  It's in your breed, I cal'late." 

That was sufficient.  Albert strode out of the private office, head  erect.  Captain Zelotes rose and slammed the

door after his  departing  grandson. 

At ten that evening Albert was in his room, sitting in a chair by  the window, gloomily looking out.  The

packing, most of it, had  been  done.  He had not, as he told his grandfather he intended  doing, left  the office

immediately and come straight home to pack.  As he emerged  from the inner office after the stormy interview

with  the captain he  found Laban Keeler hard at work upon the books.  The  sight of the  little man, so patiently

and cheerfully pegging away,  brought another  twinge of conscience to the assistant bookkeeper.  Laban had

been such  a brick in all their relationships.  It must  have been a sore trial to  his particular, businesslike soul,

those  errors in the trial balance.  Yet he had not found fault nor  complained.  Captain Zelotes himself  had said

that every item  concerning his grandson's mistakes and  blunders had been dragged  from Mr. Keeler much

against the latter's  will.  Somehow Albert  could not bear to go off and leave him at once.  He would stay and

finish his day's work, for Labe Keeler's sake. 

So stay he did and when Captain Zelotes later came out of his  private office and found him there neither of

them spoke.  At home,  during supper, nothing was said concerning the quarrel of the  afternoon.  Yet Albert

was as determined to leave as ever, and the  Captain, judging by the expression of his face, was just as

determined to do nothing more to prevent him.  After supper the  young  man went to his room and began the

packing.  His grandfather  went out,  an unusual proceeding for him, saying that he guessed he  would go down

street for a spell. 

Now Albert, as he sat there by the window, was gloomy enough.  The  wind, howling and wailing about the

gables of the old house, was  not  an aid to cheerfulness and he needed every aid.  He had sworn  to go  away, he

was going awaybut where should he go?  He had a  little  money put by, not much but a little, which he had


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 77



Top




Page No 80


been  saving for  quite another purpose.  This would take him a little  way, would pay  his bills for a short time,

but after that  Well,  after that he  could earn more.  With the optimism of youth and the  serene

selfconfidence which was natural to him he was sure of  succeeding  sooner or later.  It was not the dread of

failure and  privation which  troubled him.  The weight which was pressing upon  his spirit was not  the fear of

what might happen to him. 

There was a rap upon the door.  Then a voice, the housekeeper's  voice, whispered through the crack. 

"It's me, Al," whispered Mrs. Ellis.  "You ain't in bed yet, are  you?  I'd like to talk with you a minute or two, if

I might." 

He was not anxious to talk to her or anyone else just then, but he  told her to come in.  She entered on tiptoe,

with the mysterious  air  of a conspirator, and shut the door carefully after her. 

"May I set down just a minute?" she asked.  "I can generally talk  better settin'." 

He pulled forward the ancient rocker with the rush seat.  The  crossstitch "tidy" on the back was his mother's

handiwork, she had  made it when she was fifteen.  Rachel sat down in the rocker. 

"Al" she began, still in the same mysterious whisper, "I know all  about it." 

He looked at her.  "All about what?" he asked. 

"About the trouble you and Cap'n Lote had this afternoon.  I know  you're plannin' to leave us all and go away

somewheres and that he  told you to go, and all that.  I know what you've been doin' up  here  tonight.  Fur's

that goes," she added, with a little catch in  her  breath and a wave of her hand toward the open trunk and

suitcase upon  the floor, "I wouldn't need to know, I could SEE." 

Albert was surprised and confused.  He had supposed the whole  affair to be, so far, a secret between himself

and his grandfather. 

"You know?" he stammered.  "You  How did you know?" 

"Laban told me.  Labe came hurryin' over here just after supper and  told me the whole thing.  He's awful upset

about it, Laban is.  He  thinks almost as much of you as he does of Cap'n Lote oror me,"  with an apologetic

little smile. 

Albert was astonished and troubled.  "How did Labe know about it?"  he demanded. 

"He heard it all.  He couldn't help hearin'." 

"But he couldn't have heard.  The door to the private office was  shut." 

"Yes, but the window at the topthe transom one, you knowwas  wide open.  You and your grandpa never

thought of that, I guess,  and  Laban couldn't hop up off his stool and shut it without givin'  it away  that he'd

been hearin'.  So he had to just set and listen  and I know  how he hated doin' that.  Laban Keeler ain't the

listenin' kind.  One  thing about it all is a mercy," she added,  fervently.  "It's the  Lord's own mercy that that Issy

Price wasn't  where HE could hear it,  too.  If Issy heard it you might as well  paint it up on the townhall  fence;

all creation and his wife  wouldn't larn it any sooner." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 78



Top




Page No 81


Albert drew a long breath.  "Well," he said, after a moment, "I'm  sorry Labe heard, but I don't suppose it

makes much difference.  Everyone will know all about it in a day or two . . .  I'm going." 

Rachel leaned forward. 

"No, you ain't, Al," she said. 

"I'm not?  Indeed I am!  Why, what do you mean?" 

"I mean just what I say.  You ain't goin'.  You're goin' to stay  right here.  At least I hope you are, and I THINK

you are. . . .  Oh,  I know," she added, quickly, "what you are goin' to say.  You're goin'  to tell me that your

grandpa is down on you on account  of your father,  and that you don't like bookkeepin', and that you  want to

write poetry  andand such.  You'll say all that, and maybe  it's all true, but  whether 'tis or not ain't the point at

all just  now.  The real point  is that you're Janie Snow's son and your  grandpa's Cap'n Lote Snow and  your

grandma's Olive Snow and there  ain't goin' to be another smashup  in this family if I can help it.  I've been

through one and one's  enough.  Albert, didn't you promise  me that Sunday forenoon three  years ago when I

came into the  settin'room and we got talkin' about  books and Robert Penfold and  everythingdidn't you

promise me then  that when things between you  and your grandpa got kind ofof snarled  up and full of knots

you'd  come to me with 'em and we'd see if we  couldn't straighten 'em out  together?  Didn't you promise me

that,  Albert?" 

Albert remembered the conversation to which she referred.  As he  remembered it, however, he had not made

any definite promise. 

"You asked me to talk them over with you, Rachel," he admitted.  "I  think that's about as far as it went." 

"Well, maybe so, but now I ask you again.  Will you talk this over  with me, Albert?  Will you tell me every bit

all about it, for my  sake?  And for your grandma's sake. . . .  Yes, more'n that, for  your  mother's sake, Albert;

she was pretty nigh like my own sister,  Jane  Snow was.  Different as night from day of course, she was  pretty

and  educated and all that and I was just the same then as I  am now, but we  did think a lot of each other,

Albert.  Tell me the  whole story, won't  you, please.  Just what Cap'n Lote said and what  you said and what you

plan to doand all?  Please, Albert." 

There were tears in her eyes.  He had always liked her, but it was  a liking with a trace of condescension in it.

She was peculiar,  her  "sympathetic attacks" were funny, and she and Laban together  were an  odd pair.  Now

he saw her in a new light and he felt a  sudden rush of  real affection for her.  And with this feeling, and

inspired also by  his loneliness, came the impulse to comply with  her request, to tell  her all his troubles. 

He began slowly at first, but as he went on the words came quicker.  She listened eagerly, nodding

occasionally, but saying nothing.  When  he had finished she nodded again. 

"I see," she said.  "'Twas almost what Laban said and about what he  and I expected.  Well, Albert, I ain't goin'

to be the one to blame  you, not very much anyhow.  I don't see as you are to blame; you  can't help the way

you're made.  But your grandfather can't help  bein' made his way, either.  He can't see with your spectacles and

you can't see with his." 

He stirred rebelliously.  "Then we had better go our own ways, I  should say," he muttered. 

"No, you hadn't.  That's just what you mustn't do, not now, anyhow.  As I said before, there's been enough of

all hands goin' their own  ways in this family and look what came of it." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 79



Top




Page No 82


"But what do you expect me to do?  I will not give up every plan  I've made and my chance in the world just

because he is too  stubborn  and cranky to understand them.  I will NOT do it." 

"I don't want you to.  But I don't want you to upset the whole  kettle just because the steam has scalded your

fingers.  I don't  want  you to go off and leave your grandma to break her heart a  second time  and your grandpa

to give up all his plans and hopes  that he's been  makin' about you." 

"Plans about me?  He making plans about me?  What sort of plans?" 

"All sorts.  Oh, he don't say much about 'em, of course; that ain't  his way.  But from things he's let drop I know

he has hoped to take  you in with him as a partner one of these days, and to leave you  the  business after he's

gone." 

"Nonsense, Rachel!" 

"No, it ain't nonsense.  It's the one big dream of Cap'n Lote's  life.  That Z. Snow and Co. business is his pet

child, as you might  say.  He built it up, he and Labe together, and when he figgered to  take you aboard with

him 'twas SOME chance for you, 'cordin' to his  lookout.  Now you can't hardly blame him for bein'

disappointed  when  you chuck that chance away and take to writin' poetry pieces,  can  you?" 

"Butbutwhy, confound it, Rachel, you don't understand!" 

"Yes, I do, but your grandpa don't.  And you don't understand  him.  . . .  Oh, Albert, DON'T be as stubborn as

he is, as your  mother  wasthe Lord and she forgive me for sayin' it.  She was  partly right  about marryin'

your pa and Cap'n Lote was partly right,  too. If they  had met half way and put the two 'partlys' together the

whole thing  might have been right in the end.  As 'twas, 'twas all  wrong.  Don't,  don't, DON'T, Albert, be as

stubborn as that.  For  their sakes,  Al,yes, and for my sake, for I'm one of your family,  too, or seems  as if I

wasdon't." 

She hastily wiped her eyes with her apron.  He, too was greatly  moved. 

"Don't cry, Rachel," he muttered, hurriedly.  "Please don't. . . .  I didn't know you felt this way.  I didn't know

anybody did.  I  don't  want to make trouble in the familyany more trouble.  Grandmother has  been awfully

good to me; so, too, has Grandfather,  I suppose, in his  way.  Butoh, what am I going to do?  I can't  stay in

that office all  my life.  I'm not good at business.  I  don't like it.  I can't give  up" 

"No, no, course you mustn't.  I don't want you to give up." 

"Then what do you want me to do?" 

"I want you to go to your grandpa and talk to him once more.  Not  givin' up your plans altogether but not

forcin' him to give up his  either, not right away.  Tell him you realize he wants you to go on  with Z. Snow and

Company and that you willfor a while" 

"But" 

"For a while, I said; three or four years, say.  You won't be so  dreadful old then, not exactly what you'd call a

Methusalem.  Tell  him you'll do that and on his side he must let you write as much as  you please, provided

you don't let the writin' interfere with the  Z.  Snow and Co. work.  Then, at the end of the three or four years,  if

you still feel the same as you do now, you can tackle your  poetry for  keeps and he and you'll still be friends.

Tell him  that, Albert, and  see what he says. . . .  Will you?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 80



Top




Page No 83


Albert took some moments to consider.  At length he said:  "If I  did I doubt if he would listen." 

"Oh, yes he would.  He'd more than listen, I'm pretty sartin.  I  think he'd agree." 

"You do?" 

"Yes, I do.  You see," with a smile, "while I've been talkin' to  you there's been somebody else talkin' to him. . .

.  There, there!  don't you ask any questions.  I promised not to tell anybody and if  I  ain't exactly broke that

promise, I've sprained its ankle, I'm  afraid.  Good night, Albert, and thank you ever and ever so much  for

listenin'  so long without once tellin' me to mind my own  business." 

"Good night, Rachel. . . .  And thank you for taking so much  interest in my affairs.  You're an awfully good

friend, I can see  that." 

"Don'tdon't talk that way.  And you WILL have that talk with your  grandpa?" 

"Yes, I will." 

"Oh, I'm SO glad!  There!  Good night.  I come pretty nigh kissin'  you then and for a woman that's been

engaged to be married for  upwards of eighteen years that's a nice way to act, ain't it!  Good  night, good night." 

She hurried out of the room.  Albert sat down again in his chair by  the window.  He had promised to go to his

grandfather and talk to  him.  As he sat there, thinking of the coming interview, he  realized  more and more that

the keeping of that promise was likely  to be no  easy matter.  He must begin the talk, he must break the

iceand how  should he break it?  Timid and roundabout approaches  would be of  little use; unless his

grandfather's state of mind had  changed  remarkably since their parting in the Z. Snow and Co.  office they and

their motive would be misunderstood.  No, the only  way to break the  ice was to break it, to plunge

immediately into  the deepest part of  the subject.  It promised to be a chilly  plunge.  He shivered at the

prospect. 

A half hour later he heard the door of the hall open and shut and  knew that Captain Zelotes had returned.

Rising, he descended the  stairs.  He descended slowly.  Just as he reached the foot of the  narrow flight Captain

Zelotes entered the hall from the diningroom  and turned toward him.  Both were surprised at the meeting.

Albert  spoke first. 

"Good evening, Grandfather," he stammered.  "II was just coming  down to see you.  Were you going to

bed?" 

Captain Lote shook his head.  "Noo," he said, slowly, "not  exactly." 

"Do you mind waiting a minute?  I have a few thingsI have  something to say to you andand I guess I

shall sleep better if I  say it tonight.  II won't keep you long." 

The captain regarded him intently for an instant, then he turned  and led the way to the diningroom. 

"Go ahead," he ordered, laconically.  Albert squared his shoulders,  preparatory to the plunge. 

"Grandfather," he began, "first of all I want to tell you I am  sorry forfor some of the things I said this

afternoon." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 81



Top




Page No 84


He had rehearsed this opening speech over and over again, but in  spite of the rehearsals it was dreadfully hard

to make.  If his  grandfather had helped him even a little it might have been easier,  but the captain merely

stood there, expressionless, saying nothing,  waiting for him to continue. 

Albert swallowed, clenched his fists, and took a new start. 

"Of course," he began, "I am sorry for the mistakes I made in my  bookkeeping, but that I have told you

before.  Nownow I want to  say  I am sorry for being sowell, so pigheaded about the rest of  it.  I  realize

that you have been mighty kind to me and that I owe  you about  everything that I've got in this world." 

He paused again.  It had seemed to him that Captain Zelotes was  about to speak.  However, he did not, so the

young man stumbled on. 

"Andand I realize, too," he said, "that you have, I guess, been  trying to give me a real start in business, the

start you think I  ought to have." 

The captain nodded slowly.  "That was my idea in startin' you," he  said. 

"Yesand fact that I haven't done more with the chance is because  I'm made that way, I guess.  But I do want

toyes, and I MEAN to  try  to succeed at writing poetry or stories or plays or something.  I like  that and I

mean to give it a trial.  And soand so, you  see, I've  been thinking our talk over and I've concluded that

perhaps you may be  right, maybe I'm not old enough to know what I  really am fitted for,  and yet perhaps _I_

may be partly right, too.  II've been thinking  that perhaps some sort ofof" 

"Of what?" 

"Well, of halfway arrangementsome sort ofof compromise, you  know, might be arranged.  I might

agree to stay in the office and  do  my very best with bookkeeping and business forwell, say, three  years  or

so.  During that time I should be trying to write of  course, but I  would only do that sort of writing evenings or

on  Saturdays and  holidays.  It shouldn't interfere with your work nor  be done in the  time you pay me for.  And

at the end of the three or  four years" 

He paused again.  This time the pause was longer than ever.  Captain Lote broke the silence.  His big right hand

had wandered  upward and was tugging at his beard. 

"Well? . . .  And then?" he asked. 

"Why, thenifif  Well, then we could see.  If business seemed  to be where I was most likely to succeed

we'd call it settled and I  would stay with Z. Snow and Co.  If poetrymaking ororliterature  seemed more

likely to be the job I was fitted for, that would be the  job I'd take.  Youyou see, don't you, Grandfather?" 

The captain's beardpulling continued.  He was no longer looking  his grandson straight in the eye.  His gaze

was fixed upon the  braided mat at his feet and he answered without looking up. 

"Yees," he drawled, "I cal'late I see.  Well, was that all you had  to say?" 

"Noo, not quite.  II wanted to say that which ever way it turned  out, II hoped weyou and I, you

knowwould agree to beto be  goodnatured about it andand friends just the same.  II  Well,  there!

That's all, I guess.  I haven't put it very well, I'm  afraid,  butbut what do you think about it, Grandfather?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 82



Top




Page No 85


And now Captain Zelotes did look up.  The old twinkle was in his  eye.  His first remark was a question and

that question was rather  surprising. 

"Al," he asked, "Al, who's been talkin' to you?" 

The blood rushed to his grandson's face.  "Talking to me?" he  stammered.  "Whywhy, what do you mean?" 

"I mean just that.  You didn't think out this scheme all by  yourself.  Somebody's been talkin' to you and puttin'

you up to it.  Haven't they?" 

"Whywhy, Grandfather, I" 

"Haven't they?" 

"Why  Well, yes, someone has been talking to me, but the whole  idea isn't theirs.  I WAS sorry for speaking

to you as I did and  sorry to think of leaving you and grandmother.  II was sitting up  there in my room and

feeling blue and mean enough andand" 

"And then Rachel came aboard and gave you your sailin' orders; eh?" 

Albert gasped.  "For heaven's sake how did you know that?" he  demanded.  "She  Why, she must have told

you, after all!  But she  said" 

"Hold on, boy, hold on!" Captain Lote chuckled quietly.  "No," he  said, "Rachel didn't tell me; I guessed she

was the one.  And it  didn't take a Solomon in all his glory to guess it, neither.  Labe  Keeler's been talkin' to

ME, and when you come down here and began  proposin' the same scheme that I was just about headin' up to

your  room with to propose to you, thenwell, then the average whole  witted person wouldn't need more'n

one guess.  It couldn't be Labe,  'cause he'd been whisperin' in MY ear, so it must have been the  other  partner

in the firm.  That's all the miracle there is to it." 

Albert's brain struggled with the situation.  "I see," he said,  after a moment.  "She hinted that someone had

been talking to you  along the same line.  Yes, and she was so sure you would agree.  I  might have known it

was Laban." 

"Umhm, so you might. . . .  Well, there have been times when if a  man had talked to me as Labe did tonight

I'd have knocked him  down,  or told him to go toumwell, the tropicstold him to mind  his own

business, at least.  But Labe is Labe, and besides MY  conscience was  plaguin' me a little mite, maybe . . .

maybe." 

The young man shook his head.  "They must have talked it over,  those two, and agreed that one should talk to

you and the other to  me.  By George, I wonder they had the nerve.  It wasn't their  business, really." 

"Not a darn bit." 

"Yetyet II'm awfully glad she said it to me.  II needed it,  I guess." 

"Maybe you did, son. . . .  Andhumphwell, maybe I needed it,  too. . . .  Yes, I know that's consider'ble for

me to say," he  added  dryly. 

Albert was still thinking of Laban and Rachel. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 83



Top




Page No 86


"They're queer people," he mused.  "When I first met them I thought  they were about the funniest pair I ever

saw.  Butbut now I can't  help liking them andand  Say, Grandfather, they must think a  lot  of yourof

our family." 

"Cal'late they do, son. . . .  Well, boy, we've had our sermon, you  and me, what shall we do?  Willin' to sign for

the five years trial  cruise if I will, are you?" 

Albert couldn't help smiling.  "It was three years Rachel proposed,  not five," he said. 

"Was, eh?  Suppose we split the difference and make it four?  Willin' to try that?" 

"Yes, sir." 

"Agreement bein' that you shall stick close to Z. Snow and Co.  durin' work hours and write as much poetry as

you darned please  other  times, neither side to interfere with those arrangements?  That right?" 

"Yes, sir." 

"Good!  Shall we shake hands on it?" 

They shook, solemnly.  Captain Lote was the first to speak after  ratification of the contract. 

"There, now I cal'late I'll go aloft and turn in," he observed.  Then he added, with a little hesitation, "Say, Al,

maybe we'd  better  not trouble your grandma about all this fool businessthe  row this  afternoon and all.

'Twould only worry her and" he  paused, looked  embarrassed, cleared his throat, and said, "to tell  you the

truth, I'm  kind of ashamed of my partererthat is,  some of it." 

His grandson was very much astonished.  It was not often that  Captain Zelotes Snow admitted having been in

the wrong.  He blurted  out the question he had been dying to ask. 

"Grandfather," he queried, "had youdid you really mean what you  said about starting to come to my room

andand propose this scheme  of oursI mean of Rachel's and Labe'sto me?" 

"Eh? . . .  Yeesyes.  I was on my way up there when I met you  just now." 

"Well, Grandfather, II" 

"That's all right, boy, that's all right.  Don't let's talk any  more about it." 

"We won't.  Andand  But, Grandfather, I just want you to know  that I guess I understand things a little

better than I did, and  and when my father" 

The captain's heavy hand descended upon his shoulder. 

"Heave short, Al!" he commanded.  "I've been doin' consider'ble  thinkin' since Labe finished

hiserdiscourse and pronounced the  benediction, and I've come to a pretty definite conclusion on one

matter.  I've concluded that you and I had better cut out all the  bygones from this new arrangement of ours.

We won't have fathers  ororelopementsor pastanddonewith disapp'intments in it.  This  new

dealthis four year trial v'yage of ourswill be just  for Albert  Speranza and Zelotes Snow, and no others

need apply. . . .  Eh? . . .  Well, good night, Al." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VII 84



Top




Page No 87


CHAPTER VIII

So the game under the "new deal" began.  At first it was much  easier than the old.  And, as a matter of fact, it

was never as  hard  as before.  The heart to heart talk between Captain Zelotes  and his  grandson had given each

a glimpse of the other's inner  self, a look  from the other's point of view, and thereafter it was  easier to make

allowances.  But the necessity for the making of  those allowances was  still there and would continue to be

there.  At first Albert made  almost no mistakes in his bookkeeping, was  almost painfully careful.  Then the

carefulness relaxed, as it was  bound to do, and some  mistakes occurred.  Captain Lote found little  fault, but at

times he  could not help showing some disappointment.  Then his grandson would  set his teeth and buckle

down to painstaking  effort again.  He was  resolved to live up to the very letter of the  agreement. 

In his spare time he continued to write and occasionally he sold  something.  Whenever he did so there was

great rejoicing among the  feminine members of the Snow household; his grandmother and Rachel  Ellis were

enraptured.  It was amusing to see Captain Zelotes  attempt  to join the chorus.  He evidently felt that he ought

to  praise, or at  least that praise was expected from him, but it was  also evident that  he did not approve of what

he was praising. 

"Your grandma says you got rid of another one of your poetry  pieces, Al," he would say.  "Pay you for it, did

they?" 

"Not yet, but they will, I suppose." 

"I see, I see.  How much, think likely?" 

"Oh, I don't know.  Ten dollars, perhaps." 

"Umhm . . . I see. . . .  Well, that's pretty good, considerin', I  suppose. . . .  We did firstrate on that Hyannis

schoolhouse  contract, didn't we.  Nigh's I can figger it we cleared over  fourteen  hundred and eighty dollars

on that." 

He invariably followed any reference to the profit from the sale of  verses by the casual mention of a much

larger sum derived from the  sale of lumber or hardware.  This was so noticeable that Laban  Keeler  was

impelled to speak of it. 

"The old man don't want you to forget that you can get more for  hard pine than you can for soft sonnets,

sellin' 'em both by the  foot," observed Labe, peering over his spectacles.  "More money in  shingles than there

is in jingles, he cal'lates. . . .  Um. . . .  Yes, yes. . . .  Consider'ble more, consider'ble." 

Albert smiled, but it astonished him to find that Mr. Keeler knew  what a sonnet was.  The little bookkeeper

occasionally surprised  him  by breaking out unexpectedly in that way. 

From the indiscriminate praise at home, or the reluctant praise of  his grandfather, he found relief when he

discussed his verses with  Helen Kendall.  Her praise was not indiscriminate, in fact  sometimes  she did not

praise at all, but expressed disapproval.  They had some  disagreements, marked disagreements, but it did not

affect their  friendship.  Albert was a trifle surprised to find  that it did not. 

So as the months passed he ground away at the books of Z. Snow and  Company during office hours and at

the poetry mill between times.  The  seeing of his name in print was no longer a novelty and he  poetized  not

quite as steadily.  Occasionally he attempted prose,  but the two  or three short stories of his composition failed

to  sell.  Helen,  however, urged him to try again and keep trying.  "I  know you can  write a good story and some


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 85



Top




Page No 88


day you are going to," she  said. 

His first real literary success, that which temporarily lifted him  into the outer circle of the limelight of fame,

was a poem written  the day following that upon which came the news of the sinking of  the  Lusitania.  Captain

Zelotes came back from the postoffice that  morning, a crumpled newspaper in his hand, and upon his face

the  look  which mutinous foremast hands had seen there just before the  mutiny  ended.  Laban Keeler was the

first to notice the look.  "For  the land  sakes, Cap'n, what's gone wrong?" he asked.  The captain  flung the  paper

upon the desk.  "Read that," he grunted.  Labe  slowly spread  open the paper; the big black headlines shrieked

the  crime aloud. 

"Good God Almighty!" exclaimed the little bookkeeper.  Captain  Zelotes snorted.  "He didn't have anything to

do with it," he  declared.  "The bunch that pulled that off was handled from the  other  end of the line.  And I

wish to thunder I was young enough to  help  send 'em back there," he added, savagely. 

That evening Albert wrote his poem.  The next day he sent it to a  Boston paper.  It was published the following

morning, spread  across  two columns on the front page, and before the month was over  had been  copied

widely over the country.  Within the fortnight its  author  received his first request, a bona fida request for verse

from a  magazine.  Even Captain Lote's praise of the Lusitania poem  was  wholehearted and ungrudging. 

That summer was a busy one in South Harniss.  There was the usual  amount of summer gaiety, but in addition

there were the gatherings  of  the various committees for war relief work.  Helen belonged to  many of  these

committees.  There were dances and theatrical  performances for  the financial benefit of the various causes and

here Albert shone.  But he did not shine alone.  Helen Kendall was  very popular at the  social gatherings,

popular not only with the  permanent residents but  with the summer youth as well.  Albert  noticed this, but he

did not  notice it so particularly until Issy  Price called his attention to it. 

"Say, Al," observed Issy, one afternoon in late August of that  year, "how do YOU like that Raymond young

feller?" 

Albert looked up absently from the page of the daybook. 

"Eh?  What?" he asked. 

"I say how do YOU like that Eddie Raymond, the DownattheNeck  one?" 

"Down at the neck?  There's nothing the matter with his neck that I  know of." 

"Who said there was?  He LIVES down to the Neck, don't he?  I mean  that young Raymond, son of the New

York bank man, the ones that's  had  the Cahoon house all summer.  How do you like him?" 

Albert's attention was still divided between the daybook and Mr.  Price.  "Oh, I guess he's all right," he

answered, carelessly.  "I  don't know him very well.  Don't bother me, Issy, I'm busy." 

Issachar chuckled.  "He's busy, too," he observed.  "He, he, he!  He's busy trottin' after Helen Kendall.  Don't

seem to have time  for  much else these days.  Noticed that, ain't you, Al?  He, he!" 

Albert had not noticed it.  His attention left the daybook  altogether.  Issachar chuckled again. 

"Noticed it, ain't you, Al?" he repeated.  "If you ain't you're the  only one.  Everybody's cal'latin' you'll be cut

out if you ain't  careful.  Folks used to figger you was Helen's steady comp'ny, but  it  don't look as much so as it

did.  He, he!  That's why I asked  you how  you liked the Raymond one.  Eh?  How do you, Al?  Helen,  SHE


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 86



Top




Page No 89


seems to  like him fustrate.  He, he, he!" 

Albert was conscious of a peculiar feeling, partly of irritation at  Issachar, partly something else.  Mr. Price

crowed delightedly. 

"Hi!" he chortled.  "Why, Al, your face is gettin' all redded up.  Haw, haw!  Blushin', ain't you, Al?  Haw, haw,

haw!  Blushin', by  crimustee!" 

Albert laid down his pen.  He had learned by experience that, in  Issy's case, the maxim of the best defensive

being a strong  offensive  was absolutely true.  He looked with concern about the  office. 

"There's a window open somewhere, isn't there, Is?" he inquired.  "There's a dreadful draught anyhow." 

"Eh?  Draught?  I don't feel no draught.  Course the window's open;  it's generally open in summer time, ain't it.

Haw, haw!" 

"There it is again!  Where  Oh, _I_ see!  It's your mouth that's  open, Issy.  That explains the draught, of

course.  Yes, yes, of  course." 

"Eh?  My mouth!  Never you mind my mouth.  What you've got to think  about is that Eddie Raymond.  Yes

siree!  Haw, haw!" 

"Issy, what makes you make that noise?" 

"What noise?" 

"That awful cawing.  If you're trying to make me believe you're a  crow you're wasting your time." 

"Say, look here, Al Speranzy, be you crazy?" 

"Noo, I'M not.  But in your casewell, I'll leave it to any fair  minded person" 

And so on until Mr. Price stamped disgustedly out of the office.  It was easy enough, and required nothing

brilliant in the way of  strategy or repartee, to turn Issachar's attack into retreat.  But  all the rest of that

afternoon Albert was conscious of that  peculiar  feeling of uneasiness.  After supper that night he did not  go

down  town at once but sat in his room thinking deeply.  The  subjects of his  thoughts were Edwin Raymond,

the young chap from  New York, Yale, and  "The Neck"and Helen Kendall.  He succeeded  only in thinking

himself  into an even more uneasy and unpleasant  state of mind.  Then he walked  moodily down to the

postoffice.  He  was a little late for the mail  and the laughing and chatting groups  were already coming back

after  its distribution.  One such group he  met was made up of half a dozen  young people on their way to the

drug store for ices and sodas.  Helen  was among them and with her  was young Raymond.  They called to him

to  join them, but he  pretended not to hear. 

Now, in all the years of their acquaintance it had not once  occurred to Albert Speranza that his interest in

Helen Kendall was  anything more than that of a friend and comrade.  He liked her, had  enjoyed her

societywhen he happened to be in the mood to wish  societyand it pleased him to feel that she was

interested in his  literary efforts and his career.  She was the only girl in South  Harniss who would have "talked

turkey" to him as she had on the day  of their adventure at High Point Light and he rather admired her  for  it.

But in all his dreams of romantic attachments and  sentimental  adventure, and he had such dreams of course,

she had  never played a  part.  The heroines of these dreams were beautiful  and mysterious  strangers, not

daughters of Cape Cod clergymen. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 87



Top




Page No 90


But now, thanks to Issy's mischievous hints, his feelings were in a  puzzled and uncomfortable state.  He was

astonished to find that he  did not relish the idea of Helen's being particularly interested in  Ed Raymond.  He,

himself, had not seen her as frequently of late,  she  having been busy with her war work and he with his own

interests.  But  that, according to his view, was no reason why she should permit  Raymond to become friendly

to the point of causing people to talk.  He  was not ready to admit that he himself cared, in a sentimental  way,

for Helen, but he resented any other fellow's daring to do so.  And she  should not have permitted it, either.  As

a matter of fact,  Alberto  Miguel Carlos Speranza, hitherto reigning undisputed king of  hearts in  South

Harniss, was for the first time in his imperial life  feeling the  pangs of jealousy. 

He stalked gloomily on to the postoffice.  Gertie Kendrick, on the  arm of Sam Thatcher, passed him and he

did not even notice her.  Gertie whispered to Sam that he, Albert, was a big stuckup  nothing,  but she looked

back over Sam's shoulder, nevertheless.  Albert climbed  the postoffice steps and walked over to the rack of

letter boxes.  The Snow box contained little of interest to him,  and he was turning  away when he heard his

name spoken. 

"Good evening, Mr. Speranza," said a feminine voice. 

Albert turned again, to find Jane Kelsey and another young lady,  a  stranger, standing beside him.  Miss Kelsey

was one of South  Harniss's  summer residents.  The Kelsey "cottage," which was larger  by  considerable than

the Snow house, was situated on the Bay Road,  the  most exclusive section of the village.  Once, and not so

many  years  before, the Bay Road was contemptuously referred to as  "Poverty Lane"  and dwellers along its

winding, weedgrown track  vied with one another  in shiftless shabbiness.  But now all  shabbiness had

disappeared and  manygabled "cottages" proudly stood  where the shanties of the Poverty  Laners once

humbly leaned. 

Albert had known Jane Kelsey for some time.  They had met at one of  the hotel teadances during his second

summer in South Harniss.  He  and she were not intimate friends exactly, her mother saw to that,  but they were

well acquainted.  She was short and piquant, had a  nose  which freckled in the Cape Cod sunshine, and she

talked and  laughed  easily. 

"Good evening, Mr. Speranza," she said, again.  "You looked so very  forlorn I couldn't resist speaking.  Do tell

us why you are so sad;  we're dying to know." 

Albert, taken by surprise, stammered that he didn't know that he  was sad.  Miss Kelsey laughed merrily and

declared that everyone  who  saw him knew it at once.  "Oh, excuse me, Madeline," she added.  "I  forgot that

you and Mr. Speranza had not met.  Of course as  you're  going to live in South Harniss you must know him

without  waiting  another minute.  Everybody knows everybody down here.  He  is Albert  Speranzaand we

sometimes call him Albert because here  everybody  calls everyone else by their first names.  There, now you

know each  other and it's all very proper and formal. 

The young lady who was her companion smiled.  The smile was  distinctly worth looking at, as was the young

lady herself, for  that  matter. 

"I doubt if Mr. Speranza knows me very well, Jane," she observed. 

"Doesn't know you!  Why, you silly thing, haven't I just introduced  you?" 

"Well, I don't know much about South Harniss introductions, but  isn't it customary to mention names?  You

haven't told him mine." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 88



Top




Page No 91


Miss Kelsey laughed in high delight.  "Oh, how perfectly  ridiculous!"  she exclaimed.  "AlbertMr. Speranza,

I meanthis is my  friend  Miss Madeline Fosdick.  She is from New York and she has  decided to  spend her

summers in South Harnisswhich _I_ consider very  good  judgment.  Her father is going to build a cottage

for her to  spend  them in down on the Bay Road on the hill at the corner above the  Inlet.  But of course you've

heard of THAT!" 

Of course he had.  The purchase of the Inlet Hill land by Fletcher  Fosdick, the New York banker, and the

price paid Solomon Dadgett  for  that land, had been the principal topics of conversation around  South  Harniss

supper tables for the past ten days.  Captain Lote  Snow had  summed up local opinion of the transaction when

he said:  "Well, Sol  Dadgett's been talkin' in prayermeetin' ever since I  can remember  about the comin' of

Paradise on earth.  Judgin' by the  price he got  for the Inlet Hill sand heap he must have cal'lated  Paradise had

got  here and he was sellin' the golden streets by the  runnin' foot."  Or,  as Laban Keeler put it:  "They say King

Soloman  was a wise man, but I  guess likely 'twas a good thing for him that  Sol Dadgett wasn't alive  in his

time.  King Sol would have needed  all his wisdom to keep  Dadgett from talkin' him into buying the  Jerusalem

saltma'sh to build  the temple on. . . .  Um. . . .  Yesyesyes." 

So Albert, as he shook hands with Miss Fosdick, regarded her with  unusual interest.  And, judging by the way

in which she looked at  him, she too was interested.  After some minutes of the usual  conventional

summertime chat the young gentleman suggested that  they  adjourn to the drug store for refreshments.  The

invitation  was  accepted, the vivacious Miss Kelsey acting as spokesmanor  spokeswomanin the matter. 

"I think you must be a mindreader, Mr. Speranza," she declared.  "I am dying for a sundae and I have just

discovered that I haven't  my  purse or a penny with me.  I should have been reduced to the  humiliation of

borrowing from Madeline here, or asking that deaf  old  Burgess man to trust me until tomorrow.  And he is

so  frightfully  deaf," she added in explanation, "that when I asked him  the last time  he made me repeat it until

I thought I should die of  shame, or  exhaustion, one or the other.  Every time I shouted he  would say  'Hey?' and

I was obliged to shout again.  Of course, the  place was  crowded, and  Oh, well, I don't like to even think

about it.  Bless  you, bless you, Albert Speranza!  And do please  let's hurry!" 

When they entered the drug storeit also sold, according to its  sign, "Cigars, soda, icecream, patent

medicines, candy, knick  knacks, chewing gum, souvenirs and notions"the sextette of which  Helen

Kendall made one was just leaving.  She nodded pleasantly to  Albert and he nodded in return, but Ed

Raymond's careless bow he  did  not choose to see.  He had hitherto rather liked that young  gentleman;  now he

felt a sudden but violent detestation for him. 

Sundaes pleasant to the palate and disastrous to all but youthful  digestions were ordered.  Albert's had a slight

flavor of gall and  wormwood, but he endeavored to counterbalance this by the sweetness  derived from the

society of Jane Kelsey and her friend.  His  conversation was particularly brilliant and sparkling that evening.

Jane laughed much and chatted more.  Miss Fosdick was quieter, but  she, too, appeared to be enjoying herself.

Jane demanded to know  how  the poems were developing.  She begged him to have an  inspiration  now  "Do,

PLEASE, so that Madeline and I can see  you."  It seemed to  be her idea that having an inspiration was  similar

to having a fit.  Miss Fosdick laughed at this, but she  declared that she adored poetry  and specified certain

poems which  were objects of her especial  adoration.  The conversation  thereafter became what Miss Kelsey

described as "high brow," and  took the form of a dialogue between Miss  Fosdick and Albert.  It  was

interrupted by the arrival of the Kelsey  limousine, which  rolled majestically up to the drug store steps.  Jane

spied it  first. 

"Oh, mercy me, here's mother!" she exclaimed.  "And your mother,  too, Madeline.  We are tracked to our lair. .

. .  No, no, Mr.  Speranza, you mustn't go out.  No, really, we had rather you  wouldn't.  Thanks, ever so much,

for the sundaes.  Come, Madeline." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 89



Top




Page No 92


Miss Fosdick held out her hand. 

"Thank you, Mr. Speranza," she said.  "I have enjoyed our poetry  talk SO much.  It must be wonderful to write

as you do.  Good  night." 

She looked admiringly into his eyes as she said it.  In spite of  the gall and wormwood Albert found it not at all

unpleasant to be  looked at in that way by a girl like Madeline Fosdick.  His  reflections on that point were

interrupted by a voice from the car. 

"Come, Madeline, come," it said, fussily.  "What ARE you waiting  for?" 

Albert caught a glimpse of a majestic figure which, seated beside  Mrs. Kelsey on the rear seat of the

limousine, towered above that  short, plump lady as a dreadnaught towers above a coal barge.  He  surmised

this figure to be that of the maternal Fosdick.  Madeline  climbed in beside her parent and the limousine rolled

away. 

Albert's goingtobed reflections that evening were divided in  flavor, like a fruit sundae, a combination of

sweet and sour.  The  sour was furnished by thoughts of Edwin Raymond and Helen Kendall,  the former's

presumption in daring to seek her society as he did,  and  Helen's amazing silliness in permitting such a thing.

The  sweet, of  course, was furnished by a voice which repeated to his  memory the  words, "It must be

wonderful to write as you do."  Also  the tone of  that voice and the look in the eyes. 

Could he have been privileged to hear the closing bits of a  conversation which was taking place at that

moment his reflections  might have been still further saccharined.  Miss Jane Kelsey was  saying:  "And NOW

what do you think of our Cape Cod poet?  Didn't I  promise you to show you something you couldn't find on

Fifth  Avenue?"  And to this Miss Madeline Fosdick made reply:  "I think  he is the  handsomest creature I ever

saw.  And so clever!  Why, he  is wonderful,  Jane!  How in the world does he happen to be living  hereall the

time?" 

It is perhaps, on the whole, a good thing that Albert Speranza  could not hear this.  It is certainly a good thing

that Captain  Zelotes Snow did not hear it. 

And although the balance of sweet and sour in Albert's mind that  night was almost even, the sour

predominated next day and continued  to predominate.  Issachar Price had sowed the seed of jealousy in  the

mind of the assistant bookkeeper of Z. Snow and Company, and  that seed  took root and grew as it is only too

likely to do under  such  circumstances.  That evening Albert walked again to the post  office.  Helen was not

there, neither was Miss Kelsey or Miss  Fosdick.  He  waited for a time and then determined to call at the

Kendall home,  something he had not done for some time.  As he came  up to the front  walk, between the

arborvitae hedges, he saw that  the parlor windows  were alight.  The window shade was but partially  drawn

and beneath it  he could see into the room.  Helen was seated  at the piano and Edwin  Raymond was standing

beside her, ready to  turn the page of her music. 

Albert whirled on his heel and walked out of the yard and down the  street toward his own home.  His attitude

of mind was a curious  one.  He had a mind to wait until Raymond left and then go into  the Kendall  parlor and

demand of Helen to know what she meant by  letting that  fellow make such a fool of himself.  What right had

heRaymondto  call upon her, and turn her music andand set the  whole town talking?  Why  Oh, he

could think of many things to  ask and say.  The trouble  was that the saying of them would, he  felt sure, be

distinctly bad  diplomacy on his part.  No onenot  even hecould talk to Helen  Kendall in that fashion; not

unless  he wished it to be their final  conversation. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 90



Top




Page No 93


So he went home, to fret and toss angrily and miserably half the  night.  He had never before considered

himself in the slightest  degree in love with Helen, but he had taken for granted the thought  that she liked him

better than anyone else.  Now he was beginning  to  fear that perhaps she did not, and, with his temperament,

wounded  vanity and poetic imagination supplied the rest.  Within a  fortnight  he considered himself

desperately in love with her. 

During this fortnight he called at the parsonage, the Kendall home,  several times.  On the first of these

occasions the Reverend Mr.  Kendall, having just completed a sermon dealing with the war and,  being full of

his subject, read the said sermon to his daughter and  to Albert.  The reading itself lasted for threequarters of

an hour  and Mr. Kendall's postargument and general dissertation on German  perfidy another hour after that.

By that time it was late and  Albert  went home.  The second call was even worse, for Ed Raymond  called also

and the two young men glowered at each other until ten  o'clock.  They  might have continued to glower

indefinitely, for  neither meant to  leave before the other, but Helen announced that  she had some  homestudy

papers to look over and she knew they would  excuse her  under the circumstances.  On that hint they departed

simultaneously,  separating at the gate and walking with deliberate  dignity in opposite  directions. 

At his third attempt, however, Albert was successful to the extent  that Helen was alone when he called and

there was no school work to  interrupt.  But in no other respect was the interview satisfactory.  All that week he

had been boiling with the indignation of the  landed  proprietor who discovers a trespasser on his estate, and

before this  call was fifteen minutes old his feelings had boiled  over. 

"What IS the matter with you, Al?" asked Helen.  "Do tell me and  let's see if I can't help you out of your

trouble." 

Her visitor flushed.  "Trouble?" he repeated, stiffly.  "I don't  know what you mean." 

"Oh yes, do.  You must.  What IS the matter?" 

"There is nothing the matter with me." 

"Nonsense!  Of course there is.  You have scarcely spoken a word of  your own accord since you came, and

you have been scowling like a  thundercloud all the time.  Now what is it?  Have I done something  you don't

like?" 

"There is nothing the matter, I tell you." 

"Please don't be so silly.  Of course there is.  I thought there  must be something wrong the last time you were

here, that evening,  when Ed called, too.  It seemed to me that you were rather queer  then.  Now you are

queerer still.  What is it?" 

This straightforward attack, although absolutely characteristic of  Helen, was disconcerting.  Albert met it by

an attack of his own. 

"Helen," he demanded, "what does that Raymond fellow mean by coming  to see you as he does?" 

Now whether or not Helen was entirely in the dark as to the cause  of her visitor's "queerness" is a question

not to be answered here.  She was far from being a stupid young person and it is at least  probable that she may

have guessed a little of the truth.  But,  being  feminine, she did not permit Albert to guess that she had  guessed.

If  her astonishment at the question was not entirely  sincere, it  certainly appeared to be so. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 91



Top




Page No 94


"What does he mean?" she repeated.  "What does he mean by coming  to see me?  Why, what do YOU mean?  I

should think that was the  question.  Why shouldn't he come to see me, pray?" 

Now Albert has a dozen reasons in his mind, each of which was to  him sufficiently convincing.  But

expressing those reasons to Helen  Kendall he found singularly difficult.  He grew confused and  stammered. 

"Wellwell, because he has no business to come here so much," was  the best he could do.  Helen, strange to

say, was not satisfied. 

"Has no business to?" she repeated.  "Why, of course he has.  I  asked him to come." 

"You did?  Good heavens, you don't LIKE him, do you?" 

"Of course I like him.  I think he is a very nice fellow.  Don't  you?" 

"No, I don't." 

"Why not?" 

"Wellwell, because I don't, that's all.  He has no business to  monopolize you all the time.  Why, he is here

about every night in  the week, or you're out with him, down town, oror somewhere.  Everybody is talking

about it and" 

"Wait a minute, please.  You say everybody is talking about Ed  Raymond and me.  What do you mean by that?

What are they saying?" 

"They're saying. . . .  Oh, they're saying you and he areare" 

"Are what?" 

"Areare  Oh, they're saying all sorts of things.  Look here,  Helen, I" 

"Wait!  I want to know more about this.  What have you heard said  about me?" 

"Oh, a lot of things. . . .  That iserwell, nothing in  particular, perhaps, but" 

"Wait!  Who have you heard saying it?" 

"Oh, never mind!  Helen" 

"But I do mind.  Who have you heard saying this 'lot of things'  about me?" 

"Nobody, I tell you. . . .  Oh, well, if you must know, Issy Price  saidwell, he said you and this Raymond

fellow were what he called  'keeping company' andand that the whole town was talking about  it." 

She slowly shook her head. 

"Issy Price!" she repeated.  "And you listened to what Issy Price  said.  Issy Price, of all people!" 

"Wellwell, he said everyone else said the same thing." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 92



Top




Page No 95


"Did he say more than that?" 

"No, but that was enough, wasn't it.  Besides, the rest was plain.  I could see it myself.  He is calling here about

every night in the  week, andand being around everywhere with you andand  Oh,  anyone can see!" 

Helen's usually placid temper was beginning to ruffle. 

"Very well," she said, "then they may see.  Why shouldn't he call  here if he wishesand I wish?  Why

shouldn't I be 'around with  him,'  as you say?  Why not?" 

"Well, because I don't like it.  It isn't the right thing for you  to do.  You ought to be more careful ofof what

people say." 

He realized, almost as soon as this last sentence was blurted out,  the absolute tactlessness of it.  The quiet

gleam of humor he had  so  often noticed in Helen's eyes was succeeded now by a look he had  never  before

seen there. 

"Oh, I'm sorry," he added, hastily.  "I beg your pardon, Helen.  I  didn't mean to say that.  Forgive me, will

you?" 

She did not answer immediately.  Then she said, "I don't know  whether I shall or not.  I think I shall have to

think it over.  And  perhaps you had better go now." 

"But I'M sorry, Helen.  It was a fool thing to say.  I don't know  why I was such an idiot.  Do forgive me;

come!" 

She slowly shook her head.  "I can'tyet," she said.  "And this  you must understand:  If Ed Raymond, or

anyone else, calls on me  and  I choose to permit it, or if I choose to go out with him  anywhere at  any time, that

is my affair and not 'everyone else's'  which includes  Issachar Price.  And my FRIENDSmy real

friends  will not listen to  mean, ridiculous gossip.  Good night." 

So that was the end of that attempt at asserting the Divine Right  by the South Harniss king of hearts.  Albert

was more miserable  than  ever, angrier than evernot only at Raymond and Helen, but at  himselfand his

newlydiscovered jealousy burned with a brighter  and  greener flame.  The idea of throwing everything

overboard,  going to  Canada and enlisting in the Canadian Armyan idea which  had had a  strong and

alluring appeal ever since the war broke out  came back  with redoubled force.  But there was the agreement

with  his  grandfather.  He had given his word; how could he break it?  Besides,  to go away and leave his rival

with a clear field did not  appeal to  him, either. 

On a Wednesday evening in the middle of September the final social  event of the South Harniss summer

season was to take place.  The  Society for the Relief of the French Wounded was to give a dance in  the

ballroom of the hotel, the proceeds from the sale of tickets to  be devoted to the purpose defined by the name

of this organization.  Every last member of the summer colony was to attend, of course,  and  all those of the

permanent residents who aspired to social  distinction  and cared to pay the high price of admission. 

Albert was going, naturally.  That is, he had at first planned to  go, thenafter the disastrous call at the

parsonagedecided that  he  would go under no circumstances, and at the last changed his  mind once  more to

the affirmative.  Miss Madeline Fosdick, Jane  Kelsey's friend,  was responsible for the final change.  She it was

who had sold him his  ticket and urged him to be present.  He and  she had met several times  since the first

meeting at the post  office.  Usually when they met  they talked concerning poetry and  kindred lofty topics.

Albert liked  Miss Fosdick.  It is hard not  to like a pretty, attractive young lady  who takes such a flattering


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 93



Top




Page No 96


interest in one's aspirations and literary  efforts.  The "high brow  chitchats"quoting Miss Kelsey

againwere  pleasant in many ways;  for instance, they were in the nature of a  tonic for weakened self

esteem, and the Speranza selfesteem was  suffering just at this  time, from shock. 

Albert had, when he first heard that the dance was to take place,  intended inviting Helen to accompany him.

He had taken her  acceptance for granted, he having acted as her escort to so many  dances and social affairs.

So he neglected inviting her and then  came Issy's mischiefmaking remarks and the trouble which followed.

So, as inviting her was out of the question, he resolved not to  attend, himself.  But Miss Fosdick urged so

prettily that he bought  his ticket and promised to be among those present. 

"Provided, of course," he ventured, being in a reckless mood, "that  you save me at least four dances."  She

raised her brows in mock  dismay. 

"Oh, my goodness!" she exclaimed.  "I'm afraid I couldn't do that.  Four is much too many.  One I will promise,

but no more." 

However, as he persisted, she yielded another.  He was to have two  dances and, possibly an "extra." 

"And you are a lucky young man," declared Jane Kelsey, who had also  promised two.  "If you knew how

many fellows have begged for just  one.  But, of course," she added, "THEY were not poets, second  editions of

Tennyson and Keats and all that.  It is Keats who was  the  poet, isn't it, Madeline?" she added, turning to her

friend.  "Oh, I'm  so glad I got it right the first time.  I'm always mixing  him up with  Watts, the man who

invented the hymns and wrote the  steamengineor  something." 

The Wednesday evening in the middle of September was a beautiful  one and the hotel was crowded.  The

Item, in its account the  following week, enumerating those present, spoke of "Our new  residents, Mrs.

Fletcher Story Fosdick and Miss Madeline Fosdick,  who  are to occupy the magnificent residence now about

being built  on the  Inlet Hill by their husband and father, respectively,  Fletcher Story  Fosdick, Esquire, the

wellknown New York banker."  The phrasing of  this news note caused much joy in South Harniss,  and the

Item gained  several new and hopeful subscribers. 

But when the gushing reporter responsible for this added that "Miss  Fosdick was a dream of loveliness on this

occasion" he was stating  only the truth.  She was very beautiful indeed and a certain young  man who stepped

up to claim his first dance realized the fact.  The  said young man was outwardly cool, but redhot within, the

internal  rise in temperature being caused by the sight of Helen Kendall  crossing the floor arm in arm with

Edwin Raymond.  Albert's face  was  white with anger, except for two red spots on his cheeks, and  his  black

eyes flashed.  Consequently he, too, was considered quite  worth  the looking at and feminine glances followed

him. 

"Who is that handsome, foreignlooking fellow your friend is  dancing with?" whispered one young lady, a

guest at the hotel, to  Miss Kelsey.  Jane told her. 

"But he isn't a foreigner," she added.  "He lives here in South  Harniss all the year.  He is a poet, I believe, and

Madeline, who  knows about such thingsinherits it from her mother, I suppose  says his poetry is

beautiful." 

Her companion watched the subject of their conversation as, with  Miss Fosdick, he moved lightly and surely

through the crowd on the  floor. 

"He LOOKS like a poet," she said, slowly.  "He is wonderfully  handsome, so distinguished, and SUCH a

dancer!  But why should a  poet  live hereall the year?  Is that all he does for a living  write  poetry?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 94



Top




Page No 97


Jane pretended not to hear her and, a masculine friend coming to  claim his dance, seized the opportunity to

escape.  However,  another  "sitter out" supplied the information. 

"He is a sort of assistant bookkeeper at the lumber yard by the  railroad station," said this person.  "His

grandfather owns the  place, I believe.  One would never guess it to look at him now. . . .  Humph!  I wonder if

Mrs. Fosdick knows.  They say she iswell,  not  democratically inclined, to say the least." 

Albert had his two promised dances with Madeline Fosdick, but the  "extra" he did not obtain.  Mrs. Fosdick,

the ever watchful, had  seen  and made inquiries.  Then she called her daughter to her and  issued an  ultimatum. 

"I am SO sorry," said the young lady, in refusing the plea for the  "extra."  "I should like to, but Ibut Mother

has asked me to  dance  with a friend of ours from home.  II AM sorry, really." 

She looked as if she meant it.  Albert was sorry, too.  This had  been a strange evening, another combination of

sweet and sour.  He  glanced across the floor and saw Helen and the inevitable Raymond  emerge together from

the room where the refreshments were served.  Raging jealousy seized him at the sight.  Helen had not been

near  him, had scarcely spoken to him since his arrival.  He forgot that  he  had not been near nor spoken to her. 

He danced twice or thrice more with acquaintances, "summer" or  permanent, and then decided to go home.

Madeline Fosdick he saw at  the other end of the room surrounded by a group of young masculinity.  Helen he

could not see at the moment.  He moved in the direction of  the coatroom.  Just as he reached the door he was

surprised to see  Ed  Raymond stride by him, head down and looking anything but joyful.  He  watched and was

still more astonished to see the young man get  his  coat and hat from the attendant and walk out of the hotel.

He  saw him  stride away along the drive and down the moonlit road.  He  was,  apparently, going homegoing

home alone. 

He got his own coat and hat and, before putting them on, stepped  back for a final look at the ballroom.  As he

stood by the  cloakroom  door someone touched his arm.  Turning he saw Helen. 

"Whywhy, Helen!" he exclaimed, in surprise. 

"Are you going home?" she asked, in a low tone. 

"Yes, I" 

"And you are going alone?" 

"Yes." 

"Would you mindwould it trouble you too much to walk with me as  far as our house?" 

"Whywhy of course not.  I shall be delighted.  But I thought  you  I thought Ed Raymond" 

"No, I'm alone.  Wait here; I will be ready in just a minute." 

She hurried away.  He gazed after her in bewilderment.  She and he  had scarcely exchanged a word during the

evening, and now, when the  evening was almost over, she came and asked him to be her escort.  What in the

wide world? 

The minute she had specified had hardly elapsed when she  reappeared,  ready for out of doors.  She took his

arm and they walked  down the  steps of the hotel, past the group of lights at the head of  the  drive and along


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 95



Top




Page No 98


the road, with the moon shining down upon it and  the  damp, salt breeze from the ocean blowing across it.

They walked  for  the first few minutes in silence.  There were a dozen questions he  would have liked to ask,

but his jealous resentment had not entirely  vanished and his pride forbade.  It was she who spoke first. 

"Albert," she said, "you must think this very odd." 

He knew what she meant, but he did not choose to admit it. 

"What?" he asked. 

"Why, my asking you to walk home with me, afterafter our trouble.  It is strange, I suppose, particularly as

you had not spoken before  this whole evening." 

"_I_spoken to YOU?  Why, you bowed to me when I came into the  room and that was the only sign of

recognition you gave me until  just  now.  Not a dancenot one." 

"Did you expect me to look you up and beg you to dance with me?" 

"Did you expect me to trot at that fellow's heels and wait my  chance to get a word with you, to take what he

left?  I should say  not!  By George, Helen, I" 

She interrupted him.  "Hush, hush!" she pleaded.  "This is all so  silly, so childish.  And we mustn't quarrel any

more.  I have made  up  my mind to that.  We mustn't." 

"Humph!  All right, _I_ had no thought of quarreling in the  beginning.  But there are some things a

selfrespecting chap can't  stand.  I have SOME pride, I hope." 

She caught her breath quickly.  "Do you think," she asked, "that it  was no sacrifice to my pride to beg you to

walk home with me?  Afterafter the things you said the other evening?  Oh, Albert,  how  could you say

them!" 

"Well" he hesitated, and then added, "I told you I was sorry." 

"Yes, but you weren't really sorry.  You must have believed the  things that hateful Issachar Price said or you

wouldn't have  repeated  them. . . .  Oh, but never mind that now, I didn't mean to  speak of it  at all.  I asked you

to walk home with me because I  wanted to make up  our quarrel.  Yes, that was it.  I didn't want to  go away and

feel  that you and I were not as good friends as ever.  So, you see, I put  all MY pride to one sideand asked." 

One phrase in one sentence of this speech caught and held the young  man's attention.  He forgot the others. 

"You are going away?" he repeated.  "What do you mean?  Where are  you going?" 

"I am going to Cambridge to study.  I am going to take some courses  at Radcliffe.  You know I told you I

hoped to some day.  Well, it  has  been arranged.  I am to live with my cousin, father's half  sister in  Somerville.

Father is well enough to leave now and I  have engaged a  capable woman, Mrs. Peters, to help Maria with the

housework.  I am  going Friday morning, the day after tomorrow." 

He stopped short to stare at her. 

"You are going away?" he asked, again.  "You are going to do that  andand  Why didn't you tell me

before?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 96



Top




Page No 99


It was a characteristic return to his attitude of outraged royalty.  She had made all these plans, had arranged to

do this thing, and he  had not been informed.  At another time Helen might have laughed at  him; she generally

did when he became what she called the "Grand  Bashaw."  She did not laugh now, however, but answered

quietly. 

"I didn't know I was going to do it until a little more than a week  ago," she said.  "And I have not seen you

since then." 

"No, you've been too busy seeing someone else." 

She lost patience for the instant.  "Oh, don't, don't, don't!" she  cried.  "I know who you mean, of course.  You

mean Ed Raymond.  Don't  you know why he has been at the house so much of late?  Why  he and I  have been

so much together?  Don't you really know?" 

"What? . . .  No, I don'texcept that you and he wanted to be  together." 

"And it didn't occur to you that there might be some other reason?  You forgot, I suppose, that he and I were

appointed on the Ticket  Committee for this very dance?" 

He had forgotten it entirely.  Now he remembered perfectly the  meeting of the French Relief Society at which

the appointment had  been made.  In fact Helen herself had told him of it at the time.  For  the moment he was

staggered, but he rallied promptly. 

"Committee meetings may do as an excuse for some things," he said,  "but they don't explain the resthis

calls here every other  evening  andand so on.  Honest now, Helen, you know he hasn't been  running  after

you in this way just because he is on that committee  with you;  now don't you?" 

They were almost at the parsonage.  The light from Mr. Kendall's  study window shone through the leaves of

the lilac bush behind the  white fence.  Helen started to speak, but hesitated.  He repeated  his  question. 

"Now don't you?" he urged. 

"Why, why, yes, I suppose I do," she said, slowly.  "I do know  now.  But I didn't even think of such a thing

untiluntil you came  that evening and told me what Issy Price said." 

"You mean you didn't guess at all?" 

"Wellwell, perhaps II thought he liked to comeliked to  Oh,  what is the use of being silly!  I did

think he liked to call, but  only as a friend.  He was jolly and lots of fun and we were both  fond  of music.  I

enjoyed his company.  I never dreamed that there  was  anything more than that until you came and were

sodisagreeable.  And  even then I didn't believeuntil tonight." 

Again she hesitated.  "Tonight?" he repeated.  "What happened to  night?" 

"Oh nothing.  I can't tell you.  Oh, why can't friends be friends  and not. . . .  That is why I spoke to you, Albert,

why I wanted to  have this talk with you.  I was going away so soon and I couldn't  bear to go with any

unfriendliness between us.  There mustn't be.  Don't you see?" 

He heard but a part of this.  The memory of Raymond's face as he  had seen it when the young man strode out

of the cloakroom and out  of  the hotel came back to him and with it a great heartthrobbing  sense  of relief, of

triumph.  He seized her hand. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 97



Top




Page No 100


"Helen," he cried, "did hedid you tell him  Oh, by George,  Helen, you're the most wonderful girl in the

world!  I'mI  Oh,  Helen, you know II" 

It was not his habit to be at a loss for words, but he was just  then.  He tried to retain her hand, to put his arm

about her. 

"Oh, Helen!" he cried.  "You're wonderful!  You're splendid!  I'm  crazy about you!  I really am!  I" 

She pushed him gently away.  "Don't!  Please don't!" she said.  "Oh, don't!" 

"But I must.  Don't you see I. . . .  Why, you're crying!" 

Her face had, for a moment, been upturned.  The moon at that moment  had slipped behind a cloud, but the

lamplight from the window had  shown him the tears in her eyes.  He was amazed.  He could have  shouted,

have laughed aloud from joy or triumphant exultation just  then, but to weep!  What occasion was there for

tears, except on Ed  Raymond's part? 

"You're crying!" he repeated.  "Why, Helen!" 

"Don't!" she said, again.  "Oh, don't!  Please don't talk that  way." 

"But don't you want me to, Helen?  II want you to know how I  feel.  You don't understand.  I" 

"Hush! . . .  Don't, Al, don't, please.  Don't talk in that way.  I  don't want you to." 

"But why not?" 

"Oh, because I don't.  It'sit is foolish.  You're only a boy, you  know." 

"A boy!  I'm more than a year older than you are." 

"Are you?  Why yes, I suppose you are, really.  But that doesn't  make any difference.  I guess girls are older

than boys when they  are  our age, lots older." 

"Oh, bother all that!  We aren't kids, either of us.  I want you to  listen.  You don't understand what I'm trying to

say." 

"Yes, I do.  But I'm sure you don't.  You are glad because you have  found you have no reason to be jealous of

Ed Raymond and that makes  you sayfoolish things.  But I'm not going to have our friendship  spoiled in that

way.  I want us to be real friends, always.  So you  mustn't be silly." 

"I'm not silly.  Helen, if you won't listen to anything else, will  you listen to this?  Will you promise me that

while you are away  you  won't have other fellows calling on you oror anything like  that?  And I'll promise

you that I'll have nothing to say to  another  girlin any way that counts, I mean.  Shall we promise  each other

that, Helen?  Come!" 

She paused for some moment before answering, but her reply, when it  came, was firm. 

"No," she said, "I don't think we should promise anything, except  to remain friends.  You might promise and

then be sorry, later." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER VIII 98



Top




Page No 101


"_I_ might?  How about you?" 

"Perhaps we both might.  So we won't take the risk.  You may come  and see me tomorrow evening and say

goodby, if you like.  But you  mustn't stay long.  It is my last night with father for some time  and  I mustn't

cheat him out of it.  Good night, Albert.  I'm so  glad our  misunderstanding is over, aren't you?" 

"Of course I am.  But, Helen" 

"I must go in now.  Good night." 

The reflections of Alberto Speranza during his walk back to the  Snow place were varied but wonderful.  He

thought of Raymond's  humiliation and gloried in it.  He thought of Helen and rhapsodized.  And if,

occasionally, he thought also of the dance and of Madeline  Fosdick, forgive him.  He was barely twentyone

and the moon was  shining. 

CHAPTER IX

The goodby call the following evening was, to him at least, not  very satisfactory.  Helen was tired, having

been busy all day with  the final preparations for leaving, and old Mr. Kendall insisted  on  being present during

the entire visit and in telling long and  involved  stories of the trip abroad he had made when a young man  and

the  unfavorable opinion which he had then formed of Prussians  as traveling  companions.  Albert's opinion of

Prussians was at  least as unfavorable  as his own, but his complete and even eager  agreement with each of the

old gentleman's statements did not have  the effect of choking the  latter off, but rather seemed to act as

encouragement for more.  When  ten o'clock came and it was time to  go Albert felt as if he had been  listening

to a lecture on the  Hohenzollerns.  "Great Scott, Helen," he  whispered, as she came to  the door with him, "I

don't feel as if I had  talked with you a  minute.  Why, I scarcely" 

But just here Mr. Kendall came hurrying from the sittingroom to  tell of one incident which he had hitherto

forgotten, and so even  this brief interval of privacy was denied.  But Albert made one  more  attempt. 

"I'm going to run over to the station tomorrow morning to see you  off," he called from the gate.  "Good

night." 

The morning train left at nine o'clock, and at a quarter to nine  Albert, who had kept his eye on the clock ever

since eight, his  hour  of arriving at the office, called to Mr. Price. 

"I say," he said, in a low tone and one as casual as he could  assume, "I am going to run out for a few minutes.

I'll be right  back." 

Issachar's response was as usual anything but low. 

"Eh?" he shouted.  "Goin' out?  Where you goin'?" 

"Oh, I'm just going outeron an errand." 

"What kind of an errand?  I was cal'latin' to run out myself for a  little spell.  Can't I do your errand for you?" 

"No, no. . .  There, there, don't bother me any more.  I'm in a  hurry." 

"Hurry!  So'm I in a hurry.  I was cal'latin' to run acrost to the  deepo and see Helen Kendall start for Boston.


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 99



Top




Page No 102


She's goin' this  morning; did you know it?" 

Before the somewhat flustered assistant bookkeeper could reply  Captain Zelotes called from the inner office: 

"Wouldn't wonder if that was where Al was bound, too," he observed.  "And I was thinkin' of the same thing.

Suppose we all go together.  Labe'll keep shop, won't you, Labe?" 

Mr. Keeler looked over his spectacles.  "Eh?" he observed.  "Oh,  yes, yes . . .  yes, yes, yes.  And say goodby

to Helen for me,  some  of you, if you happen to think of it.  Not that 'twill make  much  difference to her," he

added, "whether she gets my goodbys or  not,  but it might make some to me. . . .  Um, yes, yes." 

Mr. Price was eager to oblige. 

"I'll tell her you sent 'em, Labe," he said, patronizingly.  "Set  your mind to rest; I'll tell her." 

Laban's lip twitched.  "Much obliged, Is," he chirruped.  "That's a  great relief!  My mind's rested some

already." 

So, instead of going alone to the railway station, Albert made one  of a delegation of three.  And at the station

was Mr. Kendall, and  two of the school committee, and one or two members of the church  sewing circle, and

the president and secretary of the Society for  the  Relief of the French Wounded.  So far from being an

intimate  confidential farewell, Helen's departure was in the nature of a  public ceremony with speechmaking.

Mr. Price made most of the  speeches, in fact the lower portion of his countenance was in  violent  motion most

of the ten minutes. 

"Take care of yourself, Helen," he urged loudly.  "Don't you worry  about your pa, we'll look out for him.  And

don't let none of them  Boston fellers carry you off.  We'll watch and see that Eddie  Raymond  and Al here

don't get into mischief while you're gone.  I . . .  Crimustee!  Jim Young, what in time's the matter with you?

Can't ye  see nothin'?" 

This last outburst was directed at the driver of the depotwagon,  who, wheeling a trunk on a baggage truck,

had bumped violently into  the rear of Mr. Price's legs, just at the knee joint, causing their  owner to bend

backward unexpectedly, and with enthusiasm. 

"Can't you see nothin' when it's right in front of ye?" demanded  Issachar, righteously indignant. 

Jim Young winked over his shoulder at Albert.  "Sorry, Is," he  said, as he continued toward the baggage car.

"I didn't notice you  WAS in front of me." 

"Well, then, you'd better. . . .  Eh?  See here, what do you mean  by that?" 

Even after Mr. Price had thus been pushed out of the foreground, so  to speak, Albert was denied the

opportunity of taking his place by  Helen's side.  Her father had a few last messages to deliver, then  Captain

Zelotes shook her hand and talked for a moment, and, after  that, the ladies of the sewing circle and the war

work society felt  it their duty to, severally and jointly, kiss her goodby.  This  last  was a trying operation to

watch. 

Then the engine bell rang and the train began to move.  Albert,  running beside the platform of the last car,

held up his hand for a  farewell clasp. 

"Goodby," he said, and added in a whisper, "You'll write, won't  you?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 100



Top




Page No 103


"Of course.  And so must you.  Goodby." 

The last car and the handkerchief waving figure on its platform  disappeared around the curve.  The little group

by the station  broke  up.  Albert and his grandfather walked over to the office  together. 

"There goes a good girl, Al," was Captain Lote's only comment.  "A  mighty good capable girl." 

Albert nodded.  A moment later he lifted his hat to a group in a  passing automobile. 

"Who were those folks?" asked the Captain. 

"The Fosdicks," was the reply.  "The people who are going to build  down by the Inlet." 

It was Madeline and her mother.  The latter had been serenely  indifferent, but the young lady had smiled and

bowed behind the  maternal shoulders. 

"Oh; that so?" observed Captain Zelotes, looking after the flying  car with interest.  "That's who 'tis, eh?  Nice

lookin', the young  one, ain't she?" 

Albert did not answer.  With the noise of the train which was  carrying Helen out of his life still ringing in his

ears it seemed  wicked even to mention another girl's name, to say nothing of  commenting upon her good

looks.  For the rest of that day he was a  gloomy spirit, a dark shadow in the office of Z. Snow and Co. 

Before the end of another fortnight the season at South Harniss was  definitely over.  The hotel closed on the

Saturday following the  dance, and by October first the last of the cottages was locked and  shuttered.  The

Kelseys went on the twentieth and the Fosdicks went  with them.  Albert met Madeline and Jane at the

postoffice in the  evening of the nineteenth and there more farewells were said. 

"Don't forget us down here in the sand, will you?" he suggested to  Miss Fosdick.  It was Jane Kelsey who

answered. 

"Oh, she won't forget," returned that young lady.  "Why she has  your photograph to remember you by." 

Madeline colored becomingly and was, as Jane described it, "awfully  fussed." 

"Nonsense!" she exclaimed, with much indignation, "I haven't any  such thing.  You know I haven't, Jane." 

"Yes, you have, my dear.  You have a photograph of him standing  in  front of the drug store and looking

dreamily in atat the  strawberry  sundaes.  It is a most romantic pose, really." 

Albert laughed.  He remembered the photograph.  It was one of a  series of snapshots taken with Miss Kelsey's

camera one Saturday  afternoon when a party of young people had met in front of the  sundae  dispensary.  Jane

had insisted on "snapping" everyone. 

"That reminds me that I have never seen the rest of those  photographs," he said. 

"Haven't you?" exclaimed Jane.  "Well, you ought to see them.  I  have Madeline's with me.  It is a dream, if I

do say it as I took  it." 

She produced the snapshot, which showed her friend standing beside  the silverleaf tree before the druggist's

window and smiling at  the  camera.  It was a good likeness and, consequently, a very  pretty  picture. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 101



Top




Page No 104


"Isn't it a dream, just as I said?" demanded the artist.  "Honest  now, isn't it? 

Albert of course declared it to be beyond praise. 

"May I have this one?" he asked, on the impulse of the moment. 

"Don't ask me, stupid," commanded Jane, mischievously.  "It isn't  my funeralor my portrait, either." 

"May I?" he repeated, turning to Madeline.  She hesitated. 

"Whywhy yes, you may, if you care for it," she said.  "That  particular one is Jane's, anyway, and if she

chooses to give it  away  I don't see how I can prevent her.  But why you should want  the old  thing I can't

conceive.  I look as stiff and wooden as a  signpost." 

Jane held up a protesting finger. 

"Fibs, fibs, fibs," she observed.  "Can't conceive why he should  want it!  As if you weren't perfectly aware that

he will wear it  next  his heart and  Oh, don't put it in THAT pocket!  I said next  your  heart, and that isn't on

your RIGHT side." 

Albert took the photograph home and stuck it between the frame and  glass of his bureau.  Then came a sudden

remembrance of his parting  with Helen and with it a twinge of conscience.  He had begged her  to  have

nothing to do with any other fellow.  True she had refused  to  promise and consequently he also was unbound,

but that made no  differenceshould not make any.  So he put the photograph at the  back of the drawer where

he kept his collars and ties, with a  resolve  never to look at it.  He did not look at itvery often. 

Then came another long winter.  He ground away at the bookkeeping  he was more proficient at it, but he

hated it as heartily as ever  and wrote a good deal of verse and some prose.  For the first time  he  sold a prose

article, a short story, to a minor magazine.  He  wrote  long letters to Helen and she replied.  She was studying

hard, she  liked her work, and she had been offered the opportunity  to tutor in a  girls' summer camp in

Vermont during July and August  and meant to  accept provided her father's health continued good.  Albert

protested  violently against her being absent from South  Harniss for so long.  "You will scarcely be home at

all," he wrote.  "I shall hardly see  you.  What am I going to do?  As it is now I  miss you" and so on for  four

closely written pages.  Having  gotten into the spirit of  composition he, so to speak, gloried in  his loneliness,

so much so  that Helen was moved to remonstrate.  "Your letter made me almost  miserable," she wrote, "until I

had  read it over twice.  Then I began  to suspect that you were enjoying  your wretchedness, or enjoying

writing about it.  I truly don't  believe anyoneyou especiallycould  be quite as lonesome as all  that.

Honestly now, Albert, weren't you  exaggerating a little?  I  rather think you were?" 

He had been, of course, but it irritated him to think that she  recognized the fact.  She had an uncanny faculty

of seeing through  his every pretense.  In his next letter he said nothing whatever  about being lonesome. 

At home, and at the office, the war was what people talked about  most of the time.  Since the Lusitania's

sinking Captain Zelotes  had  been a battle charger chafing at the bit.  He wanted to fight  and to  fight at once. 

"We've got to do it, Mother," he declared, over and over again.  "Sooner or later we've got to fight that Kaiser

gang.  What are we  waitin' for; will somebody tell me that?" 

Olive, as usual, was mild and unruffled. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 102



Top




Page No 105


"Probably the President knows as much about it as you and me,  Zelotes," she suggested.  "I presume likely he

has his own  reasons." 

"Humph!  When Seth Bassett got up in the night and took a drink out  of the bottle of Paris Green by mistake

'Bial Cahoon asked him what  in time he kept Paris Green in his bedroom for, anyhow.  All that  Seth would

say was that he had his own reasons.  The rest of the  town  was left to guess what those reasons was.  That's

what the  President's  doin'keepin' us guessin'.  By the everlastin', if I  was younger I'd  ship aboard a British

limejuicer and go and fight,  myself!" 

It was Rachel Ellis who caused the Captain to be a bit more  restrained in his remarks. 

"You hadn't ought to talk that way, Cap'n Lote," she said.  "Not  when Albert's around, you hadn't." 

"Eh?  Why not?" 

"Because the first thing you know he'll be startin' for Canada to  enlist.  He's been crazy to do it for 'most a

year." 

"He has?  How do you know he has?" 

"Because he's told me so, more'n once." 

Her employer looked at her. 

"Humph!" he grunted.  "He seems to tell you a good many things he  doesn't tell the rest of us." 

The housekeeper nodded.  "Yes," she said gravely, "I shouldn't  wonder if he did."  A moment later she added,

"Cap'n Lote, you will  be careful, won't you?  You wouldn't want Al to go off and leave Z.  Snow and

Company when him and you are gettin' on so much better.  You  ARE gettin' on better, ain't you?" 

The captain pulled at his beard. 

"Yes," he admitted, "seems as if we was.  He ain't any wonder at  bookkeepin', but he's better'n he used to be;

and he does seem to  try  hard, I'll say that for him." 

Rachael beamed gratification.  "He'll be a Robert Penfold yet," she  declared; "see if he isn't.  So you musn't

encourage him into  enlistin' in the Canadian army.  You wouldn't want him to do that  any  more'n the rest of us

would." 

The captain gazed intently into the bowl of the pipe which he had  been cleaning.  He made no answer. 

"You wouldn't want him to do that, would you?" repeated the  housekeeper. 

Captain Lote blew through the pipe stem.  Then he said, "No, I  wouldn't . . . but I'm darn glad he's got the

spunk to WANT to do  it.  We may get that Portygee streak out of him, poetry and all,  give us  time; eh,

Rachael?" 

It was the first time in months that he had used the word  "Portygee"  in connection with his grandson.  Mrs.

Ellis smiled to  herself. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 103



Top




Page No 106


In April the arbutus buds began to appear above the leaf mold  between the scrub oaks in the woods, and the

walls of Fletcher  Fosdick's new summer home began to rise above the young pines on  the  hill by the Inlet in

the Bay Road.  The Item kept its readers  informed, by weekly installments, of the progress made by the

builders. 

The lumber for Mr. Fletcher Fosdick's new cottage is beginning to  be hauled to his property on Inlet Hill in

this town.  Our  enterprising firm of South Harniss dealers, Z. Snow Co., are  furnishing said lumber.  Mr.

Nehemiah Nickerson is to do the mason  work.  Mr. Fosdick shows good judgment as well as a commendable

spirit in engaging local talent in this way.  We venture to say he  will never regret it. 

A week later: 

Mr. Fletcher Fosdick's new residence is beginning building, the  foundation being pretty near laid. 

And the following week: 

The Fosdick mansion is growing fast.  South Harniss may well be  proud of its new ornament. 

The rise in three successive numbers from "cottage" to "mansion" is  perhaps sufficient to indicate that the

Fosdick summer home was to  be, as Issachar Price described it, "Some considerable house!  Yes  sir, by

crimus, some considerable!" 

In June, Helen came home for a week.  At the end of the week she  left to take up her new duties at the

summer camp for girls in  Vermont.  Albert and she were together a good deal during that  week.  Anticipating

her arrival, the young man's ardent imagination  had  again fanned what he delighted to think of as his love for

her  into  flame.  During the last months of the winter he had not played  the  languishing swain as

conscientiously as during the autumn.  Like the  sailor in the song "is 'eart was true to Poll" always, but  he had

broken away from his selfimposed hermitage in his room at  the Snow  place several times to attend

sociables, entertainments  and, even,  dances.  Now, when she returned he was eagerly awaiting  her and would

have haunted the parsonage before and after working  hours of every day  as well as the evening, if she had

permitted,  and when with her  assumed a proprietary air which was so obvious  that even Mr. Price  felt called

upon to comment on it. 

"Say, Al," drawled Issachar, "cal'late you've cut out Eddie Raymond  along with Helen, ain't ye?  Don't see

him hangin' around any since  she got back, and the way you was actin' when I see you struttin'  into the

parsonage yard last night afore mail time made me think  you  must have a first mortgage on Helen and her pa

and the house  and the  meetin'house and twothirds of the graveyard.  I never see  such an  importantlookin'

critter in MY life.  Haw, haw!  Eh?  How  'bout it?" 

Albert did not mind the Price sarcasm; instead he felt rather  grateful to have the proletariat recognize that he

had triumphed  again.  The fly in his ointment, so to speak, was the fact that  Helen  herself did not in the least

recognize that triumph.  She  laughed at  him. 

"Don't look at me like that, please, please, don't," she begged. 

"Why not?" with a repetition of the look. 

"Because it is silly." 

"Silly!  Well, I like that!  Aren't you and I engaged?  Or just the  same as engaged?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 104



Top




Page No 107


"No, of course we are not." 

"But we promised each other" 

"No, we did not.  And you know we didn't." 

"Helen, why do you treat me that way?  Don't you know thatthat I  just worship the ground you tread on?

Don't you know you're the  only  girl in this world I could ever care for?  Don't you know  that?" 

They were walking home from church Sunday morning and had reached  the corner below the parsonage.

There, screened by the thicket of  young silverleafs, she stopped momentarily and looked into his  face.  Then

she walked on. 

"Don't you know how much I care?" he repeated. 

She shook her head.  "You think you do now, perhaps," she said,  "but you will change your mind." 

"What do you mean by that?  How do you know I will?" 

"Because I know you.  There, there, Albert, we won't quarrel, will  we?  And we won't be silly.  You're an

awfully nice boy, but you  are  just a boy, you know." 

He was losing his temper. 

"This is ridiculous!" he declared.  "I'm tired of being  grandmothered  by you.  I'm older than you are, and I

know what I'm  doing.  Come,  Helen, listen to me." 

But she would not listen, and although she was always kind and  frank and friendly, she invariably refused to

permit him to become  sentimental.  It irritated him, and after she had gone the  irritation  still remained.  He

wrote her as before, although not  quite so often,  and the letters were possibly not quite so long.  His pride was

hurt  and the Speranza pride was a tender and  important part of the Speranza  being.  If Helen noted any change

in  his letters she did not refer to  it nor permit it to influence her  own, which were, as always, lengthy,

cheerful, and full of interest  in him and his work and thoughts. 

During the previous fall, while under the new influence aroused in  him by his discovery that Helen Kendall

was "the most wonderful  girl  in the world," said discovery of course having been previously  made  for him by

the unfortunate Raymond, he had developed a habit  of  wandering off into the woods or by the seashore to be

alone and  to  seek inspiration.  When a young poet is in love, or fancies  himself in  love, inspiration is usually

to be found wherever  sought, but even at  that age and to one in that condition solitude  is a marked aid in the

search.  There were two or three spots which  had become Albert  Speranza's favorites.  One was a high,

windswept  knoll, overlooking  the bay, about a half mile from the hotel,  another was a secluded nook  in the

pine grove beside Carver's Pond,  a pretty little sheet of water  on the Bayport boundary.  On  pleasant Saturday

afternoons or Sundays,  when the poetic fit was on  him, Albert, with a half dozen pencils in  his pocket, and a

rhyming  dictionary and a scribbling pad in another,  was wont to stroll  towards one or the other of these two

retreats.  There he would  sprawl amid the beachgrass or upon the pineneedles  and dream and  think and,

perhaps, ultimately write. 

One fair Saturday in late June he was at the first of these  respective points.  Lying prone on the beach grass at

the top of  the  knoll and peering idly out between its stems at the water  shimmering  in the summer sun, he was

endeavoring to find a subject  for a poem  which should deal with love and war as requested by the  editor of

the  Columbian Magazine.  "Give us something with a girl  and a soldier in  it," the editor had written.  Albert's


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 105



Top




Page No 108


mind was  lazily drifting in  search of the pleasing combination. 

The sun was warm, the breeze was light, the horizon was veiled with  a liquid haze.  Albert's mind was veiled

with a similar haze and  the  idea he wanted would not come.  He was losing his desire to  find it  and was, in

fact, dropping into a doze when aroused by a  bloodcurdling outburst of barks and yelps and growls behind

him,  at  his very heels.  He came out of his nap with a jump and,  scrambling to  a sitting position and turning,

he saw a small Boston  bullterrier  standing within a yard of his ankles and, apparently,  trying to turn  his

brindled outside in, or his inside out, with  spiteful ferocity.  Plainly the dog had come upon him unexpectedly

and was expressing  alarm, suspicion and disapproval. 

Albert jerked his ankles out of the way and said "Hello, boy," in  as cheerfully cordial a tone as he could

muster at such short  notice.  The dog took a step forward, evidently with the idea of  always  keeping the ankles

within jumping distance, showed a double  row of  healthy teeth and growled and barked with renewed

violence. 

"Nice dog," observed Albert.  The nice dog made a snap at the  nearest ankle and, balked of his prey by a

frenzied kick of the  foot  attached to the ankle, shrieked, snarled and gurgled like a  canine  lunatic. 

"Go home, you ugly brute," commanded the young man, losing  patience, and looking about for a stone or

stick.  On the top of  that  knoll the largest stone was the size of a buckshot and the  nearest  stick was, to be

Irish, a straw. 

"Nice doggie!  Nice old boy!  Come and be patted! . . .  Clear out  with you!  Go home, you beast!" 

Flatteries and threats were alike in their result.  The dog  continued  to snarl and growl, darting toward the

ankles occasionally.  Evidently he was mustering courage for the attack.  Albert in  desperation scooped up a

handful of sand.  If worst came to worst  he  might blind the creature temporarily.  What would happen after

that  was not clear.  Unless he might by a lucky cast fill the dog's  interior so full of sand thatlike the famous

"Jumping Frog"it  would be too heavy to navigate, he saw no way of escape from a  painful bite, probably

more than one.  What Captain Zelotes had  formerly called his "Portygee temper" flared up. 

"Oh, damn you, clear out!" he shouted, springing to his feet. 

From a little way below him; in fact, from behind the next dune,  between himself and the beach, a feminine

voice called his name. 

"Oh, Mr. Speranza!" it said.  "Is it you?  I'm so glad!" 

Albert turned, but the moment he did so the dog made a dash at his  legs, so he was obliged to turn back again

and kick violently. 

"Oh, I am so glad it is you," said the voice again.  "I was sure it  was a dreadful tramp.  Googoo loathes

tramps." 

As an article of diet that meant, probably.  Googooif that was  the dog's namewas passionately fond of

poets, that was self  evident, and intended to make a meal of this one, forthwith.  He  flew  at the Speranza

ankles.  Albert performed a most undignified  war  dance, and dashed his handful of sand into Googoo's open

countenance.  For a minute or so there was a lively shindy on top  of that knoll.  At the end of the minute the

dog, held tightly in a  pair of feminine  arms, was emitting growls and coughs and sand,  while Madeline

Fosdick  and Albert Speranza were kneeling in more  sand and looking at each  other. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 106



Top




Page No 109


"Oh, did he bite you?" begged Miss Fosdick. 

"No . . . no, I guess not," was the reply.  "II scarcely know  yet. . . .  Why, when did you come?  I didn't know

you were in  town." 

"We came yesterday.  Motored from home, you know.  Ibe still,  Goo, you bad thing!  It was such a lovely

day that I couldn't  resist  going for a walk along the beach.  I took Googoo because he  does love  it so,

andGoo, be still, I tell you!  I am sure he  thinks you are a  tramp, out here all alone in thein the

wilderness.  And what were  you doing here?" 

Albert drew a long breath.  "I was half asleep, I guess," he said,  "when he broke loose at my heels.  I woke up

quick enough then, as  you may imagine.  And so you are here for the summer?  Your new  house  isn't finished,

is it?" 

"No, not quite.  Mother and Goo and I are at the hotel for a month.  But you haven't answered my question.

What were you doing off here  all alone?  Have you been for a walk, too?" 

"Not exactly.  Iwell, I come here pretty often.  It is one of my  favorite hiding places.  You see, I . . . don't

laugh if I tell  you,  will you?" 

"Of course not.  Go on; this is very mysterious and interesting." 

"Well, I come here sometimes on pleasant days, to be aloneand  write." 

"Write?  Write poetry, do you mean?" 

"Yes." 

"Oh, how wonderful!  Were you writing when Iwhen Goo interrupted  you?" 

"No; I had made two or three attempts, but nothing that I did  satisfied me.  I had just about decided to tear

them up and to give  up trying for this afternoon." 

"Oh, I hope you won't tear them up.  I'm sure they shouldn't be.  Perhaps you were not in a proper mood to

judge, yourself." 

"Perhaps not.  Perhaps they might look a little less hopeless to  some one else.  But that person would have to

be really interested,  and there are few people in South Harniss who know or care anything  about poetry." 

"I suppose that is true.  II don't suppose you would care to show  them to me, would you?" 

"Why," eagerly, "would you really care to see them?" 

"Indeed I should!  Not that my judgment or advice is worth  anything, of course.  But I am very, very fond of

poetry, and to  see  how a real poet wrote would be wonderful.  And if I could help  you,  even the least little bit,

it would be such an honor." 

This sort of thing was balm to the Speranza spirit.  Albert's  temperamental ego expanded under it like a

rosebud under a summer  sun.  Yet there was a faint shadow of doubtshe might be making  fun  of him.  He

looked at her intently and she seemed to read his  thoughts, for she said: 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 107



Top




Page No 110


"Oh, I mean it!  Please believe I do.  I haven't spoken that way  when Jane was with me, for she wouldn't

understand and would laugh,  but I mean it, Mr. Speranza.  It would be an honora great honor." 

So the still protesting and rebellious Googoo was compelled to go a  few feet away and lie down, while his

mistress and the young man  whom  he had attempted to devour bent their heads together over a

scribblingpad and talked and exclaimed during the whole of that  hour  and a full threequarters of the next.

Then the distant town  clock in  the steeple of the Congregational church boomed five times  and Miss  Fosdick

rose to her feet. 

"Oh," she said, "it can't really be five o'clock, can it?  But it  is!  What WILL mother fancy has become of me?

I must go this  minute.  Thank you, Mr. Speranza.  I have enjoyed this so much.  It has been a  wonderful

experience." 

Her cheeks were flushed and her eyes were shining.  She had grown  handsomer than ever during the winter

months.  Albert's eyes were  shining also as he impulsively seized her hand. 

"Thank you, Miss Fosdick," he said.  "You have helped me more than  I can tell you.  I was about to give up in

despair before you came,  and nownow I KNOW I shall write the best thing I have ever done.  And you will

be responsible for it." 

She caught her breath.  "Oh, not really!" she exclaimed.  "You  don't mean it, really?" 

"Indeed I do!  If I might have your help and sympathy once in  awhile, I believeI believe I could do almost

anything.  Will you  help me again some day?  I shall be here almost every pleasant  Saturday and Sunday

afternoon.  Will you come again?" 

She hesitated.  "II'll see; perhaps," she answered hurriedly.  "But I must go now.  Come, Goo." 

She hastened away, down the knoll and along the beach toward the  hotel.  Googoo followed her, turning

occasionally to cast  diabolical  glances at the Speranza ankles.  Albert gazed until the  graceful  figure in the

trim sport costume disappeared behind the  corner of the  point of the beach.  Just at the point she paused to

wave to him.  He  waved in return.  Then he tramped homeward.  There  was deep sand  beneath his feet and,

later, pineneedles and grass.  They were all  alike to him, for he was traveling on air. 

That evening at supper his radiant appearance caused comment. 

"What makes you look so happy, Albert?" asked his grandmother.  "Seems to me I never saw you look so sort

ofwell, glorified, as  you  might say.  What is the reason?" 

The glorified one reddened and was confused.  He stammered that he  did not know, he was not aware of any

particular reason. 

Mrs. Ellis beamed upon him.  "I presume likely his bookkeepin' at  the office has been goin' pretty well lately,"

she suggested. 

Captain Zelote's gray eyes twinkled.  "Cal'late he's been makin' up  more poetry about girls," was his offering.

"Another one of those  pieces about teeth like pearls and hair all curls, or somethin'  like  that.  Say, Al, why

don't you poetrymakin' fellers try a new  one once  in a while?  Say, 'Her hair's like rope and her face has  lost

hope.'  Eh?  Why not, for a change?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 108



Top




Page No 111


The protests on the part of Olive and the housekeeper against the  captain's innovation in poetrymaking had

the effect of distracting  attention from Albert's "glorified" appearance.  The young man  himself was thankful

for the respite. 

That night before he retired he took Madeline Fosdick's photograph  from the back of the drawer among the

ties and collars and looked  at  it for five minutes at least.  She was a handsome girl,  certainly.  Not that that

made any difference to him.  And she was  an intelligent  girl; she understood his poetry and appreciated it.

Yes, and she  understood him, too, almost as well as Helen. . . .  Helen!  He hastily  returned the Fosdick

photograph to the drawer;  but this time he did  not put it quite so near the back. 

On the following Saturday he was early at the knoll, a brandnew  scribblingpad in his pocket and in his

mind divine gems which were  later, and with Miss Fosdick's assistance, to be strung into a  glittering necklace

of lyric song and draped, with the stringer's  compliments, about the throat of a grateful muse.  But no gems

were  strung that day.  Madeline did not put in an appearance, and by and  by it began to rain, and Albert

walked home, damp, dejected, and  disgusted.  When, a day or two later, he met Miss Fosdick at the  post  office

and asked why she had not come he learned that her  mother had  insisted upon a motor trip to Wapatomac that

afternoon. 

"Besides," she said, "you surely mustn't expect me EVERY Saturday." 

"No," he admitted grudgingly, "I suppose not.  But you will come  sometimes, won't you?  I have a perfectly

lovely idea for a ballad  and I want to ask your advice about it." 

"Oh, do you really?  You're not making fun?  You mean that my  advice is really worth something?  I can't

believe it." 

He convinced her that it was, and the next Saturday afternoon they  spent together at the inspiration point

among the dunes, at work  upon  the ballad.  It was not finished on that occasion, nor on the  next,  for it was an

unusually long ballad, but progress was made,  glorious  progress. 

And so, during that Summer, as the Fosdick residence upon the Bay  Road grew and grew, so did the

acquaintanceship, the friendship,  the  poetic partnership between the Fosdick daughter and the  grandson of

Captain Zelotes Snow grow and grow.  They met almost  every Saturday,  they met at the post office on week

evenings,  occasionally they saw  each other for a moment after church on  Sunday mornings.  Mrs.  Fletcher

Fosdick could not imagine why her  only child cared to attend  that stuffy little country church and  hear that

prosy Kendall minister  drone on and on.  "I hope, my  dear, that I am as punctilious in my  religious duties as

the  average woman, but one Kendall sermon was  sufficient for me, thank  you.  What you see in THAT church

to please  you, _I_ can't guess." 

If she had attended as often as Madeline did she might have guessed  and saved herself much.  But she was

busy organizing, in connection  with Mrs. Seabury Calvin, a Literary Society among the summer  people  of

South Harniss.  The Society was to begin work with the  discussion  of the poetry of Rabindranath Tagore.  Mrs.

Fosdick  said she doted on  Tagore; Mrs. Calvin expressed herself as being  positively insane about  him.  A

warm friendship had sprung up  between the two ladies, as each  was particularly fond of shining as  a literary

light and neither under  any circumstances permitted a  new lion to roar unheard in her  neighborhood,

provided, of course,  that the said roarings had been  previously endorsed and well  advertised by the critics and

the press. 

So Mrs. Fosdick was too busy to accompany Madeline to church on  Sunday or to walk on Saturday, and the

young lady was left to  wander  pretty much at her own sweet will.  That sweet will led her  footsteps  to trails

frequented by Albert Speranza and they walked  and talked and  poetized together.  As for Mr. Fletcher


The Portygee

CHAPTER IX 109



Top




Page No 112


Fosdick, he  was busy at his  office in New York and came to South Harniss only  for infrequent  weekends. 

The walks and talks and poetizings were innocent enough.  Neither  of the partners in poesy had the least idea

of anything more than  being just that.  They liked each other, they had come to call each  other by their

Christian names, and on Albert's bureau Madeline's  photograph now stood openly and without apology.

Albert had  convinced himself there was nothing to apologize for.  She was his  friend, that was all.  He liked to

write and she liked to help him  erwell, just as Helen used to when she was at home.  He did not  think of

Helen quite as often as formerly, nor were his letters to  her as frequent or as long. 

So the summer passed and late August came, the last Saturday  afternoon of that month.  Albert and Madeline

were together,  walking  together along the beach from the knoll where they had met  so often.  It was six

o'clock and the beach was deserted.  There  was little  wind, the tiny waves were lapping and plashing along the

shore, and  the rosy light of the sinking sun lay warm upon the  water and the  sand.  They were thinking and

speaking of the summer  which was so near  its end. 

"It has been a wonderful summer, hasn't it?" said Albert. 

"Yes, wonderful," agreed Madeline. 

"Yes, IIby George, I never believed a summer could be so  wonderful." 

"Nor I." 

Silence.  Then Albert, looking at her, saw her eyes looking into  his and saw in them 

He kissed her. 

That morning Albert Speranza had arisen as usual, a casual,  careless, perfectly human young fellow.  He went

to bed that night  a  superman, an archangel, a demigod, with his head in the clouds  and  the earth a cloth of

gold beneath his feet.  Life was a pathway  through Paradise arched with rainbows. 

He and Madeline Fosdick loved each other madly, devotedly.  They  were engaged to be married.  They had

plighted troth.  They were to  be each other's, and no one else's, for everand everand ever. 

CHAPTER X

The remainder of that summer was a paradisical meandering over the  cloth of gold beneath the rainbows.

Albert and his Madeline met  often, very often.  Few poems were written at these meetings.  Why  trouble to put

penciled lines on paper when the entire universe was  a  poem especially composed for your benefit?  The

lovers sat upon  the  knoll amid the sand dunes and gazed at the bay and talked of  themselves separately,

individually, and, more especially,  collectively.  They strolled through the same woody lanes and  discussed

the same satisfactory subjects.  They met at the post  office or at the drug store and gazed into each other's

eyes.  And,  what was the most astonishing thing about it all, their secret  remained undiscovered.

Undiscovered, that is to say, by those by  whom discovery would have meant calamity.  The gossips among

the  townspeople winked and chuckled and cal'lated Fletcher Fosdick had  better look out or his girl would be

took into the firm of Z. Snow  and Co.  Issachar Price uttered sarcastic and sly innuendoes.  Jane  Kelsey and

her set ragged the pair occasionally.  But even these  never really suspected that the affair was serious.  And

neither  Mrs.  Fletcher Fosdick nor Captain and Mrs. Zelotes Snow gave it a  minute's  attention. 

It was serious enough with the principals, however.  To them it was  the only serious matter in the world.  Not


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 110



Top




Page No 113


that they faced or  discussed the future with earnest and complete attention.  Some day  or otherthat was of

course the mutually accepted ideasome day  or  other they were to marry.  In the meantime here was the

blissful  present with its roses and rainbows and here, for each, was the  other.  What would be likely to happen

when the Fosdick parents  learned of the engagement of their only child to the assistant  bookkeeper of the

South Harniss lumber and hardware company was  unpleasant to contemplate, so why contemplate it?  Upon

one point  they were agreednever, never, NEVER would they give each other  up.  No power on

earthwhich included parents and grandparents  should  or could separate them. 

Albert's conscience troubled him slightly at first when he thought  of Helen Kendall.  It had been in reality

such a short time  although of course it seemed ages and agessince he had fancied  himself in love with

her.  Only the previous fallyes, even  that  very spring, he had asked her to pledge herself to him.

Fortunatelyoh, how very fortunately!she had refused, and he had  been left free.  Now he knew that his

fancied love for her had been  merely a passing whim, a delusion of the moment.  ThisTHIS which  he  was

now experiencing was the grand passion of his life.  He  wrote a  poem with the title, "The Greater Love"and

sold it, too,  to a  sensational periodical which circulated largely among  sentimental  shopgirls.  It is but truthful

to state that the editor  of the  magazine to which he first submitted it sent it back with  the brief  note"This is

a trifle too syrupy for our use.  Fear the  pages might  stick.  Why not send us another war verse?"  Albert  treated

the note  and the editor with the contempt they deserved.  He pitied the latter;  poor soul, doubtless HE had

never known the  greater love. 

He and Madeline had agreed that they would tell no oneno one at  allof their betrothal.  It should be their

own precious secret  for  the present.  So, under the circumstances, he could not write  Helen  the news.  But

ought he to write her at all?  That question  bothered  him not a little.  He no longer loved herin fact, he was

now certain  that he never had loved herbut he liked her, and he  wanted her to  keep on liking him.  And she

wrote to him with  regularity.  What ought  he to do about writing her? 

He debated the question with himself and, at last, and with some  trepidation, asked Madeline's opinion of his

duty in the matter.  Her  opinion was decisive and promptly given.  Of course he must not  write  Helen again.

"How would you like it if I corresponded with  another  fellow?" she asked.  Candor forced him to admit that

he  should not  like it at all.  "But I want to behave decently," he  said.  "She is  merely a friend of mine"oh,

how short is memory!  "but we have been  friends for a long time and I wouldn't want to  hurt her feelings."

"No, instead you prefer to hurt mine."  "Now,  dearest, be  reasonable."  It was their nearest approach to a

quarrel and was a  very, very sad affair.  The makingup was sweet,  of course, but the  question of further

correspondence with Helen  Kendall remained just  where it was at the beginning.  And,  meanwhile, the

correspondence  lapsed. 

September came far, far too sooncame and ended.  And with it  ended also the stay of the Fosdicks in South

Harniss.  Albert and  Madeline said goodby at their rendezvous by the beach.  It was a  sad, a tearful, but a

very precious farewell.  They would write  each  other every day, they would think of each other every minute

of every  day, they would live through the winter somehow and look  forward to  the next spring and their next

meeting. 

"You will writeoh, ever and ever so many poems, won't you, dear?"  begged Madeline.  "You know how I

love them.  And whenever I see  one  of your poems in print I shall be so proud of youof MY poet." 

Albert promised to write ever and ever so many.  He felt that there  would be no difficulty in writing reams of

poemsinspired,  glorious  poems.  The difficulty would be in restraining himself  from writing  too many of

them.  With Madeline Fosdick as an  inspiration, poetizing  became as natural as breathing. 

Then, which was unusual for them, they spoke of the future, the  dim, vague, but so happy future, when Albert

was to be the nation's  poet laureate and Madeline, as Mrs. Laureate, would share his glory  and wear, so to


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 111



Top




Page No 114


speak, his secondbest laurels.  The disagreeable  problems connected with the future they ignored, or casually

dismissed with, "Never mind, dear, it will be all right by and by."  Oh, it was a wonderful afternoon, a rosy,

cloudy, happy, sorrowful,  bittersweet afternoon. 

And the next morning Albert, peeping beneath Z. Snow and Co.'s  office window shade, saw his heart's desire

step aboard the train,  saw that train puff out of the station, saw for just an instant a  small hand waved behind

the dingy glass of the car window.  His own  hand waved in reply.  Then the raucous voice of Mr. Price broke

the  silence. 

"Who was you flappin' your flipper at?" inquired Issachar.  "Girl,  I'll bet you!  Never saw such a critter as you

be to chase after  the  girls.  Which one is it this time?" 

Albert made no reply.  Between embarrassment and sorrow he was  incapable of speech.  Issachar, however,

was not in that condition;  at all times when awake, and sometimes when asleep, Mr. Price  could,  and usually

did, speak. 

"Which one is it this time, Al?" demanded Issy.  "Eh?  Crimus, see  him get red!  Haw, haw!  Labe," to Mr.

Keeler, who came into the  office from the inner room, "which girl do you cal'late Al here is  wavin' bybye to

this mornin'?  Who's goin' away on the cars this  mornin', Labe?" 

Laban, his hands full of the morning mail, absently replied that he  didn't know. 

"Yes, you do, too," persisted Issy.  "You ain't listenin', that's  all.  Who's leavin' town on the train just now?" 

"Eh?  Oh, I don't know.  The Small folks are goin' to Boston, I  believe.  And George Bartlett's goin' to Ostable

on court business,  he told me.  Oh, yes, I believe Cap'n Lote said that Fosdick woman  and her daughter were

goin' back to New York.  Back to New York  yesyesyes." 

Mr. Price crowed triumphantly.  "Ah, ha!" he crowed.  "Ah, ha!  That's the answer.  That's the one he's shakin'

daydays to, that  Fosdick girl.  I've seen you 'round with her at the post office and  the ice cream s'loon.  I'm

onto you, Al.  Haw, haw!  What's her  name?  Adeline?  Dandelion?  Madeline?that's it!  Say, how do you

think  Helen Kendall's goin' to like your throwin' kisses to the  Madeline  one, eh?" 

The assistant bookkeeper was still silent.  The crimson, however,  was leaving his face and the said face was

paling rapidly.  This  was  an ominous sign had Mr. Price but known it.  He did not know it  and  cackled merrily

on, 

"Guess I'll have to tell Helen when she comes back home," he  announced.  "Cal'late I'll put a flea in her ear.

'Helen,' I'll  say,  'don't feel too bad now, don't cry and get your handkerchief  all  soakin', or nothin' like that.  I

just feel it's my duty to  tell ye  that your little Albert is sparkin' up to somebody else.  He's waitin'  on a party by

the name of Padelineno, Madeline  Woodtickno,  Fosdickand . . .'  Here! let go of me!  What are you

doin'?" 

That last question was in the nature of a gurgle.  Albert, his face  now very white indeed, had strode across the

office, seized the  speaker by the front of his flannel shirt and backed him against  the  wall. 

"Stop," commanded Albert, between his teeth.  "That's enough of  that.  Don't you say any more!" 

"Eh?  Ugh!  Urgg!  Leggo of my shirt." 

Albert let go, but he did not step back.  He remained where he was,  exactly in front of Mr. Price. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 112



Top




Page No 115


"Don't you say any more aboutabout what you were saying," he  repeated. 

"Eh?  Not say any more?  Why not?  Who's goin' to stop me, I'd like  to know?" 

"I am." 

"I want to know!  What'll you do?" 

"I don't know.  If you weren't so old, I wouldbut I'll stop you,  anyhow." 

Albert felt a hand on his arm and heard Mr. Keeler's voice at his  ear. 

"Careful, Al, careful," it said.  "Don't hit him." 

"Of course I shan't hit him," indignantly.  "What do you think I  am?  But he must promise not to

mentionerMiss Fosdick's name  again." 

"Better promise, Is," suggested Laban.  Issachar's mouth opened,  but no promise came forth. 

"Promise be darned!" he yelled furiously.  "Mention her name!  I'll  mention any name I set out to, and no

Italyun Portygee is goin' to  stop me, neither." 

Albert glanced about the office.  By the wall stood two brimming  pails of water, brought in by Mr. Price for

floorwashing purposes.  He lifted one of the pails. 

"If you don't promise I'll duck you," he declared.  "Let go of me,  Keeler, I mean it." 

"Careful, Al, careful," said Mr. Keeler.  "Better promise, Is." 

"Promise nawthin'!  Fosdick!  What in time do I care for Fosdicks,  Madelines or Padelines or Dandelions

or" 

His sentence stopped just there.  The remainder of it was washed  back and down his throat by the deluge from

the bucket.  Overcome  by  shock and surprise, Mr. Price leaned back against the wall and  slid  slowly down

that wall until he reclined in a sitting posture,  upon the  floor. 

"Crimustee," he gasped, as soon as he could articulate, "I'mawk  I'm drownded." 

Albert put down the empty bucket and picked up the full one. 

"Promise," he said again. 

Laban Keeler rubbed his chin. 

"I'd promise if I was you, Is," he said.  "You're some subject to  rheumatism, you know." 

Issachar, sitting in a spreading puddle, looked damply upward at  the remaining bucket.  "By crimustee" he

began.  Albert drew the  bucket backward; the water dripped from its lower brim. 

"IIdarn ye, I promise!" shouted Issachar.  Albert put down the  bucket and walked back to his desk.

Laban watched him curiously,  smiling just a little.  Then he turned to Mr. Price, who was  scrambling to his


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 113



Top




Page No 116


feet. 

"Better get your mop and swab up here, Is," he said.  "Cap'n  Lote'll be in 'most any minute." 

When Captain Zelotes did return to the office, Issachar was  industriously sweeping out, Albert was hard at

work at the books,  and  Laban was still rubbing his chin and smiling at nothing in  particular. 

The next day Albert and Issachar made it up.  Albert apologized. 

"I'm sorry, Issy," he said.  "I shouldn't have done it, but you  made me mad.  I have arather mean temper, I'm

afraid.  Forgive  me,  will you?" 

He held out his hand, and Issachar, after a momentary hesitation,  took it. 

"I forgive you this time, Al," he said solemnly, "but don't never  do nothin' like it again, will ye?  When I went

home for dinner  yesterday noon I give you my word my clothes was kind of dampish  even  then.  If it hadn't

been nice warm sunshine and I was out  doors and  dried off considerable I'd a had to change everything,

underclothes  and all, and 'tain't but the middle of the week yet." 

His ducking had an effect which Albert noticed with considerable  satisfactionhe was never quite as

flippantly personal in his  comments concerning the assistant bookkeeper.  He treated the  latter,  if not with

respect, at least with something distantly akin  to it. 

After Madeline's departure the world was very lonely indeed.  Albert wrote long, long letters and received

replies which varied  in  length but never in devotion.  Miss Fosdick was obliged to be  cautious  in her

correspondence with her lover.  "You will forgive  me if this is  not much more than a note, won't you, dear?"

she  wrote.  "Mother seems  to be very curious of late about my letters  and to whom I write and I  had to just

steal the opportunity this  morning."  An older and more  apprehensive person might have found  Mrs. Fosdick's

sudden interest in  her daughter's correspondence  suspicious and a trifle alarming, but  Albert never dreamed

of being  alarmed. 

He wrote many poems, all dealing with love and lovers, and sold  some of them.  He wrote no more letters to

Helen.  She, too, had  ceased to write him, doubtless because of the lack of reply to her  last two or three letters.

His conscience still troubled him about  Helen; he could not help feeling that his treatment of her had not  been

exactly honorable.  Yet what else under the circumstances  could  he do?  From Mr. Kendall he learned that she

was coming home  to spend  Thanksgiving.  He would see her then.  She would ask him  questions?  What

should his answer be?  He faced the situation in  anticipation  many, many times, usually after he had gone to

bed at  night, and lay  awake through long torturing hours in consequence. 

But when at last Helen and he did meet, the day before  Thanksgiving,  their meeting was not at all the

dreadful ordeal he had  feared.  Her  greeting was as frank and cordial as it had always been,  and there  was no

reproach in her tone or manner.  She did not even ask  him why  he had stopped writing.  It was he, himself,

who referred to  that  subject, and he did so as they walked together down the main  road.  Just why he referred

to it he could not probably have told.  He  was  aware only that he felt mean and contemptible and that he must

offer  some explanation.  His not having any to offer made the task  rather  difficult. 

But she saved him the trouble.  She interrupted one of his  blundering, stumbling sentences in the middle. 

"Never mind, Albert," she said quietly.  "You needn't explain.  I  think I understand." 

He stopped and stared at her.  "You understand?" he repeated.  "Whywhy, no, you don't.  You can't." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 114



Top




Page No 117


"Yes, I can, or I think I can.  You have changed your mind, that is  all." 

"Changed my mind?" 

"Yes.  Don't you remember I told you you would change your mind  aboutwell, about me?  You were so sure

you cared so very, very  much  for me, you know.  And I said you mustn't promise anything  because I  thought

you would change your mind.  And you have.  That  is it, isn't  it?  You have found some one else." 

He gazed at her as if she were a witch who had performed a miracle. 

"Whywhywell, by George!" he exclaimed.  "Helenhowhow did  you know?  Who told you?" 

"No one told me.  But I think I can even guess who it is you have  found.  It is Madeline Fosdick, isn't it?" 

His amazement now was so openmouthed as well as openeyed that she  could not help smiling. 

"Don't!  Don't stare at me like that," she whispered.  "Every one  is looking at you.  There is old Captain Pease

on the other side of  the street; I'm sure he thinks you have had a stroke or something.  Here!  Walk down our

road a little way toward home with me.  We can  talk as we walk.  I'm sure," she added, with just the least bit of

change in her tone, "that your Madeline won't object to our being  together to that extent." 

She led the way down the side street toward the parsonage and he  followed her.  He was still speechless from

surprise. 

"Well," she went on, after a moment, "aren't you going to say  anything?" 

"Butbut, Helen," he faltered, "how did you know?" 

She smiled again.  "Then it IS Madeline," she said.  "I thought it  must be." 

"Youyou thought  What made you think so?" 

For an instant she seemed on the point of losing her patience. 

Then she turned and laid her hand on his arm. 

"Oh, Al," she said, "please don't think I am altogether an idiot.  I surmised when your letters began to grow

shorter andwell,  differentthat there was something or some one who was changing  them, and I

suspected it was some one.  When you stopped writing  altogether, I KNEW there must be.  Then father wrote

in his letters  about you and about meeting you, and so often Madeline Fosdick was  wherever he met you.  So I

guessedand, you see, I guessed right." 

He seized her hand. 

"Oh, Helen," he cried, "if you only knew how mean I have felt and  how ashamed I am of the way I have

treated you!  But, you see, II  COULDN'T write you and tell you because we had agreed to keep it a  secret.

I couldn't tell ANY ONE." 

"Oh, it is as serious as that!  Are you two really and truly  engaged?" 

"Yes.  There!  I've told it, and I swore I would never tell." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 115



Top




Page No 118


"No, no, you didn't tell.  I guessed.  Now tell me all about her.  She is very lovely.  Is she as sweet as she

looks?" 

He rhapsodized for five minutes.  Then all at once he realized what  he was saying and to whom he was saying

it.  He stopped, stammering,  in the very middle of a glowing eulogium. 

"Go on," said Helen reassuringly.  But he could not go on, under  the circumstances.  Instead he turned very

red.  As usual, she  divined his thought, noticed his confusion, and took pity on it. 

"She must be awfully nice," she said.  "I don't wonder you fell in  love with her.  I wish I might know her

better." 

"I wish you might.  By and by you must.  And she must know you.  Helen, II feel so ashamed ofof" 

"Hush, or I shall begin to think you are ashamed because you liked  meor thought you did." 

"But I do like you.  Next to Madeline there is no one I like so  much.  But, but, you see, it is different." 

"Of course it is.  And it ought to be.  Does her motherdo her  people know of the engagement?" 

He hesitated momentarily.  "Noo," he admitted, "they don't yet.  She and I have decided to keep it a secret

from any one for the  present.  I want to get on a little further with my writing, you  know.  She is like you in

that, Helenshe's awfully fond of poetry  and literature." 

"Especially yours, I'm sure.  Tell me about your writing.  How are  you getting on?" 

So he told her and, until they stood together at the parsonage  gate, Madeline's name was not again mentioned.

Then Helen put out  her hand. 

"Good morning, Albert," she said.  "I'm glad we have had this talk,  ever so glad." 

"By George, so am I!  You're a corking friend, Helen.  The chap who  does marry you will be awfully lucky." 

She smiled slightly.  "Perhaps there won't be any such chap," she  said.  "I shall always be a schoolmarm, I

imagine." 

"Indeed you won't," indignantly.  "I have too high an opinion of  men for that." 

She smiled again, seemed about to speak, and then to change her  mind.  An instant later she said, 

"I must go in now.  But I shall hope to see you again before I go  back to the city.  And, after your secret is out

and the engagement  is announced, I want to write Madeline, may I?" 

"Of course you may.  And she'll like you as much as I do." 

"Will she? . . .  Well, perhaps; we'll hope so." 

"Certainly she will.  And you won't let my treating you asas I  have make any difference in our friendship?" 

"No.  We shall always be friends, I hope.  Goodby." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 116



Top




Page No 119


She went into the house.  He waited a moment, hoping she might turn  again before entering, but she did not.

He walked home, pondering  deeply, his thoughts a curious jumble of relief and dissatisfaction.  He was glad

Helen had seen her duty and given him over to Madeline,  but he felt a trifle piqued to think she had done it

with such  apparent willingness.  If she had wept or scolded it would have been  unpleasant but much more

gratifying to his selfimportance. 

He could not help realizing, however, that her attitude toward him  was exceptionally fine.  He knew well that

he, if in her place,  would  not have behaved as she had done.  No spite, no sarcasm, no  taunts, no  unpleasant

reminders of things said only a few months  before.  And  with all her forgiveness and forbearance and

understanding there had  been always that sense of greater age and  wisdom; she had treated him  as she might

have treated a boy,  younger brother, perhaps. 

"She IS older than I am," he thought, "even if she really isn't.  It's funny, but it's a fact." 

December came and Christmas, and then January and the new year, the  year 1917.  In January, Z. Snow and

Co. took its yearly account of  stock, and Captain Lote and Laban and Albert and Issachar were  truly  busy

during the days of stocktaking week and tired when  evening came.  Laban worked the hardest of the

quartette, but Issy  made the most  fuss about it.  Labe, who had chosen the holiday  season to go on one  of his

periodical vacations, as rather white  and shaky and even more  silent than usual.  Mr. Price, however,  talked

with his customary  fluency and continuity, so there was no  lack of conversation.  Captain  Zelotes was moved

to comment. 

"Issy," he suggested gravely, looking up from a long column of  figures, "did you ever play 'Door'?" 

Issachar stared at him. 

"Play 'Door'?" he repeated.  "What's that?" 

"It's a game.  Didn't you ever play it?" 

"No, don't know's I ever did." 

"Then you'd better begin right this minute.  The first thing to do  is to shut up and the next is to stay that way.

You play 'Door'  until I tell you to do somethin' else; d'you hear?" 

At home the week between Christmas and the New Year was rather  dismal.  Mr. Keeler's holiday vacation

had brought on one of his  fiancee's "sympathetic attacks," and she tied up her head and hung  crape upon her

soul, as usual.  During these attacks the Snow  household walked on tiptoe, as if the housekeeper were an

invalid  in  reality.  Even consoling speeches from Albert, who with Laban  when the  latter was sober, enjoyed

in her mind the distinction of  being the  reincarnation of "Robert Penfold," brought no relief to  the suffering

Rachel.  Nothing but the news brought by the milkman,  that "Labe was  taperin' off," and would probably

return to his desk  in a few days,  eased her pain. 

One forenoon about the middle of the month Captain Zelotes himself  stopped in at the post office for the

morning mail.  When he  returned  to the lumber company's building he entered quietly and  walked to his  own

desk with a preoccupied air.  For the half hour  before dinner time  he sat there, smoking his pipe, and speaking

to  no one unless spoken  to.  The office force noticed his preoccupation  and commented upon it. 

"What ails the old man, Al?" whispered Issachar, peering in around  the corner of the door at the silent figure

tilted back in the  revolving chair, its feet upon the corner of the desk.  "Ain't said  so much as 'Boo' for up'ards

of twenty minutes, has he?  I was in  there just now fillin' up his inkstand and, by crimus, I let a  great  big gob


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 117



Top




Page No 120


of ink come down kersouse right in the middle of the  nice,  clean blottin' paper in front of him.  I held my

breath,  cal'latin' to  catch what Stephen Peter used to say he caught when  he went fishin'  Sundays.  Stevey said

he generally caught cold when  he went and always  caught the Old Harry when he got back.  I  cal'lated to

catch the Old  Harry part sure, 'cause Captain Lote is  always neat and fussy 'bout  his desk.  But no, the old man

never  said a word.  I don't believe he  knew the ink was spilled at all.  What's on his mind, Al; do you know?" 

Albert did not know, so he asked Laban.  Laban shook his head. 

"Give it up, Al," he whispered.  "Somethin's happened to bother  him, that's sartin'.  When Cap'n Lote gets his

feet propped up and  his head tilted back that way I can 'most generally cal'late he's  doin' some real thinkin'.

Real thinkin'yes, sireeumhmyes  yes.  When he h'ists his boots up to the masthead that way it's

safe  to figger his brains have got steam up.  Umhmyes indeed." 

"But what is he thinking about?  And why is he so quiet?" 

"I give up both riddles, Al.  He's the only one's got the answers  and when he gets ready enough maybe he'll

tell 'em.  Until then  it'll  pay us fo'mast hands to make believe we're busy, even if we  ain't.  Hear that, do you,

Is?" 

"Hear what?" demanded Issachar, who was gazing out of the window,  his hands in his pockets. 

"I say it will pay usyou and Al and meto make believe we're  workin' even if we ain't." 

"'Workin'!" indignantly.  "By crimus, I AM workin'!  I don't have  to  make believe." 

"That so?  Well, then, I'd pick up that coalhod and make believe  play for a spell.  The fire's 'most out.

Almostumhmpretty  nighyesyes." 

Albert and his grandfather walked home to dinner together, as was  their custom, but still the captain remained

silent.  During dinner  he spoke not more than a dozen words and Albert several times  caught  Mrs. Snow

regarding her husband intently and with a rather  anxious  look.  She did not question him, however, but Rachel

was  not so  reticent. 

"Mercy on us, Cap'n Lote," she demanded, "what IS the matter?  You're as dumb as a mouthful of mush.  I

don't believe you've said  ay, yes or no since we sat down to table.  Are you sick?" 

Her employer's calm was unruffled. 

"Noo," he answered, with deliberation. 

"That's a comfort.  What's the matter, then; don't you WANT to  talk?" 

"Noo." 

"Oh," with a toss of the head, "well, I'm glad I know.  I was  beginnin' to be afraid you'd forgotten how." 

The captain helped himself to another fried "tinker" mackerel. 

"No danger of that around here, Rachel," he said serenely.  "So  long as my hearin's good I couldn't

forgetnot in this house." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 118



Top




Page No 121


Olive detained her grandson as he was following Captain Zelotes  from the dining room. 

"What's wrong with him, Albert?" she whispered.  "Do you know?" 

"No, I don't, Grandmother.  Do you think there is anything wrong?" 

"I know there's somethin' troublin' him.  I've lived with him too  many years not to know the signs.  Oh,

Albertyou haven't done  anything to displease him, have you?" 

"No, indeed, Grandmother.  Whatever it is, it isn't that." 

When they reached the office, the captain spoke to Mr. Keeler. 

"Had your dinner, Labe?" he asked. 

"Yesyes, indeed.  Don't take me long to eatnot at my boardin'  house.  A feller'd have to have paralysis to

make eatin' one of  Lindy  Dadgett's meals take more'n a half hour.  Umhmyes." 

Despite his preoccupation, Captain Zelotes could not help smiling. 

"To make it take an hour he'd have to be ossified, wouldn't he,  like the feller in the circus sideshow?" he

observed. 

Laban nodded.  "Thator dead," he replied.  "Yesjust aboutjust  so, Cap'n." 

"Where's Issachar?" 

"He's eatin' yet, I cal'late.  He don't board at Lindy's." 

"When he gets back set him to pilin' that new carload of spruce  under Number Three shed.  Keep him at it." 

"Yes, sir.  Umhm.  All right." 

Captain Zelotes turned to his grandson.  "Come in here, Al," he  said.  "I want to see you for a few minutes." 

Albert followed him into the inner office.  He wondered what in the  world his grandfather wished to see him

about, in this very private  fashion. 

"Sit down, Al," said the captain, taking his own chair and pointing  to another.  "Oh, wait a minute, though!

Maybe you'd better shut  that hatch first." 

The "hatch" was the transom over the door between the offices.  Albert, remembering how a previous

interview between them had been  overheard because of that open transom, glanced at his grandfather.  The

twinkle in the latter's eye showed that he too, remembered.  Albert closed the "hatch."  When he came back to

his seat the  twinkle  had disappeared; Captain Zelotes looked serious enough. 

"Well, Grandfather?" queried the young man, after waiting a moment.  The captain adjusted his spectacles,

reached into the inside pocket  of his coat and produced an envelope.  It was a square envelope  with  either a

trademark or a crest upon the back.  Captain Lote  did not  open the envelope, but instead tapped his desk with

it and  regarded  his grandson in a meditative way. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 119



Top




Page No 122


"Al," he said slowly, "has it seemed to you that your cruise aboard  this craft of ours here had been a little

smoother the last year or  two than it used to be afore that?" 

Albert, by this time well accustomed to his grandfather's nautical  phraseology, understood that the "cruise"

referred to was his  voyage  as assistant bookkeeper with Z. Snow and Co.  He nodded. 

"I have tried to make it so," he answered.  "I mean I have tried to  make it smoother for you." 

"Umhm, I think you have tried.  I don't mind tellin' you that it  has pleased me consid'ble to watch you try.  I

don't mean by that,"  he added, with a slight curve of the lip, "that you'd win first  prize  as a

lightnin'calculator even yet, but you're a whole lot  better one  than you used to be.  I've been considerable

encouraged  about you; I  don't mind tellin' you that either. . . .  And," he  added, after  another interval during

which he was, apparently,  debating just how  much of an admission it was safe to make, "so far  as I can see,

this  poetry foolishness of yours hasn't interfered  with your work any to  speak of." 

Albert smiled.  "Thanks, Grandfather," he said. 

"You're welcome.  So much for that.  But there's another side to  our relations together, yours and mine, that I

haven't spoken of to  you afore.  And I have kept still on purpose.  I've figgered that  so  long as you kept straight

and didn't go off the course, didn't  drink  or gamble, or go wild or the like of that, what you did was  pretty

much your own business.  I've noticed you're considerable of  a feller  with the girls, but I kept an eye on the

kind of girls and  I will say  that so far as I can see, you've picked the decent kind.  I say so far  as I can see.  Of

course I ain't fool enough to  believe I see all you  do, or know all you do.  I've been young  myself, and when I

get to  thinkin' how much I know about you I try  to set down and remember how  much my dad didn't know

about me when  I was your age.  Thaterhelps  some toward givin' me my correct  position on the chart." 

He paused.  Albert's brain was vainly striving to guess what all  this meant.  What was he driving at?  The

captain crossed his legs  and continued. 

"I did think for a spell," he said, "that you and Helen Kendall  were  gettin' to understand each other pretty

well.  Well, Helen's a  good  girl and your grandma and I like her.  Course we didn't cal'late  anything very

serious was liable to come of the understandin', not  for some time, anyhow, for with your salary andwell,

sort of  unsettled prospects, I gave you credit for not figgerin' on pickin'  a  wife right away. . . .  Haven't got

much laid by to support a wife  on,  have you, Al?" 

Albert's expression had changed during the latter portion of the  speech.  Now he was gazing intently at his

grandfather and at the  letter in the latter's hands.  He was beginning to guess, to dread,  to be fearful. 

"Haven't got much to support a wife on, Al, have you?" repeated  Captain Zelotes. 

"No, sir, not now." 

"Um. . . .  But you hope to have by and by, eh?  Well, I hope you  will.  But UNTIL you have it would seem to

older folks like me kind  of risky navigatin' toto . . .  Oh, there was a letter in the  mail  for you this mornin,

Al." 

He put down the envelope he had hitherto held in his hand and,  reaching into his pocket, produced another.

Even before he had  taken  it from his grandfather's hand Albert recognized the  handwriting.  It  was from

Madeline. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 120



Top




Page No 123


Captain Zelotes, regarding him keenly, leaned back again in his  chair.  "Read it if you want to, Al," he said.

"Maybe you'd  better.  I can wait." 

Albert hesitated a moment and then tore open the envelope.  The  note within was short, evidently written in

great haste and  agitation  and was spotted with tear stains.  He read it, his cheeks  paling and  his hand shaking

as he did so.  Something dreadful had  happened.  MotherMrs. Fosdick, of coursehad discovered

everything.  She had  found all hisAlbert'sletters and read  them.  She was furious.  There had been the

most terrible scene.  Madeline was in her own room  and was smuggling him this letter by  Mary, her maid, 

who will do anything for me, and has promised to mail it.  Oh,  dearest, they say I must give you up.  They

say  Oh, they say  dreadful things about you!  Mother declares she will take me to  Japan  or some frightful

place and keep me there until I forget you.  I don't  care if they take me to the ends of the earth, I shall  NEVER

forget  you.  I will neverneverNEVER give you up.  And you  mustn't give me  up, will you, darling?  They

say I must never write  you again.  But  you see I haveand I shall.  Oh, what SHALL we do?  I was SO happy

and  now I am so miserable.  Write me the minute you  get this, but oh, I  KNOW they won't let me see your

letters and  then I shall die.  But  write, write just the same, every day.  Oh  what SHALL we do? 

Yours, always and always, no matter what everyone does or says,  lovingly and devotedly, 

MADELINE. 

When the reading was finished Albert sat silently staring at the  floor, seeing it through a wet mist.  Captain

Zelotes watched him,  his heavy brows drawn together and the smoke wreaths from his pipe  curling slowly

upward toward the office ceiling.  At length he  said: 

"Well, Al, I had a letter, too.  I presume likely it came from the  same port even if not from the same member

of the family.  It's  about  you, and I think you'd better read it, maybe.  I'll read it  to you, if  you'd rather." 

Albert shook his head and held out his hand for the second letter.  His grandfather gave it to him, saying as he

did so:  "I'd like to  have you understand, Al, that I don't necessarily believe all that  she says about you in this

thing." 

"Thanks, Grandfather," mechanically. 

"All right, boy." 

The second letter was, as he had surmised, from Mrs. Fosdick.  It  had evidently been written at top speed and

at a mental temperature  well above the boiling point.  Mrs. Fosdick addressed Captain  Zelotes  Snow because

she had been given to understand that he was  the nearest  relative, or guardian, or whatever it was, of the

person concerning  whom the letter was written and therefore, it was  presumed, might be  expected to have

some measure of control over  that person's actions.  The person was, of course, one Albert  Speranza, and Mrs.

Fosdick  proceeded to set forth her version of  his conduct in sentences which  might almost have blistered the

paper.  Taking advantage of her trust  in her daughter's good sense  and ability to take care of  herselfwhich

trust it appeared had  been in a measure misplacedhe,  the Speranza person, had  sneakingly, underhandedly

and in a despicably  clandestine fashion  the lady's temper had rather gotten away from  her

heresucceeded  in meeting her daughter in various places and by  various  disgraceful means and had

furthermore succeeded in ensnaring  her  youthful affections, et cetera, et cetera. 

"The poor child actually believes herself in love with him," wrote  the poor child's mother.  "She protests

ridiculously that she is  engaged to him and will marry him in spite of her father or myself  or  the protests of

sensible people.  I write to you, therefore,  assuming  you likewise to be a sensible person, and requesting that


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 121



Top




Page No 124


you use your  influence with theto put the most charitable  interpretation of his  conductmisguided and

foolish young man and  show him the preposterous  folly of his pretended engagement to my  daughter.  Of

course the whole  affair, CORRESPONDENCE INCLUDED,  must cease and terminate AT ONCE." 

And so on for two more pages.  The color had returned to Albert's  cheeks long before he finished reading.

When he had finished he  rose  to his feet and, throwing the letter upon his grandfather's  desk,  turned away. 

"Well, Al?" queried Captain Zelotes. 

Albert's face, when he turned back to answer, was whiter than ever,  but his eyes flashed fire. 

"Do you believe that?" he demanded. 

"What?" 

"Thatthat stuff about my being aa sneak andand ensnaring  her  and all the rest?  Do you?" 

The captain took his pipe from his mouth. 

"Steady, son, steady," he said.  "Didn't I tell you before you  begun to read at all that I didn't necessarily

believe it because  that woman wrote it." 

"Youyou or no one else had better believe it.  It's a lie." 

"All right, I'm glad to hear you say so.  But there's a little mite  of truth here and there amongst the lies, I

presume likely.  For  instance, you and this Fosdick girl have beenerkeepin' company?" 

"Her name is Madelineand we are engaged to be married." 

"Oh!  HumI seeI see.  And, bein' as the old ladyher mother,  Mrs. Fosdick, I meanhasn't suspected

anything, or, at any rate,  hasn't found out anything until now, yesterday, or whenever it was,  I  judge you have

been meetin'erMadeline at places where there  wasn'twell, too large a crowd.  Eh?" 

Albert hesitated and was, momentarily, a trifle embarrassed.  But  he recovered at once. 

"I met her first at the drug store last summer," he said defiantly.  "Then I met her after that at the post office

and at the hotel  dance  last fall, and so on.  This year I met herwell, I met her  first down  by the beach, where

I went to write.  She liked poetry  andand she  helped me with mine.  After that she camewell, she  came to

help me  again.  And after thatafter that" 

"After that it just moved along kind of natural, eh?  Umhm, I  see." 

"Look here, Grandfather, I want you to understand that she isis  by George, she is the cleanest, finest,

best girl in the world.  Don't  you get the idea thatthat she isn't.  She came to meet me  just  because she was

interested in my verse and wanted to help.  It  wasn't  until the very last that wethat we found out we cared

for  each  other." 

"All right, boy, all right.  Go on, tell me the whole yarn, if you  feel like it.  I don't want to pry too much into

your affairs, but,  after all, I AM interested in those affairs, Al.  Tell me as much  as  you can." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 122



Top




Page No 125


"I'll tell you the whole.  There's nothing I can't tell, nothing  I'm not proud to tell.  By George, I ought to be

proud!  Why,  Grandfather, she's wonderful!" 

"Sartin, son, sartin.  They always are.  I mean she is, of course.  Heave ahead." 

So Albert told his love story.  When he had finished Captain  Zelote's pipe was empty, and he put it down. 

"Albert," he said slowly, "I judge you mean this thing seriously.  You mean to marry her some day." 

"Yes, indeed I do.  And I won't give her up, either.  Her mother  why, what right has her mother got to

sayto treat her in this  way?  Or to call me what she calls me in that letter?  Why, by  George" 

"Easy, son.  As I understand it, this Madeline of yours is the only  child the Fosdicks have got and when our

only child is in danger of  bein' carried off by somebody elsewhy, well, their mothers and  fathers are liable

to be just a little upset, especially if it  comes  on 'em sudden. . . .  Nobody knows that better than I do," he

added  slowly. 

Albert recognized the allusion, but he was not in the mood to be  affected by it.  He was not, just then, ready to

make allowances  for  any one, particularly the parental Fosdicks. 

"They have no business to be upsetnot like that, anyhow," he  declared.  "What does that woman know

about me?  What right has she  to say that I ensnared Madeline's affection and all that rot?  Madeline and I fell

in love with each other, just as other people  have, I suppose." 

"You suppose right," observed Captain Zelotes, dryly.  "Other  people havea good many of 'em since

Adam's time." 

"Well, then!  And what right has she to give orders that I stop  writing or seeing Madeline,all that idiotic

stuff about ceasing  and  terminating at once?  Sheshe"  His agitation was making him  incoherent"She

talks like Lord Somebodyorother in an old  fashioned novel or play or something.  Those old fools were

always  rejecting undesirable suitors and ordering their daughters to do  this  and that, breaking their hearts, and

so on.  But that sort of  thing  doesn't go nowadays.  Young people have their own ideas." 

"Umhm, Al; so I've noticed." 

"Yes, indeed they have.  Now, if Madeline wants to marry me and I  want to marry her, who will stop us?" 

The captain pulled at his beard. 

"Why, nobody, Al, as I know of," he said; "provided you both keep  on wantin' to marry each other long

enough." 

"Keep on wanting long enough?  What do you mean by that?" 

"Why, nothin' much, perhaps; only gettin' married isn't all just  goin' to the parson.  After the ceremony the

rent begins and the  grocers' bills and the butchers' and the bakers' and a thousand or  so  more.  Somebody's got

to pay 'em, and the money's got to come  from  somewhere.  Your wages here, Al, poetry counted in, ain't so

very big  yet.  Better wait a spell before you settle down to  married life,  hadn't you?" 

"Wellwell, II didn't say we were to be married right away,  Grandfather.  She and I aren't unreasonable.

I'm doing better and  better with my writings.  Some day I'll make enough, and more.  Why  not?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 123



Top




Page No 126


There was enough of the Speranza egotism in this confident  assurance to bring the twinkle to the captain's

eye.  He twisted  his  beard between his finger and thumb and regarded his grandson  mildly. 

"Have you any idea how much 'enough' is liable to be, Al?" he  inquired.  "I don't know the facts about 'em, of

course, but from  what I have heard I judge the Fosdicks have got plenty of cash.  I've  heard it estimated

around town from one million to fifty  millions.  Allowin' it's only one million, it seems likely that

yourerwhat'shernameMadeline has been used to havin' as much  as fifty cents to spend whenever

she wanted it.  Do you cal'late to  be able to earn enough makin' up poetry to keep her the way her  folks  have

been doin'?" 

"No, of course notnot at first." 

"Oh, but later onwhen the market price of poetry has gone upyou  can, eh?" 

"Look here, Grandfather, if you're making fun of me I tell you I  won't stand it.  This is serious; I mean it.

Madeline and I are  going to be married some time and no one can stop us." 

"All right, son, all right.  But it did seem to me that in the  light of this letter fromeryour motherinlaw

that's goin' to  be,  we ought to face the situation moderately square, anyhow.  First comes  marriage.  Well,

that's easy; any fool can get married,  lots of 'em  do.  But then, as I said, comes supportin' yourself and

wifebills,  bills, and more bills.  You'll say that you and she  will economize and  fight it out together.  Fine,

firstrate, but  later on there may be  more of you, a child, children perhaps" 

"Grandfather!" 

"It's possible, son.  Such things do happen, and they cost money.  More mouths to feed.  Now I take it for

granted that you aren't  marryin' the Fosdick girl for her money" 

The interruption was prompt and made with fiery indignation. 

"I never thought of her money," declared Albert.  "I don't even  know that she has any.  If she has, I don't want

it.  I wouldn't  take  it.  She is all I want." 

Captain Zelotes' lip twitched. 

"Judgin' from the tone of her ma's last letter to me," he observed,  "she is all you would be liable to get.  It

don't read as if many  erweddin' presents from the bride's folks would come along with  her.  But, there,

there, Al don't get mad.  I know this is a long  ways from bein' a joke to you and, in a way, it's no joke for me.

Course I had realized that some day you'd be figgerin', maybe, on  gettin' married, but I did hope the figgerin'

wouldn't begin for  some  years yet.  And when you did, I rather hopedwell, II  hoped. . . .  However, we

won't stop to bother with that now.  Let's stick to this  letter of Mrs. Fosdick's here.  I must answer  that, I

suppose, whether  I want to or not, today.  Well, Al, you  tell me, I understand that  there has been nothin'

underhand in your  acquaintance with her  daughter.  Other than keepin' the engagement  a secret, that is?" 

"Yes, I do." 

"And you mean to stick by your guns and. . . .  Well, what is it?  Come in!" 

There had been a knock upon the office door.  In answer to his  employer's summons, Mr. Keeler appeared.  He

held a card in his  hand. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER X 124



Top




Page No 127


"Sorry to disturb you, Cap'n Lote," he said.  "Yes, I be, yes, sir.  But I judged maybe 'twas somethin' important

about the lumber for  his  house and he seemed anxious to see you, so I took the risk and  knocked.

Umhmyes, yes, yes." 

Captain Zelotes looked at the card.  Then he adjusted his  spectacles  and looked again. 

"Humph!" he grunted.  "Humph! . . .  Weell, Labe, I guess likely  you might show him in here.  Wait just a

minute before you do it,  though.  I'll open the door when I want him to come." 

"All right, Cap'n Lote.  Yes, yes," observed Mr. Keeler and  departed.  The captain looked thoughtfully at the

card. 

"Al," he said, after a moment's reflection, "we'll have to cut this  talk of ours short for a little spell.  You go

back to your desk  and  wait there until I call you.  Hold on," as his grandson moved  toward  the door of the

outer office.  "Don't go that way.  Go out  through the  side door into the yard and come in the front way.

There'serthere's a man waitin' to see me, anderperhaps he'd  better not see you first." 

Albert stared at him uncomprehendingly. 

"Better not see ME?" he repeated.  "Why shouldn't he see me?" 

Captain Zelotes handed the card to Albert. 

"Better let me talk with him first, Al," he said.  "You can have  your chance later on." 

The card bore the name of Mr. Fletcher Story Fosdick. 

CHAPTER XI

Albert read the name on the card.  He was too astonished to speak.  Her father!  He was here!  He 

His grandfather spoke again, and his tone was brisk and  businesslike. 

"Go on, Al," he ordered.  "Out through this side door and around to  the front.  Lively, son, lively!" 

But the young man's wits were returning.  He scowled at the card. 

"No," he said stoutly, "I'm not going to run away.  I'm not afraid  of him.  I haven't done anything to be

ashamed of." 

The captain nodded.  "If you had, I should ASK you to run away," he  said.  "As it is, I just ask you to step out

and wait a little  while,  that's all." 

"But, Grandfather, I WANT to see him." 

"All right, I want you tobut not until he and I have talked  first.  Come, boy, come!  I've lived a little longer

than you have,  and maybe I know about half as much about some things.  This is one  of 'em.  You clear out

and stand by.  I'll call you when I want  you." 

Albert went, but reluctantly.  After he had gone his grandfather  walked to the door of the outer office and


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 125



Top




Page No 128


opened it. 

"Step aboard, Mr. Fosdick," he said.  "Come in, sir." 

Mr. Fletcher Fosdick was a large man, portly, and with a head which  was rapidly losing its thatch.  His

smootshaven face was ruddy and  his blue eye mild.  He entered the private office of Z. Snow and  Co.  and

shook the hand which Captain Zelotes proffered. 

"How do you do, Captain Snow?" he asked pleasantly.  "You and I  have had some business dealings, but we

have never met before, I  believe." 

The captain waved toward a chair.  "That's a fact, Mr. Fosdick," he  said.  "I don't believe we ever have, but it's

better late than by  and by, as the feller said.  Sit down, sit down, Mr. Fosdick.  Throw  off your coat, won't you?

It's sort of warm in here compared  to out  door." 

The visitor admitted the difference in temperature between the  interior and exterior of the building, and

removed his overcoat.  Also  he sat down.  Captain Zelotes opened a drawer of his desk and  produced  a box of

cigars. 

"Have a smoke, won't you?" he inquired. 

Mr. Fosdick glanced at the label on the box. 

"Whywhy, I was rather hoping you would smoke one of mine," he  said.  "I have a pocket full." 

"When I come callin' on you at your place in New York I will smoke  yours.  Now it kind of looks to me as if

you'd ought to smoke mine.  Seems reasonable when you think it over, don't it?" 

Fosdick smiled.  "Perhaps you're right," he said.  He took one of  the gaudily banded perfectos from his host's

box and accepted a  light  from the match the captain held.  Both men blew a cloud of  smoke and  through those

clouds each looked at the other.  The  preliminaries were  over, but neither seemed particularly anxious  to begin

the real  conversation.  It was the visitor who, at last,  began it. 

"Captain Snow," he said, "I presume your clerk told you I wished to  see you on a matter of business." 

"Who?  Oh, Labe, you mean?  Yes, he told me." 

"I told him to tell you that.  It may surprise you, however, to  learn that the business I wished to see you

aboutthat I came on  from New York to see you abouthas nothing whatever to do with the  house I'm

building down here." 

Captain Zelotes removed his cigar from his lips and looked  meditatively at its burning end.  "Noo," he said

slowly, "that  don't  surprise me very much.  I cal'lated 'twasn't about the house  you  wished to see me." 

"Oh, I see! . . .  Humph!"  The Fosdick mild blue eye lost, for the  moment, just a trifle of its mildness and

became almost keen, as  its  owner flashed a glance at the big figure seated at the desk.  "I see,"  said Mr.

Fosdick.  "And have youerguessed what I did  come to see  you about?" 

"Noo.  I wouldn't call it guessin', exactly." 

"Wouldn't you?  What would you call it?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 126



Top




Page No 129


"Well, I don't know but I'd risk callin' it knowin'.  Yes, I think  likely I would." 

"Oh, I see. . . .  Humph!  Have you had a letteron the subject?" 

"Yees." 

"I see.  From Mrs. Fosdick, of course.  She said she was going to  writeI'm not sure she didn't say she had

written; but I had the  impression it was towell, to another member of your family,  Captain  Snow." 

"No, 'twas to me.  Come this mornin's mail." 

"I see.  My mistake.  Well, I'm obliged to her in a way.  If the  news has been broken to you, I shan't have to

break it and we can  get  down to brass tacks just so much sooner.  The surprise being  overI  take it, it WAS a

surprise, Captain?" 

"You take it right.  Just as much of a surprise to me as you." 

"Of course.  Well, the surprise being over for both of us, we can  talk of the affaircalmly and coolly.  What

do you think about it,  Captain?" 

"Oh, I don't know as I know exactly what to think.  What do YOU  think about it, Mr. Fosdick?" 

"I thinkI imagine I think very much as you do." 

"I shouldn't he surprised.  Anderwhat's your notion of what I  think?" 

Captain Zelotes' gray eye twinkled as he asked the question, and  the Fosdick blue eye twinkled in return.

Both men laughed. 

"We aren't getting very far this way, Captain," observed the  visitor.  "There's no use dodging, I suppose.  I, for

one, am not  very well pleased.  Mrs. Fosdick, for another, isn't pleased at  all;  she is absolutely and entirely

opposed to the whole affair.  She won't  hear of it, that's all, and she said so much that I  thought perhaps I  had

better come down here at once, see you, and  and the young fellow  with the queer name" 

"My grandson." 

"Why yes.  He is your grandson, isn't he?  I beg your pardon." 

"That's all right.  I shan't fight with you because you don't like  his name.  Go ahead.  You decided to come and

see himand me?" 

"Yes, I did.  I decided to come because it has been my experience  that a frank, straight talk is better, in cases

like this, than a  hundred letters.  And that the time to talk was now, before matters  between the young

foothe young people went any further.  Don't  you  agree with me?" 

Captain Zelotes nodded. 

"That now is a good time to talk?  Yes, I do," he said. 

"Good!  Then suppose we talk." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 127



Top




Page No 130


"All right." 

There was another interval of silence.  Then Fosdick broke it with  a chuckle.  "And I'm the one to do the

talking, eh?" he said. 

Captain Lote's eye twinkled.  "Well, you came all the way from New  York on purpose, you know," he

observed.  Then he added:  "But  there,  Mr. Fosdick, I don't want you to think I ain't polite or  won't talk,

myself.  I'll do my share when the time comes.  But it  does seem to me  that you ought to do yours first as it's

your  family so far that's  done the objectin'. . . .  Your cigar's gone  out.  Have another light,  won't you?" 

The visitor shook his head.  "No, thank you, not now," he said  hastily, placing the defunct cigar carefully on

the captain's desk.  "I won't smoke for the minute.  So you want me to begin the  talking,  do you?  It seems to

me I have begun it.  I told you that  I do not  like the idea of my daughter's being engaged toto say  nothing of

marryingyour grandson.  My wife likes it even less  than I do.  That  is enough of a statement to begin with,

isn't it?" 

"Why, no, not exactly, if you'll excuse my sayin' so.  Your  daughter herselfhow does she feel about it?" 

"Oh, she is enthusiastic, naturally.  She appears to be suffering  from temporary insanity on the subject." 

"She don't seem to think it's quite aserpreposterous, and  ridiculous and outrageousand Lord knows

what allas your wife  does, eh?" 

"No.  I say, Snow, I hope you're not too deeply offended by what  my wife wrote you.  I judge you are quoting

from her letter and  apparently she piled it on redhot.  You'll have to excuse her; she  was almost wild all day

yesterday.  I'll ask your pardon on her  behalf." 

"Sho, sho!  No need, Mr. Fosdick, no need at all.  I know what  women are, even the easygoin' kind, when

they've got steam up.  I've  got a wifeand I had a daughter.  But, gettin' back on the  course  again, you think

your daughter's crazy because she wants to  marry my  grandson.  Is that it?" 

"Why, no, I wouldn't say that, exactly.  Of course, I wouldn't say  that." 

"But, you see, you did say it.  However, we'll leave that to one  side for a spell.  What objectionwhat real

objection is there to  those two marryin'my grandson and your daughterprovided that  they  care for each

other as they'd ought to?" 

Mr. Fosdick's expression changed slightly.  His tone, as he replied  to the question, was colder and his manner

less cordial. 

"I don't know that it is worth while answering that in detail," he  said, after an instant's pause.  "Frankly,

Captain Snow, I had  rather  hoped you would see, for yourself, the reasons why such a  marriage  wouldn't be

desirable.  If you don't see them, if you are  backing up  your grandson in his business, whywell, there is no

use in our  discussing the matter any further, is there?  We should  only lose our  tempers and not gain much.  So

we had better end it  now, I think." 

He rose to his feet.  Captain Zelotes, leaning forward, held up a  protesting hand. 

"Nownow, Mr. Fosdick," he said earnestly, "I don't want you to  misunderstand me.  And I'm sorry if what I

said has made you mad." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 128



Top




Page No 131


Fosdick smiled.  "Oh, I'm not mad," he answered cheerfully.  "I  make it a rule in all my business dealings not

to get mad, or, more  especially, not to let the other fellow know that I'm getting that  way.  My temper hasn't a

ruffle in it just now, and I am leaving  merely because I want it to remain smooth.  I judge that you and I  aren't

going to agree.  All right, then we'll differ, but we'll  differ without a fight, that's all.  Good afternoon, Captain." 

But Captain Lote's hand still remained uplifted. 

"Mr. Fosdick," he said.  "just a minute nowjust a minute.  You  never have met Albert, my grandson, have

you?  Never even seen him,  maybe?" 

"No, but I intend to meet him and talk with him before I leave  South Harniss.  He was one of the two people I

came here to meet." 

"And I was the other, eh?  Umhm. . . .  I see.  You think you've  found out where I stand and now you'll size

him up.  Honest, Mr.  Fosdick, I . . .  Humph!  Mind if I tell you a little story?  'Twon't  take long.  When I was a

little shaver, me and my granddad,  the first  Cap'n Lote Snowthere's been two sincewere great  chums.

When he  was home from sea he and I stuck together like hot  pitch and oakum.  One day we were sittin' out in

the front yard of  his houseit's  mine, nowwatchin' a hoptoad catch flies.  You've  seen a toad catch  flies,

haven't you, Mr. Fosdick?  Mr. Toad sits  there, lookin' half  asleep and as pious and demure as a pickpocket  at

campmeetin', until  a fly comes along and gets too near.  Then,  Zip! out shoots about six  inches of toad

tongue and that fly's been  asked in to dinner.  Well,  granddad and I sat lookin' at our  particular toad when

along came a  bumblebee and lighted on a  honeysuckle blossom right in front of the  critter.  The toad didn't

take time to think it over, all he saw was a  square meal, and his  tongue flashed out and nailed that

bumblebee and  snapped it into  the pantry.  In about a half second, though, there was  a change.  The pantry

had been emptied, the bumblebee was on his way  again,  and Mr. Toad was on his, hoppin' lively and huntin'

forwell,  for  ice water or somethin' coolin', I guess likely.  Granddad tapped  me  on the shoulder.  'Sonny,'

says he, 'there's a lesson for you.  That hoptoad didn't wait to make sure that bumblebee was good to  eat; he

took it for granted, and was sorry afterward.  It don't pay  to jump at conclusions, son,' he says.  'Some

conclusions are like  that bumblebee's, they have stings in 'em.'" 

Captain Lote, having finished his story, felt in his pocket for  a  match.  Fosdick, for an instant, appeared

puzzled.  Then he  laughed. 

"I see," he said.  "You think I made too quick a jump when I  concluded you were backing your grandson in

this affair.  All  right,  I'm glad to hear it.  What do you want me to do, sit down  again and  listen?" 

He resumed his seat as he asked the question.  Captain Zelotes  nodded. 

"If you don't mind," he answered.  "You see, you misunderstood me,  Mr. Fosdick.  I didn't mean any more

than what I said when I asked  you what real objection there was, in your opinion to Albert's  marryin'

yourerMadeline, that's her name, I believe.  Seems to  me  the way for us to get to an understandin'you

and Iis to find  out  just how the situation looks to each of us.  When we've found  out  that, we'll know how

nigh we come to agreein' or disagreein'  and can  act accordin'.  Sounds reasonable, don't it?" 

Fosdick nodded in his turn.  "Perfectly," he admitted.  "Well, ask  your questions, and I'll answer them.  After

that perhaps I'll ask  some myself.  Go ahead." 

"I have gone ahead.  I've asked one already." 

"Yes, but it is such a general question.  There may be so many  objections." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 129



Top




Page No 132


"I see.  All right, then I'll ask some:  What do the lawyers call  'em?Atlantic?  Pacific?  I've got itI'll ask

some specific  questions.  Here's one.  Do you object to Al personally?  To his  character?" 

"Not at all.  We know nothing about his character.  Very likely he  may be a young saint." 

"Well, he ain't, so we'll let that slide.  He's a good boy, though,  so far as I've ever been able to find out.  Is it

his looks?  You've  never seen him, but your wife has.  Don't she like his  looks?" 

"She hasn't mentioned his looks to me." 

"Is it his money?  He hasn't got any of his own." 

"Weell, of course that does count a little bit.  Madeline is our  only child, and naturally we should prefer to

have her pick out a  husband with a dollar or so in reserve." 

"Umhm.  Al's twentyone, Mr. Fosdick.  When I was twentyone I had  some put by, but not much.  I

presume likely 'twas different with  you, maybe.  Probably you were pretty well fixed." 

Fosdick laughed aloud.  "You make a good crossexaminer, Snow," he  observed.  "As a matter of fact, when I

was twentyone I was  assistant bookkeeper in a New Haven broker's office.  I didn't have  a  cent except my

salary, and I had that only for the first five  days in  the week." 

"However, you got married?" 

"Yes, I did.  More fool I!  If I had known anything, I should have  waited five years at least.  I didn't have any

one to tell me so.  My  father and mother were both dead." 

"Think you'd have listened to 'em if they had been alive and had  told you?  However, however, that's all to

one side.  Well,  Albert's  havin' no money to speak of is an objectionand a good  honest one  from your point

of view.  His prospects here in this  business of mine  are fair, and he is doin' better at it than he  was, so he may

make a  comf'table livin'a comf'table South Harniss  livin', that isby and  by." 

"Oh, he is with you, then?  Oh, yes, I remember my wife said he  worked in your office.  But she said more

about his being some sort  of aa poet, wasn't it?" 

For the first time since the interview began the captain looked ill  at ease and embarrassed. 

"Thunderation!" he exclaimed testily, "you mustn't pay attention to  that.  He does make up poetry'

pieceseron the side, as you  might  say, but I keep hopin' all the time he'll grow out of it,  give him  time.  It

'ain't his regular job, you mustn't think 'tis." 

The visitor laughed again.  "I'm glad of that," he said, "both for  your sake and mine.  I judge that you and I,

Snow, are in complete  agreement as far as our opinion of poetry and that sort of stuff is  concerned.  Of course

I'm not condemning all poetry, you understand.  Longfellow and Tennyson and the regular poets are all right.

You  understand what I'm getting at?" 

"Sartin.  I used to know 'Down went the R'yal George with all her  crew complete,' and a lot more.  Used to say

'em over to myself  when  I first went to sea and stood watch alone nights.  But they  were  different, you know;

theythey" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 130



Top




Page No 133


"Sure!  My wifewhy, I give you my word that my own wife and her  set go perfectly daffy over chaps who

write stuff that rhymes and  that the papers are printing columns about.  Snow, if this grandson  of yours was a

genuine presstouted, women's club poet instead of a  wouldbewell, I don't know what might happen.  In

that case she  might be as strong FOR this engagement as she is now against it." 

He paused, seeming a bit ashamed of his own heat.  Captain Zelotes,  however, regarded him with more

approval than he had yet shown. 

"It's been my observation that women are likely to get off the  course chasin' false signals like that," he

observed.  "When a man  begins lettin' his hair and his mouth run wild together seems as if  the combination

had an attraction for a good many women folks.  Al  keeps his hair cut, though, I'll say that for him," he added.

"It  curls some, but it ain't long.  I wouldn't have him in the office  if  'twas." 

"Well, Mr. Fosdick," he continued, "what other objections are they?  Manners?  Family and relations?

Education?  Any objections along  that line?" 

"Noo, no; Iwell, I don't know; you see, I don't know much about  the young fellow." 

"Perhaps I can help you out.  As to mannerswell, you can judge  them for yourself when you see him.  He

seems to be in about every  kind of social doin's there is down here, and he's as much or more  popular with the

summer folks than with the year'rounders.  Education?  Well, that's fair to middlin', as I see it.  He spent  nine

or ten years in a mighty expensive boardin' school up in New  York State." 

"Did he?  What school?" 

The captain gave the name of the school.  Fosdick looked surprised. 

"Humph!  That IS a good school," he said. 

"Is it?  Depends on what you call good, I cal'late.  Al learned a  good deal of this and that, a little bit of foreign

language, some  that they call dead and some that ought to be deadand buried,  'cordin' to my notion.  When

he came to me he couldn't add up a  column of ten figgers without makin' a mistake, and as for

businesswell, what he knew about business was about equal to what  Noah knew about a gas engine." 

He paused to chuckle, and Fosdick chuckled with him. 

"As to family," went on Captain Lote, "he's a Snow on his mother's  side, and there's been seven generations

of Snow's in this part of  the Cape since the first one landed here.  So far as I know,  they've  all managed to

keep out of jail, which may have been more  good luck  than deservin' in some cases." 

"His father?" queried Fosdick. 

The captain's heavy brows drew together.  "His father was a  Portygeeor Spaniard, I believe is rightand

he was a playactor,  one of thosewhat do you call 'em?opera singers." 

Fosdick seemed surprised and interested.  "Oh, indeed," he  exclaimed, "an opera singer? . . .  Why, he wasn't

Speranza, the  baritone, was he?" 

"Maybe; I believe he was.  He married my daughter andwell, we  won't talk about him, if you don't mind." 

"But Speranza was a" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 131



Top




Page No 134


"IF you don't mind, Mr. Fosdick." 

Captain Lote lapsed into silence, drumming the desk with his big  fingers.  His visitor waited for a few

moments.  At length he said: 

"Well, Captain Snow, I have answered your questions and you have  answered mine.  Do you think we are any

nearer an agreement now?" 

Captain Zelotes seemed to awake with a start.  "Eh?" he queried.  "Agreement?  Oh, I don't know.  Did you find

anyerwhat you  might  call vital objections in the boy's record?" 

"Noo.  No, all that is all right.  His family and his education  and all the rest are good enough, I'm sure.  But,

nevertheless" 

"You still object to the young folks gettin' married." 

"Yes, I do.  Hang it all, Snow, this isn't a thing one can reason  out, exactly.  Madeline is our only child; she is

our pet, our  baby.  Naturally her mother and I have planned for her, hoped for  her,  figured that some day,

when we had to give her up, it would  be  toto" 

"To somebody that wasn't Albert Speranza of South Harniss,  Mass. .  . .  Eh?" 

"Yes.  Not that your grandson isn't all right.  I have no doubt he  is a tiptop young fellow.  But, you see" 

Captain Lote suddenly leaned forward.  "Course I see, Mr. Fosdick,"  he interrupted.  "Course I see.  You

object, and the objection  ain't  a mite weaker on account of your not bein' able to say  exactly what  'tis." 

"That's the idea.  Thank you, Captain." 

"You're welcome.  I can understand.  I know just how you feel,  because I've been feelin' the same way

myself." 

"Oh, you have?  Good!  Then you can sympathize with Mrs. Fosdick  and with me.  You seeyou understand

why we had rather our  daughter  did not marry your grandson." 

"Sartin.  You see, I've had just the same sort of general kind of  objection to Al's marryin' your daughter." 

Mr. Fletcher Fosdick leaned slowly backward in his chair.  His  appearance was suggestive of one who has

received an unexpected  thump  between the eyes. 

"Oh, you have!" he said again, but not with the same expression. 

"Umhm," said Captain Zelotes gravely.  "I'm like you in one way;  I've never met your Madeline any more

than you have met Al.  I've  seen her once or twice, and she is real pretty and nicelookin'.  But  I don't know

her at all.  Now I don't doubt for a minute but  that  she's a real nice girl and it might be that she'd make Al a

fairly  good wife." 

"Erwell,thanks." 

"Oh, that's all right, I mean it.  It might be she would.  And I  ain't got a thing against you or your folks." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 132



Top




Page No 135


"Humph,erthanks again." 

"That's all right; you don't need to thank me.  But it's this way  with meI live in South Harniss all the year

round.  I want to  live  here till I die, andafter I die I'd like firstrate to have  Al take  up the Z. Snow and Co.

business and the Snow house and land  and keep  them goin' till HE dies.  Mind, I ain't at all sure that  he'll do it,

or be capable of doin' it, but that's what I'd like.  Now you're in New  York most of the year, and so's your wife

and  daughter.  New York is  all rightI ain't sayin' a word against it  but New York and South  Harniss are

different." 

The Fosdick lip twitched.  "Somewhat different," he admitted. 

"Umhm.  That sounds like a joke, I know; but I don't mean it so,  not now.  What I mean is that I know South

Harniss and South  Harniss  folks.  I don't know New Yorknot so very well, though  I've been  there plenty of

timesand I don't know New York ways.  But I do know  South Harniss ways, and they suit me.  Would they

suit your  daughternot just for summer, but as a reg'lar thing  right straight  along year in and out?  I doubt it,

Mr. Fosdick, I  doubt it  consid'able.  Course I don't know your daughter" 

"I doand I share your doubts." 

"Umhm.  But whether she liked it or not she'd have to come here if  she married my grandson.  Either that or

he'd have to go to New  York.  And if he went to New York, how would he earn his livin'?  Get a new

bookkeepin' job and start all over again, or live on  poetry?" 

Mr. Fosdick opened his mouth as if to speak, seemed to change his  mind and closed it again, without

speaking.  Captain Zelotes,  looking  keenly at him, seemed to guess his thoughts. 

"Of course," he said deliberately, but with a firmness which  permitted no misunderstanding of his meaning,

"of course you  mustn't  get it into your head for one minute that the boy is  figgerin' on your  daughter's bein' a

rich girl.  He hasn't given  that a thought.  You  take my word for that, Mr. Fosdick.  He  doesn't know how much

money  she or you have got and he doesn't  care.  He doesn't care a  continental darn." 

His visitor smiled slightly.  "Nevertheless," he began.  The  captain interrupted him. 

"No, there ain't any nevertheless," he said.  "Albert has been with  me enough years now so that I know a little

about him.  And I know  that all he wants is your daughter.  As to how much she's worth in  money or how

they're goin' to live after he's got herI know that  he  hasn't given it one thought.  I don't imagine she has,

either.  For one  reason," he added, with a smile, "he is too poor a business  man to  think of marriage as a

business, billpayin' contract, and  for  another,for anotherwhy, good Lord, Fosdick!" he exclaimed,

leaning  forward, "don't you know what this thing means to those two  young  folks?  It means just moonshine

and mush and lookin' into  each other's  eyes, that's about all.  THEY haven't thought any  practical thoughts

about it.  Why, think what their ages are!  Think of yourself at that  age!  Can't you remember. . . .  Humph!

Well, I'm talkin' fifty  revolutions to the second.  I beg your  pardon." 

"That's all right, Snow.  And I believe you have the situation  sized up as it is.  Still" 

"Excuse me, Mr. Fosdick, but don't you think it's about time you  had a look at the boy himself?  I'm goin' to

ask him to come in  here  and meet you." 

Fosdick looked troubled.  "Think it is good policy?" he asked  doubtfully.  "I want to see him and speak with

him, but I do hate a  scene." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 133



Top




Page No 136


"There won't be any scene.  You just meet him face to face and talk  enough with him to get a little idea of

what your first impression  is.  Don't contradict or commit yourself or anything.  And I'll  send  him out at the

end of two or three minutes." 

Without waiting for a reply, he rose, opened the door to the outer  office and called, "Al, come in here!"  When

Albert had obeyed the  order he closed the door behind him and turning to the gentleman in  the visitor's chair,

said:  "Mr. Fosdick, this is my grandson,  Albert  Speranza.  Al, shake hands with Mr. Fosdick from New

York." 

While awaiting the summons to meet the father of his adored, Albert  had been rehearsing and rerehearsing

the speeches he intended  making  when that meeting took place.  Sitting at his desk, pen in  hand and

pretending to be busy with the bookkeeping of Z. Snow and  Company, he  had seen, not the ruled page of the

day book, but the  parental  countenance of the Honorable Fletcher Fosdick.  And, to  his mind's  eye, that

countenance was as rugged and stern as the  rockbound coast  upon which the Pilgrims landed, and about as

unyielding and  impregnable as the door of the office safe.  So,  when his grandfather  called him, he descended

from the tall desk  stool and crossed the  threshold of the inner room, a trifle pale, a  little shaky at the  knees,

but with the set chin and erect head of  one who, facing almost  hopeless odds, intends fighting to the last  gasp. 

To his astonishment the Fosdick countenance was not as his  imagination had pictured it.  The blue eyes met

his, not with a  glare  or a glower, but with a look of interest and inquiry.  The  Fosdick  hand shook his with

politeness, and the Fosdick manner was,  if not  genial, at least quiet and matter of fact.  He was taken  aback.

What  did it mean?  Was it possible that Madeline's father  was inclined to  regard her engagement to him with

favor?  A great  throb of joy  accompanied the thought.  Then he remembered the  letter he had just  read, the

letter from Madeline's mother, and the  hope subsided. 

"Albert," said Captain Zelotes, "Mr. Fosdick has come on here to  talk with us; that is, with me and you, about

your affairs.  He and  I  have talked up to the point where it seemed to me you ought to  come in  for a spell.  I've

told him that the news that you and his  daughter  wereerfavorably disposed toward each other was as

sudden and as  big a surprise to me as 'twas to him.  Even your  grandma don't know it  yet.  Now I presume

likely he'd like to ask  you a few questions.  Heave ahead, Mr. Fosdick." 

He relit his cigar stump and leaned back in his chair.  Mr. Fosdick  leaned forward in his.  Albert stood very

straight, his shoulders  braced for the encounter.  The quizzical twinkle shone in Captain  Lote's eye as he

regarded his grandson.  Fosdick also smiled  momentarily as he caught the expression of the youth's face. 

"Well, Speranza," he began, in so cheerful a tone that Albert's  astonishment grew even greater, "your

grandfather has been kind  enough to get us through the preliminaries, so we'll come at once  to  the essentials.

You and my daughter consider yourselves engaged  to  marry?" 

"Yes, sir.  We ARE engaged." 

"I see.  How long have youumbeen that way, so to speak?" 

"Since last August." 

"Why haven't you said anything about it to usto Mrs. Fosdick or  me or your people here?  You must excuse

these personal questions.  As  I have just said to Captain Snow, Madeline is our only child,  and her  happiness

and welfare mean about all there is in life to  her mother  and me.  So, naturally, the man she is going to marry

is  an important  consideration.  You and I have never met before, so  the quickest way  of reaching an

understanding between us is by the  question route.  You  get my meaning?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 134



Top




Page No 137


"Yes, sir, I guess I do." 

"Good!  Then we'll go ahead.  Why have you two kept it a secret so  long?" 

"Becausewell, because we knew we couldn't marry yet a while, so  we thought we had better not announce

it for the present." 

"Oh! . . .  And the idea that perhaps Mrs. Fosdick and I might be  slightly interested didn't occur to you?" 

"Why, yes, sir, it did.  But,but we thought it best not to tell  you until later." 

"Perhaps the suspicion that we might not be overjoyed by the news  had a little weight with you, eh?  Possibly

that helped to delay  theerannouncement?" 

"No, sir, II don't think it did." 

"Oh, don't you!  Perhaps you thought we WOULD be overjoyed?" 

"No, sir.  We didn't think so very much about it.  Well, that's not  quite true.  Madeline felt that her

motherand you, too, sir, I  suppose, although she didn't speak as often of you in that wayshe  felt that her

mother would disapprove at first, and so we had  better  wait." 

"Until when?" 

"Untiluntil by and by.  Until I had gone ahead further, you  know." 

"I'm not sure that I do know.  Gone ahead how?  Until you had a  better position, more salary?" 

"No, not exactly.  Until my writings were better known.  Until I  was a little more successful." 

"Successful?  Until you wrote more poetry, do you mean?" 

"Yes, sir.  Poetry and other things, stories and plays, perhaps." 

"Do you mean  Did you figure that you and Madeline were to live  on what you made by writing poetry and

the other stuff?" 

"Yes, sir, of course." 

Fosdick looked across at Captain Zelotes.  The Captain's face was  worth looking at. 

"Here, here, hold on!" he exclaimed, jumping into the conversation.  "Al, what are you talkin' about?  You're

bookkeeper for me, ain't  you; for this concern right here where you are?  What do you mean  by  talkin' as if

your job was makin' up poetry pieces?  That's only  what  you do on the side, and you know it.  Eh, ain't that

so?" 

Albert hesitated.  He had, momentarily, forgotten his grandfather  and the latter's prejudices.  After all, what

was the use of  stirring  up additional trouble. 

"Yes, Grandfather," he said. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 135



Top




Page No 138


"Course it's so.  It's in this office that you draw your wages." 

"Yes, Grandfather." 

"All right.  Excuse me for nosin' in, Mr. Fosdick, but I knew the  boy wasn't puttin' the thing as plain as it

ought to be, and I  didn't  want you to get the wrong notion.  Heave ahead." 

Fosdick smiled slightly.  "All right, Captain," he said.  "I get  it, I think.  Well, then," turning again to Albert,

"your plan for  supporting my daughter was to wait until your position here, plus  the  poetry, should bring in

sufficient revenue.  It didn't occur to  you  thatwell, that there might be a possibility of getting money

elsewhere?" 

Albert plainly did not understand, but it was just as plain that  his grandfather did.  Captain Zelotes spoke

sharply. 

"Mr. Fosdick," he said, "I just answered that question for you." 

"Yes, I know.  But if you were in my place you might like to have  him answer it.  I don't mean to be offensive,

but business is  business, and, after all, this is a business talk.  So" 

The Captain interrupted.  "So we'll talk it in a business way, eh?"  he snapped.  "All right.  Al, what Mr. Fosdick

means is had you  cal'lated that, if you married his daughter, maybe her dad's money  might help you and her

to keep goin'?  To put it even plainer: had  you planned some on her bein' a rich girl?" 

Fosdick looked annoyed.  "Oh, I say, Snow!" he cried.  "That's too  strong, altogether." 

"Not a mite.  It's what you've had in the back of your head all  along.  I'm just helpin' it to come out of the front.

Well, Al?" 

The red spots were burning in the Speranza cheeks.  He choked as he  answered. 

"No," he cried fiercely.  "Of course I haven't planned on any such  thing.  I don't know how rich she is.  I don't

care.  I wish she  was  as poor asas I am.  I want HER, that's all.  And she wants  me.  We  don't either of us care

about money.  I wouldn't take a  cent of your  money, Mr. Fosdick.  But II want Madeline andand  I

shall have  her." 

"In spite of her parents, eh?" 

"Yes. . . .  I'm sorry to speak so, Mr. Fosdick, but it is true.  Wewe love each other.  Wewe've agreed to

wait for each other,  no  matterno matter if it is years and years.  And as for the  money and  all that, if you

disinherit her, oror whatever it is  they dowe  don't care.  II hope you will.  Ishe" 

Captain Zelotes' voice broke in upon the impassioned outburst. 

"Steady, Al; steady, son," he cautioned quietly.  "I cal'late  you've said enough.  I don't think any more's

necessary.  You'd  better go back to your desk now." 

"But, Grandfather, I want him to understand" 

"I guess likely he does.  I should say you'd made it real plain.  Go now, Al." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 136



Top




Page No 139


Albert turned, but, with a shaking hand upon the doorknob, turned  back again. 

"I'mII'm sorry, Mr. Fosdick," he faltered.  "II didn't mean  to say anything to hurt your feelings.

Butbut, you see,  Madelineshe and Iwe" 

He could not go on.  Fosdick's nod and answer were not unkindly.  "All right, Speranza," he said, "I'm not

offended.  Hope I wasn't  too  blunt, myself.  Goodday." 

When the door had closed behind the young man he turned to Captain  Lote. 

"Sorry if I offended you, Snow," he observed.  "I threw in that  hint about marrying just to see what effect it

would have, that's  all." 

"Umhm.  So I judged.  Well, you saw, didn't you?" 

"I did.  Say, Captain, except as a prospective soninlaw, and then  only because I don't see him in that

lightI rather like that  grandson of yours.  He's a fine, upstanding young chap." 

The captain made no reply.  He merely pulled at his beard.  However, he did not look displeased. 

"He's a handsome specimen, isn't he?" went on Fosdick.  "No wonder  Madeline fell for his looks.  Those and

the poetry together are a  combination hard to resistat her age.  And he's a gentleman.  He  handled himself

mighty well while I was stringing him just now." 

The beard tugging continued.  "Umhm," observed Captain Zelotes  dryly; "he does pretty well for aSouth

Harniss gentleman.  But  we're kind of wastin' time, ain't we, Mr. Fosdick?  In spite of his  looks and his

manners and all the rest, now that you've seen him  you  still object to that engagement, I take it." 

"Why, yes, I do.  The boy is all right, I'm sure, but" 

"Sartin, I understand.  I feel the same way about your girl.  She's  all right, I'm sure, but" 

"We're agreed on everything, includin' the 'but.'  And the 'but' is  that New York is one place and South Harniss

is another." 

"Exactly." 

"So we don't want 'em to marry.  Fine.  First rate!  Only now we  come to the most important 'but' of all.  What

are we going to do  about it?  Suppose we say no and they say yes and keep on sayin'  it?  Suppose they decide

to get married no matter what we say.  How  are we  goin' to stop it?" 

His visitor regarded him for a moment and then broke into a hearty  laugh. 

"Snow," he declared, "you're all right.  You surely have the  faculty of putting your finger on the weak spots.

Of course we  can't  stop it.  If these two young idiots have a mind to marry and  keep that  mind, they WILL

marry and we can't prevent it any more  than we could  prevent the tide coming in tomorrow morning.  _I_

realized that this  was a sort of fool's errand, my coming down  here.  I know that this  isn't the age when parents

can forbid  marriages and get away with it,  as they used to on the stage in the  old plays.  Boys and girls

nowadays have a way of going their own  gait in such matters.  But my  wife doesn't see it in exactly that  way,

and she was so insistent on  my coming down here to stop the  thing if I could thatwell, I came." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 137



Top




Page No 140


"I'm glad you did, Mr. Fosdick, real glad.  And, although I agree  with you that the very worst thing to do, if

we want to stop this  team from pullin' together, is to haul back on the bits and holler  'Whoa,' still I'm kind of

hopeful that, maybe . . . humph!  I  declare, it looks as if I'd have to tell you another story.  I'm  gettin' as bad as

Cap'n Hannibal Doane used to be, and they used to  call him 'The Rope Walk' 'cause he spun so many yarns." 

Fosdick laughed again.  "You may go as far as you like with your  stories, Captain," he said.  "I can grow fat on

them." 

"Thanks.  Well, this ain't a story exactly; it just kind of makes  the point I'm tryin' to get at.  Calvin Bangs had a

white mare one  time and the critter had a habit of runnin' away.  Once his wife,  Hannah J., was in the buggy

all by herself, over to the Ostable  Fair,  Calvin havin' got out to buy some peanuts or somethin'.  The  mare got

scared of the noise and crowd and bolted.  As luck would  have it, she  went right through the fence and out

onto the trottin'  track.  And  around that track she went, hell bent for election.  All hands was  runnin' alongside

hollerin' 'Stop her!  Stop her!  'but not Calvinno  SIR!  He waited till the mare was abreast of  him, the mare

on two legs  and the buggy on two wheels and Hannah  'most anywheres between the  dasher and the next

world, and then he  sung out:  'Give her her head,  Hannah!  Give her her head.  She'll  stop when she runs

down.'" 

He laughed and his visitor laughed with him. 

"I gather," observed the New Yorker, "that you believe it the  better policy to give our young people their

heads." 

"In reasonyes, I do.  It's my judgment that an affair like this  will hurry more and more if you try too hard to

stop it.  If you  don't try at all so any one would notice it, it may run down and  stop  of itself, the way Calvin's

mare did." 

Fosdick nodded reflectively.  "I'm inclined to agree with you," he  said.  "But does that mean that they're to

correspond, write love  letters, and all that?" 

"Why, in reason, maybe.  If we say no to that, they'll write  anyhow, won't they?" 

"Of course. . . .  How would it do to get them to promise to write  nothing that their parents might not see?  Of

course I don't mean  for  your grandson to show you his letters before he sends them to  Madeline.  He's too old

for that, and he would refuse.  But suppose  you asked him to agree to write nothing that Madeline would not

be  willing to show her motheror me.  Do you think he would?" 

"Maybe.  I'll ask him. . . .  Yes, I guess likely he'd do that." 

"My reason for suggesting it is, frankly, not so much on account of  the young people as to pacify my wife.  I

am not afraidnot very  much afraid of this love affair.  They are young, both of them.  Give  them time,

andas you say, Snow, the thing may run down,  peter out." 

"I'm in hopes 'twill.  It's calf love, as I see it, and I believe  'twill pay to give the calves rope enough." 

"So do I.  No, I'm not much troubled about the young people.  But  Mrs. Fosdickwell, my trouble will be

with her.  She'll want to  have  your boy shot or jailed or hanged or something." 

"I presume likely.  I guess you'll have to handle her the way  another feller who used to live here in South

Harniss said he  handled  his wife.  'We don't never have any trouble at all,' says  he.  'Whenever she says yes or

no, I say the same thing.  Later on,  when  it comes to doin', I do what I feel like.' . . .  Eh?  You're  not  goin', are


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 138



Top




Page No 141


you, Mr. Fosdick?" 

His visitor had risen and was reaching for his coat.  Captain  Zelotes also rose. 

"Don't hurry, don't hurry," he begged. 

"Sorry, but I must.  I want to be back in New York tomorrow  morning." 

"But you can't, can you?  To do that you'll have to get up to  Boston or Fall River, and the afternoon train's

gone.  You'd better  stay and have supper along with my wife and me, stay at our house  over night, and take

the early train after breakfast tomorrow." 

"I wish I could; I'd like nothing better.  But I can't." 

"Sure?"  Then, with a smile, he added:  "Al needn't eat with us,  you know, if his bein' there makes either of

you feel nervous." 

Fosdick laughed again.  "I think I should be willing to risk the  nervousness," he replied.  "But I must go, really.

I've hired a  chap  at the garage here to drive me to Boston in his car and I'll  take the  midnight train over." 

"Humph!  Well, if you must, you must.  Hope you have a comf'table  trip, Mr. Fosdick.  Better wrap up warm;

it's pretty nigh a five  hour run to Boston and there's some cool wind over the Ostable  marshes this time of

year.  Goodby, sir.  Glad to have had this  talk  with you." 

His visitor held out his hand.  "So am I, Snow," he said heartily.  "Mighty glad." 

"I hope I wasn't too short and brisk at the beginnin'.  You see,  I'd just read your wife's letter, anderwell,

of course, I  didn't  knowjustyou see, you and I had never met, and so" 

"Certainly, certainly.  I quite understand.  And, fool's errand or  not, I'm very glad I came here.  If you'll pardon

my saying so, it  was worth the trip to get acquainted with you.  I hope, whatever  comes of the other thing, that

our acquaintanceship will continue." 

"Same here, same here.  Go right out the side door, Mr. Fosdick,  saves goin' through the office.  Good day,

sir." 

He watched the bulky figure of the New York banker tramping across  the yard between the piles of lumber.

A moment later he entered  the  outer office.  Albert and Keeler were at their desks.  Captain  Zelotes

approached the little bookkeeper. 

"Labe," he queried, "there isn't anything particular you want me to  talk about just now, is there?" 

Lahan looked up in surprise from his figuring. 

"Whywhy, no, Cap'n Lote, don't know's there is," he said.  "Don't  know's there is, not now, no, no, no." 

His employer nodded.  "Good!" he exclaimed.  "Then I'm goin' back  inside there and sit down and rest my chin

for an hour, anyhow.  I've  talked so much today that my jaws squeak.  Don't disturb me  for  anything short of

a fire or a mutiny." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XI 139



Top




Page No 142


CHAPTER XII

He was not disturbed and that evening, after supper was over, he  was ready to talk again.  He and Albert sat

together in the sitting  roomMrs. Snow and Rachel were in the kitchen washing dishesand  Captain

Zelotes told his grandson as much as he thought advisable  to  tell of his conversation with the Honorable

Fletcher Fosdick.  At first  Albert was inclined to rebel at the idea of permitting his  letters to  Madeline to be

read by the latter's parents, but at  length he agreed. 

"I'll do it because it may make it easier for her," he said.  "She'll have a dreadful time, I suppose, with that

unreasonable  mother of hers.  But, by George, Grandfather," he exclaimed, "isn't  she splendid, though!" 

"Who?  Mrs. Fosdick?" 

"No, of course not," indignantly.  "Madeline.  Isn't she splendid  and fine and loyal!  I want you to know her,

Grandfather, you and  Grandmother." 

"Umhm.  Well, we'll hope to, some day.  Now, son, I'm goin' to ask  for another promise.  It may seem a hard

one to make, but I'm  askin'  you to make it.  I want you to give me your word that, no  matter what  happens or

how long you have to wait, you and Madeline  won't get  married without tellin' her folks and yours

beforehand.  You won't run  away and marry.  Will you promise me that?" 

Albert looked at him.  This WAS a hard promise to make.  In their  talks beneath the rainbows, whenever he

and Madeline had referred  to  the future and its doubts, they had always pushed those doubts  aside  with vague

hints of an elopement.  If the unreasonableness of  parents  and grandparents should crowd them too far, they

had always  as a last  resort, the solution of their problem by way of a runaway  marriage.  And now Captain

Zelotes was asking him to give up this  last resort. 

The captain, watching him keenly, divined what was in his  grandson's mind. 

"Think it over, Al," he said kindly.  "Don't answer me now, but  think it over, and tomorrow mornin' tell me

how you feel about  it."  He hesitated a moment and then added:  "You know your  grandmother and  I,

wewell, we have maybe cause to be a little  mite prejudiced  against this elopin' business." 

So Albert thought, and the next morning, as the pair were walking  together to the office, he spoke his

thought.  Captain Zelotes had  not mentioned the subject. 

"Grandfather," said Albert, with some embarrassment, "I'm going to  give you that promise." 

His grandfather, who had been striding along, his heavy brows drawn  together and his glance fixed upon the

frozen ground beneath his  feet, looked up. 

"Eh?" he queried, uncomprehendingly. 

"You asked me last night to promise you something, you know. . . .  You asked me to think it over.  I have, and

I'm going to promise  you  thatMadeline and I won't marry without first telling you." 

Captain Zelotes stopped in his stride; then he walked on again. 

"Thank you, Al," he said quietly.  "I hoped you'd see it that way." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XII 140



Top




Page No 143


"Yesyes, II do.  I don't want to bring any moretrouble of  that kind to you and Grandmother. . . .  It

seems to me that you  that you have had too much already." 

"Thank you, son. . . .  Much obliged." 

The captain's tone was almost gruff and that was his only reference  to the subject of the promise; but

somehow Albert felt that at that  moment he and his grandfather were closer together, were nearer to  a  mutual

understanding and mutual appreciation than they had ever  been  before. 

To promise, however, is one thing, to fulfill the obligation  another.  As the days passed Albert found his

promise concerning  letterwriting very, very hard to keep.  When, each evening he sat  down at the table in his

room to pour out his soul upon paper it  was  a most unsatisfactory outpouring.  The constantly enforced

recollection that whatever he wrote would be subject to the  chilling  glance of the eye of Fosdick mater was of

itself a check  upon the  flow.  To write a love letter to Madeline had hitherto  been a joy, a  rapture, to fill pages

and pages a delight.  Now,  somehow, these pages  were hard to fill.  Omitting the very things  you were dying to

say,  the precious, the intimate thingswhat was  there left?  He and she  had, at their meetings and in their

former  correspondence, invented  many delightful little pet names for each  other.  Now those names were

taboo; or, at any rate, they might as  well be.  The thought of Mrs.  Fosdick's sniff of indignant disgust  at

finding her daughter referred  to as some one's ownest little  rosebud withered that bud before it  reached the

paper. 

And Madeline's letters to him were quite as unsatisfactory.  They  were lengthy, but oh, so matter of fact!

Saharas of fact without  one  oasis of sentiment.  She was well and she had done this and  that and  had been to

see such and such plays and operas.  Father  was well and  very busy.  Mother, too, was well, so was

Googoobut  these last two  bits of news failed to comfort him as they perhaps  should.  He could  only try to

glean between the lines, and as Mrs.  Fosdick had raked  between those lines before him, the gleaning was

scant picking indeed. 

He found himself growing disconsolate and despondent.  Summer  seemed ages away.  And when at last it

should comewhat would  happen  then?  He could see her only when properly chaperoned, only  when

Mother, and probably Googoo, were present.  He flew for  consolation to  the Muse and the Muse refused to

console.  The poems  he wrote were  "blue" and despairing likewise.  Consequently they  did not sell.  He  was

growing desperate, ready for anything.  And  something came.  Germany delivered to our Government its

arrogant  mandate concerning  unlimited submarine warfare.  A longsuffering  President threw  patience

overboard and answered that mandate in  unmistakable terms.  Congress stood at his back and behind them a

united and indignant  people.  The United States declared war upon  the Hun. 

South Harniss, like every other community, became wildly excited.  Captain Zelotes Snow's gray eyes flashed

fiery satisfaction.  The  flags at the Snow place and at the lumber yard flew high night and  day.  He bought

newspapers galore and read from them aloud at  meals,  in the evenings, and before breakfast.  Issachar, as

usual,  talked  much and said little.  Laban Keeler's comments were pithy  and dryly  pointed.  Albert was very

quiet. 

But one forenoon he spoke.  Captain Lote was in the inner office,  the morning newspaper in his hand, when

his grandson entered and  closed the door behind him.  The captain looked up. 

"Well, Al, what is it?" he asked. 

Albert came over and stood beside the desk.  The captain, after a  moment's scrutiny of the young man's face,

put down his newspaper. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XII 141



Top




Page No 144


"Well, Al?" he said, again. 

Albert seemed to find it hard to speak. 

"Grandfather," he began, "IIGrandfather, I have come to ask a  favor of you." 

The captain nodded, slowly, his gaze fixed upon his grandson's  face. 

"All right; heave ahead," he said quietly. 

"Grandfather, you and I have had a four years' agreement to work  together in this office.  It isn't up yet,

butbut I want to break  it.  I want you to let me off." 

"Humph! . . .  Let you off, eh? . . .  What for?" 

"That's what I came here to tell you.  Grandfather, I can't stay  herenow.  I want to enlist." 

Captain Zelotes did not answer.  His hand moved upward and pulled  at his beard. 

"I want to enlist," repeated Albert.  "I can't stand it another  minute.  I must.  If it hadn't been for you and our

promise and  and  Madeline, I think I should have joined the Canadian Army a year  or  more ago.  But now

that we have gone into the war, I CAN'T stay  out.  Grandfather, you don't want me to, do you?  Of course you

don't." 

His grandfather appeared to ponder. 

"If you can wait a spell," he said slowly, "I might be able to fix  it so's you can get a chance for an officer's

commission.  I'd  ought  to have some pull somewheres, seems so." 

Albert sniffed impatient disgust.  "I don't want to get a  commissionin that way," he declared. 

"Humph!  You'll find there's plenty that do, I shouldn't wonder." 

"Perhaps, but I'm not one of them.  And I don't care so much for a  commission, unless I can earn it.  And I

don't want to stay here  and  study for it.  I want to go now.  I want to get into the thing.  I  don't want to wait." 

Captain Lote leaned forward.  His gray eyes snapped. 

"Want to fight, do you?" he queried. 

"You bet I do!" 

"All right, my boy, then goand fight.  I'd be ashamed of myself  if I held you back a minute.  Go and

fightand fight hard.  I only  wish to God I was young enough to go with you." 

CHAPTER XIII

And so, in this unexpected fashion, came prematurely the end of the  four year trial agreement between Albert

Speranza and Z. Snow and  Co.  Of course neither Captain Zelotes nor Albert admitted that it  had  ended.  Each

professed to regard the break as merely temporary. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 142



Top




Page No 145


"You'll be back at that desk in a little while, Al," said the  captain, "addin' up figgers and tormentin' Issy."  And

Albert's  reply  was invariably, "Why, of course, Grandfather." 

He had dreaded his grandmother's reception of the news of his  intended enlistment.  Olive worshiped her

daughter's boy and,  although an ardent patriot, was by no means as fiercely belligerent  as her husband.  She

prayed each night for the defeat of the Hun,  whereas Captain Lote was for licking him first and praying

afterwards.  Albert feared a scene; he feared that she might be  prostrated when she learned that he was to go to

war.  But she bore  it wonderfully well, and as for the dreaded "scene," there was  none. 

"Zelotes says he thinks it's the right thing for you to do,  Albert,"  she said, "so I suppose I ought to think so,

too.  But, oh,  my dear,  DO you really feel that you must?  Iit don't seem as I  could bear  to . . . but there, I

mustn't talk so.  It ain't a mite  harder for  me than it is for thousands of women all over this world. .  . .  And

perhaps the government folks won't take you, anyway.  Rachel  said  she read in the Item about some young

man over in Bayport who was  rejected because he had fat feet.  She meant flat feet, I suppose,  poor thing.  Oh,

dear me, I'm laughin', and it seems wicked to laugh  a time like this.  And when I think of you goin', Albert,

II . . .  but there, I promised Zelotes I wouldn't. . . .  And they MAY not  take you. . . .  But oh, of course they

will, of course they  will! .  . .  I'm goin' to make you a chicken pie for dinner today;  I know how  you like it. . .

.  If only they MIGHT reject you! . . .  But there, I  said I wouldn't and I won't." 

Rachel Ellis's opinion on the subject and her way of expressing  that opinion were distinctly her own.  Albert

arose early in the  morning following the announcement of his decision to enter the  service.  He had not slept

well; his mind was too busy with  problems  and speculations to resign itself to sleep.  He had tossed  about

until  dawn and had then risen and sat down at the table in  his bedroom to  write Madeline of the step he had

determined to  take.  He had not  written her while he was considering that step.  He felt, somehow, that  he

alone with no pressure from without  should make the decision.  Now  that it was made, and irrevocably  made,

she must of course be told.  Telling her, however, was not an  easy task.  He was sure she would  agree that he

had done the right  thing, the only thing, but 

"It is going to be very hard for you, dear," he wrote, heedless of  the fact that Mrs. Fosdick's censorious eye

would see and condemn  the  "dear."  "It is going to be hard for both of us.  But I am sure  you  will feel as I do

that I COULDN'T do anything else.  I am young  and  strong and fit and I am an American.  I MUST go.  You

see it,  don't  you, Madeline.  I can hardly wait until your letter comes  telling me  that you feel I did just the

thing you would wish me to  do." 

He hesitated and then, even more regardless of the censor, added  the quotation which countless young lovers

were finding so apt just  then: 

"I could not love thee, dear, so much,  Loved I not honor more." 

So when, fresh from the intimacy of this communication with his  adored and with the letter in his hand, he

entered the sittingroom  at that early hour he was not overjoyed to find the housekeeper  there  ahead of him.

And her first sentence showed that she had  been  awaiting his coming. 

"Good mornin', Albert," she said.  "I heard you stirrin' 'round up  in your room and I came down here so's you

and I could talk  together  for a minute without anybody's disturbin' us. . . .  Humph!  I guess  likely you didn't

sleep any too well last night,  did you?" 

Albert shook his head.  "Not too well, Rachel," he replied. 

"I shouldn't wonder.  Well, I doubt if there was too much sleep  anywheres in this house last night.  So you're

really goin' to war,  are you, Albert?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 143



Top




Page No 146


"Yes.  If the war will let me I certainly am." 

"Dear, dear! . . .  Well, II think it's what Robert Penfold would  have done if he was in your place.  I've been

goin' over it and  goin'  over it half the night, myself, and I've come to that  conclusion.  It's goin' to be awful

hard on your grandma and  grandfather and me  and Labe, all us folks here at home, but I guess  it's the thing

you'd  ought to do, the Penfold kind of thing." 

Albert smiled.  "I'm glad you think so, Rachel," he said. 

"Well, I do, and if I'm goin' to tell the truth I might as well say  I tried terrible hard to find some good reasons

for thinkin'  'twan't.  I did SO!  But the only good reasons I could scare up for  makin' you  stay to home was

because home was safe and comf'table  and where you  was goin' wan't.  And that kind of reasonin' might do

fustrate for a  passel of clams out on the flats, but it wouldn't  be much credit to  decent, selfrespectin'

humans.  When General  Rolleson came to that  island and found his daughter and Robert  Penfold livin' there in

that  house made out of pearls he'd built  for her  Wan't that him all  over!  Another man, the common run  of

man, would have been satisfied  to build her a house out of wood  and lucky to get that, but no,  nothin' would

do him but pearls,  and if they'd have been di'monds he'd  have been better satisfied.  Well. . . .  Where was I? . .

.  Oh yes!  When General Rolleson came  there and says to his daughter, 'Helen,  you come home along of me,'

and she says, 'No, I shan't leave him,'  meanin' Robert Penfold, you  understand  When she says that did

Robert Penfold say, 'That's the  talk!  Put that in your pipe, old man,  and smoke it?'  No, SIR, he  didn't!  He

says, 'Helen, you go straight  home along with your pa  and work like fury till you find out who  forged that

note and laid  it onto me.  You find that out,' he says,  'and then you can come  fetch me and not afore.'  That's

the kind of  man HE was!  And they  sailed off and left him behind." 

Albert shook his head.  He had heard only about half of the  housekeeper's story.  "Pretty rough on him, I

should say," he  commented, absently. 

"I GUESS 'twas rough on him, poor thing!  But 'twas his duty and so  he done it.  It was rough on Helen, havin'

to go and leave him, but  'twas rougher still on him.  It's always roughest, seems to me,"  she  added, "on the

ones that's left behind.  Those that go have  somethin'  to take up their minds and keep 'em from thinkin' too

much.  The ones  that stay to home don't have much to do EXCEPT  think.  I hope you  don't get the notion that I

feel your part of it  is easy, Al.  Only a  poor, crazy idiot could read the papers these  days and feel that any  part

of this war was EASY!  It's awful, but  but it WILL keep you too  busy to think, maybe." 

"I shouldn't wonder, Rachel.  I understand what you mean." 

"We're all goin' to miss you, Albert.  This house is goin' to be  a  pretty lonesome place, I cal'late.  Your

grandma'll miss you  dreadful  and so will I, butbut I have a notion that your  grandpa's goin' to  miss you

more'n anybody else." 

He shook his head.  "Oh, not as much as all that, Rachel," he said.  "He and I have been getting on much better

than we used to and we  have come to understand each other better, but he is still  disappointed in me.  I'm

afraid I don't count for much as a  business  man, you see; and, besides, Grandfather can never quite  forget that

I  am the son of what he calls a Portygee play actor." 

Mrs. Ellis looked at him earnestly.  "He's forgettin' it better  every day, Albert," she said.  "I do declare I never

believed  Capt'n  Lote Snow could forget it the way he's doin'.  And you  well, you've  forgot a whole lot, too.

Memory's a good thing, the  land knows," she  added, sagely, "but a nice healthy forgetery is  worth

consider'blesome times and in some cases." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 144



Top




Page No 147


Issachar Price's comments on his fellow employee's decision to  become a soldier were pointed.  Issy was

disgusted. 

"For thunder sakes, Al," he demanded, "'tain't true that you've  enlisted to go to war and fight them Germans,

is it?" 

Albert smiled.  "I guess it is, Issy," he replied. 

"Well, by crimus!" 

"Somebody had to go, you see, Is." 

"Well, by crimustee!" 

"What's the matter, Issy?  Don't you approve?" 

"Approve!  No, by crimus, I don't approve!  I think it's a divil of  a note, that's what I think." 

"Why?" 

"WHY?  Who's goin' to do the work in this office while you're gone?  Labe and me, that's who; and I'll do the

heft of it.  Slavin'  myself  half to death as 'tis and now  Oh, by crimustee!  This war  is a  darned nuisance.  It

hadn't ought to be allowed.  There'd  ought to be  a law against it." 

But of all the interviews which followed Albert's decision the most  surprising and that which he was the least

likely to forget was his  interview with Laban Keeler.  It took place on the evening of the  third day following

the announcement of his intention to enlist.  All  that day, and indeed for several days, Albert had noted in the

little  bookkeeper certain symptoms, familiar symptoms they were and  from  experience the young man knew

what they portended.  Laban was  very  nervous, his fingers twitched as he wrote, occasionally he  rose from  his

chair and walked up and down the room, he ran his  hand through his  scanty hair, he was inclined to be

irritablethat  is, irritable for  him.  Albert had noted the symptoms and was  sorry.  Captain Zelotes  noted them

and frowned and pulled his  beard. 

"Al," he said to his grandson, "if you can put off goin' up to  enlist for a little spell, a few days, I wish you

would.  Labe's  gettin' ready to go on one of his vacations." 

Albert nodded.  "I'm afraid he is," he said. 

"Oh, it's as sartin as two and two makes four.  I've lived with him  too many years not to know the signs.  And I

did hope," he added,  regretfully, "that maybe he was tryin' to break off.  It's been a  good long spell, an extry

long spell, since he had his last spree.  Ah  hum! it's a pity a good man should have that weak spot in him,  ain't

it?  But if you could hang around a few more days, while the  vacation's goin' on, I'd appreciate it, Al.  I kind of

hate to be  left here alone with nobody but Issachar to lean on.  Issy's a good  deal like a post in some ways,

especially in the makeup of his  head,  but he's too ricketty to lean on for any length of time." 

That evening Albert went to the postoffice for the mail.  On his  way back as he passed the dark corner by the

now closed and  shuttered  movingpicture theater he was hailed in a whisper. 

"Al," said a voice, "Al." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 145



Top




Page No 148


Albert turned and peered into the deep shadow of the theater  doorway.  In the summer this doorway was a

blaze of light and  gaiety;  now it was cold and bleak and black enough.  From the  shadow a small  figure

emerged on tiptoe. 

"Al," whispered Mr. Keeler.  "That's you, ain't it?  Yes, yesyes,  yes, yesI thought 'twas, I thought so." 

Albert was surprised.  For one thing it was most unusual to see the  little bookkeeper abroad after ninethirty.

His usual evening  procedure, when not on a vacation, was to call upon Rachel Ellis at  the Snow place for an

hour or so and then to return to his room  over  Simond's shoe store, which room he had occupied ever since

the  building was erected. 

There he read, so people said, until eleven sharp, when his lamp  was  extinguished.  During or at the beginning

of the vacation periods  he  usually departed for some unknown destination, destinations which,  apparently,

varied.  He had been seen, hopelessly intoxicated, in  Bayport, in Ostable, in Boston, once in Providence.

When he  returned  he never seemed to remember exactly where he had been.  And, as most  people were fond

of and pitied him, few questions were  asked. 

"Why, Labe!" exclaimed Albert.  "Is that you?  What's the matter?" 

"Busy, are you, Al?" queried Laban.  "In a hurry, eh?  Are you?  In  a hurry, Al, eh?" 

"Why no, not especially." 

"Could youcould you spare me two or three minutes?  Two or three  minutesyes, yes?  Come up to my

room, could youcould you, Al?" 

"Yes indeed.  But what is it, Labe?" 

"I want to talk.  Want to talk, I do.  Yes, yes, yes.  Saw you go  by and I've been waitin' for you.  Waitin'yes, I

haveyes." 

He seized his assistant by the arm and led him across the road  toward the shoe store.  Albert felt the hand on

his arm tremble  violently. 

"Are you cold, Labe?" he asked.  "What makes you shiver so?" 

"Eh?  Cold?  No, I ain't coldno, no, no.  Come, Al, come." 

Albert sniffed suspiciously, but no odor of alcohol rewarded the  sniff.  Neither was there any perfume of

peppermint, Mr. Keeler's  transparent camouflage at a vacation's beginning.  And Laban was  not  humming the

refrain glorifying his "darling hankypanky."  Apparently  he had not yet embarked upon the spree which

Captain  Lote had  pronounced imminent.  But why did he behave so queerly? 

"I ain't the way you think, Al," declared the little man, divining  his thought.  "I'm just kind of shaky and

nervous, that's all.  That's  all, that's all, that's all.  Yes, yes.  Come, come!  COME!" 

The last "come" burst from him in an agony of impatience.  Albert  hastened up the narrow stairs, Laban

leading the way.  The latter  fumbled with a key, his companion heard it rattling against the  keyhole plate.

Then the door opened.  There was a lamp, its wick  turned low, burning upon the table in the room.  Mr. Keeler

turned  it  up, making a trembly job of the turning.  Albert looked about  him; he  had never been in that room

before. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 146



Top




Page No 149


It was a small room and there was not much furniture in it.  And it  was a neat room, for the room of an old

bachelor who was his own  chambermaid.  Most things seemed to have places where they belonged  and most

of them appeared to be in those places.  What impressed  Albert even more was the number of books.  There

were books  everywhere, in the cheap bookcase, on the pine shelf between the  windows, piled in the corners,

heaped on the table beside the lamp.  They were worn and shabby volumes for the most part, some with but

half a cover remaining, some with none.  He picked up one of the  latter.  It was Locke on The Human

Understanding; and next it, to  his  astonishment, was Alice's Adventures in Wonderland. 

Mr. Keeler looked over his shoulder and, for an instant, the  whimsical smile which was characteristic of him

curved his lip. 

"Philosophy, Al," he observed.  "If Locke don't suit you try the  'mad hatter' feller.  I get consider'ble comfort

out of the hatter,  myself.  Do you remember when the mouse was tellin' the story about  the three sisters that

lived in the well?  He said they lived on  everything that began with M.  Alice says 'Why with an M?'  And the

hatter, or the March hare, I forget which 'twas, says prompt, 'Why  not?' . . .  Yes, yes, why not? that's what he

said. . . .  There's  some philosophy in that, Al.  Why does a hen go across the road?  Why  not?  Why is Labe

Keeler a disgrace to all his friends and the  town he  lives in?  Why not? . . .  Eh? . . .  Yes, yes.  That's it  why

not?" 

He smiled again, but there was bitterness and not humor in the  smile.  Albert put a hand on his shoulder. 

"Why, Labe," he asked, in concern, "what is it?" 

Laban turned away. 

"Don't mind, me, Al," he said, hurriedly.  "I mean don't mind if I  act funny.  I'mI'm kind ofof  Oh, good

Lord A'mighty, DON'T  look at me like that! . . .  I beg your pardon, Al.  I didn't mean  to  bark like a dog at

you.  No, I didn'tno, no.  Forgive me, will  you?  Will you, Al, eh?" 

"Of course I will.  But what is the matter, Labe?  Sit down and  tell me about it." 

Instead of sitting the little bookkeeper began to walk up and down. 

"Don't mind me, Al," he said, hurriedly.  "Don't mind me.  Let me  go my own gait.  My own gaityes, yes.

You see, Al, II'm tryin'  to enlist, same as you're goin' to do, andand MY fight's begun  already.  Yes

indeedyes, yesit has so." 

Albert was more astonished than ever.  There was no smell of  alcohol, and Keeler had declared that he had not

been drinking;  but 

"You're going to ENLIST?" repeated Albert.  "YOU?  Why, Labe,  what" 

Laban laughed nervously.  "Not to kill the Kaiser," he replied.  "No, no, not thatnot exactly.  I'd like to, only

I wouldn't be  much  help that way.  Butbut Al, II want to do somethin'.  I  I'd like  to try to showI'd

like to be an American, a decent  American, and the  best way to begin, seems to me, is to try and be  a man, a

decent man.  Eh?  You understand, II  Oh, Lord, what a  mess I am makin' of  this!  II  Al," turning and

desperately  waving his hands, "I'm  goin' to try to swear off.  Will you help  me?" 

Albert's answer was enthusiastic.  "You bet I will!" he exclaimed.  Keeler smiled pathetically. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 147



Top




Page No 150


"It's goin' to be some job, I cal'late," he said.  "Some job, yes,  yes.  But I'm goin' to try it, Al.  I read in the

papers 'tother  day  that America needed every man.  Then you enlisted, Al,or  you're  goin' to enlist.  It set me

to thinkin' I'd try to enlist,  too.  For  the duration of the war, eh?  Yes, yes." 

"Good for you, Labe!  Bully!" 

Laban held up a protesting hand.  "Don't hurrah yet, Al," he said.  "This ain't the first time I've tried it.  I've

swore off a dozen  times in the last fifteen years.  I've promised Rachel and broke  the  promise over and over

again.  Broke my promise to her, the best  woman  in the world.  Shows what I am, what sort I am, don't it, Al?

Yes, it  does,yes, yes.  And she's stuck by me, too, Lord knows  why.  Last  time I broke it I said I'd never

promise her again.  Bad  enough to be  a common drunk without bein' a liaryes, yes.  But  this is a little

different.  Seems to meseems so." 

He began his pacing up and down again. 

"Seems different, somehow," he went on.  "Seems like a new chance.  I want to do somethin' for Uncle Sam.

II'd like to try and  enlist  for the duration of the warswear off for that long,  anyhow.  Then,  maybe, I'd be

able to keep on for life, you know  duration of Labe  Keeler, eh?  Yes, yes, yes.  But I could begin for  just the

war,  couldn't I?  Maybe, 'twould fool me into thinkin'  that was easier." 

"Of course, Labe.  It's a good idea." 

"Maybe; and maybe it's a fool one.  But I'm goin' to try it.  I AM  tryin' it, have been all day." 

He paused, drew a shaking hand across his forehead and then asked,  "Al, will you help me?  I asked you up

here hopin' you would.  Will  you, Al, eh?  Will you?" 

Albert could not understand how he could possibly help another man  keep the pledge, but his promise was

eagerly given. 

"Certainly, Labe," he said. 

"Thanks . . . thank you, Al. . . .  And now will you do something  for mea favor?" 

"Gladly.  What is it?" 

Laban did not answer at once.  He appeared to be on the point of  doing so, but to be struggling either to find

words or to overcome  a  tremendous reluctance.  When he did speak the words came in a  burst. 

"Go down stairs," he cried.  "Down those stairs you came up.  At  the foot of 'em, in a kind of cupboard place,

under 'em, there's  there probably is a jug, a full jug.  It was due to come by express  today and I cal'late it

did, cal'late Jim Young fetched it down  this  afternoon.  II could have looked for myself and seen if  'twas

there," he added, after a momentary hesitation, "butbut I  didn't  dare to.  I was afraid I'dI'd" 

"All right, Labe.  I understand.  What do you want me to do with it  if it is there?" 

"I want youI want you toto"  The little bookkeeper seemed to  be fighting another internal battle

between inclination and  resolution.  The latter won, for he finished with, "I want you to  take it out back of the

buildin' andand empty it.  That's what I  want you to do, empty it, Al, every drop. . . .  And, for the

Almighty's sake, go quick," he ordered, desperately, "or I'll tell  you not to before you start.  Go!" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 148



Top




Page No 151


Albert went.  He fumbled in the cupboard under the stairs, found  the juga large one and heavyand

hastened out into the night  with  it in his hands.  Behind the shoe store, amid a heap of old  packing  boxes and

other rubbish, he emptied it.  The process was  rather  lengthy and decidedly fragrant.  As a finish he smashed

the  jug with a  stone.  Then he climbed the stairs again. 

Laban was waiting for him, drops of perspiration upon his forehead. 

"Waswas it there?" he demanded. 

Albert nodded. 

"Yes, yes.  'Twas there, eh?  And did youdid you?" 

"Yes, I did, jug and all." 

"Thank you, Al . . . thank you . . .  II've been trying to muster  up spunk enough to do it myself, butbut I

swan I couldn't.  I  didn't dast to go nigh it . . .  I'm a fine specimen, ain't I,  now?"  he added, with a twisted

smile.  "Some coward, eh?  Yes, yes.  Some  coward." 

Albert, realizing a little of the fight the man was making, was  affected by it.  "You're a brick, Labe," he

declared, heartily.  "And  as for being a coward  Well, if I am half as brave when my  turn  comes I shall be

satisfied." 

Laban shook his head.  "I don't know how scared I'd be of a German  bombshell," he said, "but I'm everlastin'

sure I wouldn't run from  it  for fear of runnin' towards it, and that's how I felt about that  jug.  . . .  Yes, yes, yes.

I did so . . .  I'm much obliged to  you, Al.  I  shan't forget itno, no.  I cal'late you can trot  along home now, if

you want to.  I'm pretty safefor tonight,  anyhow.  Guess likely the  new recruit won't desert afore morning." 

But Albert, watching him intently, refused to go. 

"I'm going to stay for a while, Labe," he said.  "I'm not a bit  sleepy, really.  Let's have a smoke and talk

together.  That is, of  course, unless you want to go to bed." 

Mr. Keeler smiled his twisted smile.  "I ain't crazy to," he said.  "The way I feel now I'd get to sleep about

week after next.  But I  hadn't ought to keep you up, Al." 

"Rubbish! I'm not sleepy, I tell you.  Sit down.  Have a cigar.  Now what shall we talk about?  How would

books do?  What have you  been reading lately, Labe?" 

They smoked and talked books until nearly two.  Then Laban insisted  upon his guest departing.  "I'm all right,

Al" he declared,  earnestly.  "I am honestyes, yes, I am.  I'll go to sleep like a  lamb, yes indeed." 

"You'll be at the office in the morning, won't you, Labe?" 

The little bookkeeper nodded.  "I'll be there," he said.  "Got to  answer roll call the first mornin' after

enlistment.  Yes, yes.  I'll  be there, Al." 

He was there, but he did not look as if his indulgence in the lamb  like sleep had been excessive.  He was so

pale and haggard that his  assistant was alarmed. 

"You're not sick, are you, Labe?" he asked, anxiously.  Laban shook  his head. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 149



Top




Page No 152


"No," he said.  "No, I ain't sick.  Been doin' picket duty up and  down the room since half past three, that's all.

Umhm, that's  all.  Say, Al, if General what'shisnameervon Hindenburgis  any  harder scrapper than

old Field Marshal Barleycorn he's a pretty  tough  one.  Say, Al, you didn't say anything aboutabout

myer  enlistin'  to Cap'n Lote, did you?  I meant to ask you not to." 

"I didn't, Labe.  I thought you might want it kept a secret." 

"Umhm.  Better keep it in the ranks until we know how this first  erskirmish is comin' out.  Yes, yes.

Better keep it that way.  Umhm." 

All day he stuck manfully at his task and that evening, immediately  after supper, Albert went to the room

over the shoe store, found  him  there and insisted upon his coming over to call upon Rachel.  He had  not

intended doing so. 

"You see, Al," he explained, "I'mI'm kind ofershaky and  Rachel will be worried, I'm afraid.  She

knows me pretty well and  she'll cal'late I'm just gettin' ready toto bust loose again." 

Albert interrupted.  "No, she won't, Laban," he said.  "We'll show  her that you're not." 

"You won't say anything to her about myerenlistin', Al?  Don't.  No, no.  I've promised her too many

timesand broke the promises.  If  anything should come of this fight of mine I'd rather she'd find  it  out for

herself.  Better to surprise her than to disapp'int her.  Yes,  yes, lots better." 

Albert promised not to tell Rachel and so Laban made his call.  When it was over the young man walked

home with him and the pair  sat  and talked until after midnight, just as on the previous night.  The  following

evening it was much the same, except that, as Mr.  Keeler  pronounced himself more than usually "shaky" and

expressed a  desire to  "keep movin'," they walked half way to Orham and back  before parting.  By the end of

the week Laban declared the fight  wonfor the time. 

"You've pulled me through the fust tussle, Al," he said.  "I shan't  desert now, not till the next breakout,

anyhow.  I cal'late it'll  get me harder than ever then.  Harder than everyes, yes.  And you  won't be here to

help me, neither." 

"Never mind; I shall be thinking of you, Labe.  And I know you're  going to win.  I feel it in my bones." 

"Umhm. . . .  Yes, yes, yes. . .  In your bones, eh?  Well, MY  bones don't seem to feel much, except

rheumatics once in a while.  I  hope yours are better prophets, but I wouldn't want to bet too  high on  it.  No, I

wouldn'tno, no.  However, we'll do our best,  and they say  angels can't do any morethough they'd

probably do it  in a different  way . . . some different. . . .  Umhm. . . .  Yes,  indeed." 

Two letters came to Albert before that week ended.  The first was  from Madeline.  He had written her of his

intention to enlist and  this was her reply.  The letter had evidently been smuggled past  the  censor, for it

contained much which Mrs. Fosdick would have  bluepenciled.  Its contents were a blend of praise and

blame, of  exaltation and depression.  He was a hero, and so brave, and she  was  so proud of him.  It was

wonderful his daring to go, and just  what she  would have expected of her hero.  If only she might see  him in

his  uniform.  So many of the fellows she knew had enlisted.  They were  wonderfully brave, too, although of

course nothing like  as wonderful  as her own etcetera, etcetera.  She had seen some of  THEM in their  uniforms

and they were PERFECTLY SPLENDID.  But they  were officers, or  they were going to be.  Why wasn't he

going to be  an officer?  It was  so much nicer to be an officer.  And if he were  one he might not have  to go

away to fight nearly so soon.  Officers  stayed here longer and  studied, you know.  Mother had said  something

about "a common  private," and she did not like it.  But  never mind, she would be just  as proud no matter what


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 150



Top




Page No 153


he was.  And  she should dream of him and think  of him always and always.  And  perhaps he might be so brave

and  wonderful that he would be given  one of those war crosses, the Croix  de Guerre or something.  She  was

sure he would.  But oh, no matter  what happened, he must not go  where it was TOO dangerous.  Suppose he

should be wounded.  Oh,  suppose, SUPPOSE he should be killed.  What  would she do then?  What would

become of her?  MUST he go, after all?  Couldn't he stay  at home and study or something, for a while, you

know?  She should  be so lonely after he was gone.  And so frightened  and so anxious.  And he wouldn't forget

her, would he, no matter where  he went?  Because she never, never, never would forget him for a  moment.

And  he must write every day.  And 

The letter was fourteen pages long. 

The other letter was a surprise.  It was from Helen.  The Reverend  Mr. Kendall had been told of Albert's

intended enlistment and had  written his daughter. 

So you are going into the war, Albert (she wrote).  I am not  surprised because I expected you would do just

that.  It is what  all  of us would like to do, I'm sure, and you were always anxious  to go,  even before the United

States came in.  So I am writing this  merely to  congratulate you and to wish you the very best of good  luck.

Father  says you are not going to try for a commission but  intend enlisting as  a private.  I suppose that is

because you think  you may get to the  actual fighting sooner.  I think I understand  and appreciate that  feeling

too, but are you sure it is the best  plan?  You want to be of  the greatest service to the country and  with your

education and  brains  This ISN'T flattery, because it  is truedon't you think you  might help more if you

were in command  of men?  Of course I don't  know, being only a girl, but I have been  wondering.  No doubt

you know  best and probably it is settled  before this; at any rate, please don't  think that I intend butting  in.

"Butting in" is not at all a proper  expression for a  schoolmarm to use but it is a relief to be human

occasionally.  Whatever you do I am sure will be the right thing and I  know all  your friends are going to be

very, very proud of you.  I  shall hear  of you through the people at home, I know, and I shall be  anxious  to

hear.  I don't know what I shall do to help the cause, but  I  hope to do something.  A musket is prohibitive to

females but the  knitting needle is ours and I CAN handle that, if I do say it.  And  I  MAY go in for Red Cross

work altogether.  But I don't count much,  and  you men do, and this is your day.  Please, for the sake of your

grandparents and all your friends, don't take unnecessary chances.  I  can see your face as you read that and

think that I am a silly  idiot.  I'm not and I mean what I say.  You see I know YOU and I  know you  will not be

content to do the ordinary thing.  We want you  to  distinguish yourself, but also we want you to come back

whole  and  sound, if it is possible.  We shall think of you a great deal.  And  please, in the midst of the

excitement of the BIG work you are  doing,  don't forget us home folk, including your friend, 

HELEN KENDALL. 

Albert's feelings when he read this letter were divided.  He  enjoyed hearing from Helen.  The letter was just

like herself,  sensible and goodhumored and friendly.  There were no hysterics in  it and no heroics but he

knew that no one except his grandparents  and  Rachel and Labanand, of course, his own Madelinewould

think  of him  oftener or be more anxious for his safety and welfare than  Helen.  He  was glad she was his

friend, very glad.  But he almost  wished she had  not written.  He felt a bit guilty at having  received the letter.

He  was pretty sure that Madeline would not  like the idea.  He was tempted  to say nothing concerning it in his

next letter to his affianced, but  that seemed underhanded and  cowardly, so he told her.  And in her next  letter

to him Madeline  made no reference at all to Helen or her  epistle, so he knew she  was displeased.  And he was

miserable in  consequence. 

But his misery did not last long.  The happenings which followed  crowded it from his mind, and from

Madeline's also, for that  matter.  One morning, having told no one except his grandfather  of his  intention, he

took the morning train to Boston.  When he  returned the  next day he was Uncle Sam's man, sworn in and

accepted.  He had passed  the physical examination with flying  colors and the recruiting  officers expressed


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 151



Top




Page No 154


themselves as being  glad to get him.  He was home  for but one day leave, then he must  go to stay.  He had

debated the  question of going in for a  commission, but those were the early days  of our participation in  the

war and a Plattsburg training or at least  some sort of military  education was almost an essential.  He did not

want to wait; as he  had told his grandfather, he wanted to fight.  So  he enlisted as a  private. 

And when the brief leave was over he took the train for Boston,  no  longer Alberto Miguel Carlos Speranza,

South Harniss's Beau  Brummel,  poet and Portygee, but Private Speranza, U.S.A.  The  farewells were  brief

and no one criedmuch.  His grandmother  hugged and kissed him,  Rachel looked very much as if she

wanted to.  Laban and Issachar shook  hands with him. 

"Good luck to you, boy," said Mr. Keeler.  "All the luck there is." 

"Same to you, old man," replied Albert.  Then, in a lower tone, he  added, "We'll fight it out together, eh?" 

"We'll try.  Yes, yes.  We'll try.  So long, Al." 

Issachar struck the reassuring note.  "Don't fret about things in  the office," he said.  "I'll look out for 'em long's

I keep my  health." 

"Be sure and keep that, Issy." 

"You bet you!  Only thing that's liable to break it down is over  work." 

Captain Zelotes said very little.  "Write us when you can, Al," he  said.  "And come home whenever you get

leave." 

"You may be sure of that, Grandfather.  And after I get to camp  perhaps you can come and see me." 

"Maybe so.  Will if I can. . . .  Well, Al, I . . . I. . . .  Good  luck to you, son." 

"Thank you, Grandfather." 

They shook hands.  Each looked as if there was more he would have  liked to say but found the saying hard.

Then the engine bell rang  and the hands fell apart.  The little group on the station platform  watched the train

disappear.  Mrs. Snow and Rachel wiped their eyes  with their handkerchiefs.  Captain Zelotes gently patted his

wife's  shoulder. 

"The team's waitin', Mother," he said.  "Labe'll drive you and  Rachel home." 

"Butbut ain't you comin', too, Zelotes?" faltered Olive.  Her  husband shook his head. 

"Not now, Mother," he answered.  "Got to go back to the office." 

He stood for an instant looking at the faint smear of smoke above  the curve in the track.  Then, without

another word, he strode off  in  the direction of Z. Snow and Co.'s buildings.  Issachar Price  sniffed. 

"Crimus," he whispered to Laban, as the latter passed him on the  way to where Jessamine, the Snow horse,

was tied, "the old man  takes  it cool, don't he!  I kind of imagined he'd be sort of shook  up by  Al's goin' off to

war, but he don't seem to feel it a mite." 

Keeler looked at him in wonder.  Then he drew a long breath. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 152



Top




Page No 155


"Is," he said, slowly, "it is a mighty good thing for the Seven  Wise Men of Greece that they ain't alive now." 

It was Issachar's turn to stare.  "Eh?" he queried.  "The Seven  Wise Men of Which?  Good thing for 'em they

ain't alive?  What kind  of talk's that?  Why is it a good thing?" 

Laban spoke over his shoulder.  "Because," he drawled, "if they was  alive now they'd be so jealous of you

they'd commit suicide.  Yes,  they would. . . .  Yes, yes." 

With which enigmatical remark he left Mr. Price and turned his  attention to the tethered Jessamine. 

And then began a new period, a new life at the Snow place and in  the office of Z. Snow and Co.  Or, rather,

life in the old house  and  at the lumber and hardware office slumped back into the groove  in  which it had run

before the opera singer's son was summoned  from the  New York school to the home and into the lives of his

grandparents.  Three people instead of four sat down at the breakfast  table and at  dinner and at supper.

Captain Zelotes walked alone to  and from the  office.  Olive Snow no longer baked and iced large  chocolate

layer  cakes because a certain inmate of her household was  so fond of them.  Rachel Ellis discussed Foul Play

and Robert  Penfold with no one.  The  house was emptier, more oldfashioned and  behind the times, more

lonelysurprisingly empty and behind the  times and lonely. 

The daily mails became matters of intense interest and expectation.  Albert wrote regularly and of course well

and entertainingly.  He  described the life at the camp where he and the other recruits were  training, a camp

vastly different from the enormous military towns  built later on for housing and training the drafted men.  He

liked  the life pretty well, he wrote, although it was hard and a fellow  had  precious little opportunity to be

lazy.  Mistakes, too, were  unprofitable for the maker.  Captain Lote's eye twinkled when he  read  that. 

Later on he wrote that he had been made a corporal and his  grandmother, to whom a major general and a

corporal were of equal  rank, rejoiced much both at home and in church after meeting was  over  and friends

came to hear the news.  Mrs. Ellis declared  herself not  surprised.  It was the Robert Penfold in him coming  out,

so she said. 

A month or two later one of Albert's letters contained an  interesting item of news.  In the little spare time

which military  life afforded him he continued to write verse and stories.  Now a  New  York publisher, not one

of the most prominent but a reputable  and  enterprising one, had written him suggesting the collecting of  his

poems and their publication in book form.  The poet himself  was,  naturally, elated. 

"Isn't it splendid!" he wrote.  "The best part of it, of course, is  that he asked to publish, I did not ask him.

Please send me my  scrapbook and all loose manuscript.  When the book will come out  I'm  sure I don't know.

In fact it may never come out, we have not  gotten  as far as terms and contracts yet, but I feel we shall.  Send

the  scrapbook and manuscript right away, PLEASE." 

They were sent.  In his next letter Albert was still enthusiastic. 

"I have been looking over my stuff," he wrote, "and some of it is  pretty good, if you don't mind my saying so.

Tell Grandfather that  when this book of mine is out and selling I may be able to show him  that poetry making

isn't a pauper's job, after all.  Of course I  don't know how much it will sellperhaps not more than five or ten

thousand at firstbut even at ten thousand at, say, twentyfive  cents royalty each, would be twentyfive

hundred dollars, and  that's  something.  Why, Ben Hur, the novel, you know, has sold a  million, I  believe." 

Mrs. Snow and Rachel were duly impressed by this prophecy of  affluence, but Captain Zelotes still played

the skeptic. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 153



Top




Page No 156


"A million at twentyfive cents a piece!" exclaimed Olive.  "Why,  Zelotes, that'sthat's an awful sight of

money." 

Mental arithmetic failing her, she set to work with a pencil and  paper and after a strenuous struggle

triumphantly announced that it  came to two hundred and fifty thousand dollars. 

"My soul and body!" she cried.  "Two hundred and fifty thousand  DOLLARS!  My SOUL, Zelotes!

Supposeonly suppose Albert's book  brought him in as much as that!" 

Her husband shook his head.  "I can't, Olive," he said, without  looking up from his newspaper.  "My supposer

wouldn't stand the  strain." 

"But it might, Zelotes, it MIGHT.  Suppose it did, what would you  say then?" 

The captain regarded her over the top of the Transcript.  "I  shouldn't say a word, Olive," he answered,

solemnly.  "I should be  down sick by the time it got up as far as a thousand, and anything  past two thousand

you could use to buy my tombstone with. . . .  There, there, Mother," he added, noticing the hurt look on her

face,  "don't feel bad.  I'm only jokin'.  One of these days Al's  goin' to  make a nice, comf'table livin' sellin'

lumber and hardware  right here  in South Harniss.  I can SEE that money in the offin'.  All this  million or two

that's comin' from poetry and such is out  of sight in  the fog.  It may be there buthumph! well, I KNOW

where Z. Snow and  Co. is located." 

Olive was not entirely placated.  "I must say I think you're awful  discouragin' to the poor boy, Zelotes," she

said.  Her husband put  down his paper. 

"No, no, I ain't, Mother," he replied, earnestly.  "At least I  don't mean to be.  Way I look at it, this

poetrymakin' and writin'  yarns and that sort of stuff is just part of the youngster'ser  growin' up, as you

might say.  Give him time he'll grow out of it,  same as I cal'late he will out of this girl business, thiser

Madelhumpherahem. . . .  Looks like a good day tomorrow,  don't  it." 

He pulled up suddenly, and with considerable confusion.  He had  kept the news of his grandson's infatuation

and engagement even  from  his wife.  No one in South Harniss knew of it, no one except  the  captain.  Helen

Kendall knew, but she was in Boston. 

Rachel Ellis picked up the half knitted Red Cross mitten in her  lap.  "Well, I don't know whether he's right or

you are, Cap'n  Lote,"  she said, with a sigh, "but this I do knowI wish this  awful war was  over and he was

back home again." 

That remark ended the conversation.  Olive resumed her own  knitting,  seeing it but indistinctly.  Her husband

did not continue  his  newspaper reading.  Instead he rose and, saying something about  cal'latin' he would go

for a little walk before turning in, went out  into the yard. 

But the war did not end, it went on; so too did the enlisting and  training.  In the early summer Albert came

home for a two days'  leave.  He was broader and straighter and browner.  His uniform  became him and, more

than ever, the eyes of South Harniss's  youthful  femininity, native or imported, followed him as he walked  the

village  streets.  But the glances were not returned, not in  kind, that is.  The new Fosdick home, although

completed, was not  occupied.  Mrs.  Fosdick had, that summer, decided that her duties  as mover in goodness

knows how many war work activities prevented  her taking her "usual  summer rest."  Instead she and Madeline

occupied a rented villa at  Greenwich, Connecticut, coming into town  for meetings of all sorts.  Captain

Zelotes had his own suspicions  as to whether war work alone  was the cause of the Fosdicks'  shunning of what

was to have been their  summer home, but he kept  those suspicions to himself.  Albert may have  suspected


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 154



Top




Page No 157


also, but  he, too, said nothing.  The censored  correspondence between  Greenwich and the training camp

traveled  regularly, and South  Harniss damsels looked and longed in vain.  He  saw them, he bowed  to them, he

even addressed them pleasantly and  charmingly, but to  him they were merely incidents in his walks to and

from the post  office.  In his mind's eye he saw but one, and she,  alas, was not  present in the flesh. 

Then he returned to the camp where, later on, Captain Zelotes and  Olive visited him.  As they came away the

captain and his grandson  exchanged a few significant words. 

"It is likely to be almost any time, Grandfather," said Albert,  quietly.  "They are beginning to send them now,

as you know by the  papers, and we have had the tip that our turn will be soon.  So" 

Captain Lote grasped the significance of the uncompleted sentence. 

"I see, Al," he answered, "I see.  Well, boy, II  Good luck." 

"Good luck, Grandfather." 

That was all, that and one more handclasp.  Our AngloSaxon  inheritance descends upon us in times like

these.  The captain was  silent for most of the ride to the railroad station. 

Then followed a long, significant interval during which there were  no letters from the young soldier.  After

this a short reassuring  cablegram from "Somewhere in France."  "Safe.  Well," it read and  Olive Snow carried

it about with her, in the bosom of her gown, all  that afternoon and put it upon retiring on her bureau top so

that  she  might see it the first thing in the morning. 

Another long interval, then letters, the reassuring but so  tantalizingly unsatisfactory letters we American

families were,  just  at that time, beginning to receive.  Reading the newspapers  now had a  personal interest, a

terrifying, dreadful interest.  Then  the packing  and sending of holiday boxes, over the contents of  which Olive

and  Rachel spent much careful planning and anxious  preparation.  Then  another interval of more letters,

letters which  hinted vaguely at big  things just ahead. 

Then no letter for more than a month. 

And then, one noon, as Captain Zelotes returned to his desk after  the walk from home and dinner, Laban

Keeler came in and stood  beside  that desk. 

The captain, looking up, saw the little bookkeeper's face.  "What  is it, Labe?" he asked, sharply. 

Laban held a yellow envelope in his hand. 

"It came while you were gone to dinner, Cap'n," he said.  "Ben  Kelley fetched it from the telegraph office

himself.  Hehe said  he  didn't hardly want to take it to the house.  He cal'lated you'd  better  have it here, to

read to yourself, fust.  That's what he  saidyes,  yesthat's what 'twas, Cap'n." 

Slowly Captain Zelotes extended his hand for the envelope.  He did  not take his eyes from the bookkeeper's

face. 

"BenBen, he told me what was in it, Cap'n Lote," faltered Laban.  "II don't know what to say to you, I

don'tno, no." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIII 155



Top




Page No 158


Without a word the captain took the envelope from Keeler's fingers,  and tore it open.  He read the words upon

the form within. 

Laban leaned forward. 

"For the Lord sakes, Lote Snow," he cried, in a burst of agony,  "why couldn't it have been some darn

goodfornothin' like me  insteadinstead of him?  Oh, my God A'mighty, what a world this  is!  WHAT a

world!" 

Still Captain Zelotes said nothing.  His eyes were fixed upon the  yellow sheet of paper on the desk before him.

After a long minute  he  spoke. 

"Well," he said, very slowly, "well, Labe, there goesthere goes  Z. Snow and Company." 

CHAPTER XIV

The telegram from the War Department was brief, as all such  telegrams were perforce obliged to be.  The

Secretary of War,  through  his representative, regretted to inform Captain Zelotes  Snow that  Sergeant Albert

Speranza had been killed in action upon a  certain day.  It was enough, howeverfor the time quite enough.  It

was not until  later that the little group of South Harniss  recovered sufficiently  from the stunning effect of

those few words  to think of seeking  particulars.  Albert was dead; what did it  matter, then, to know how  he

died? 

Olive bore the shock surprisingly well.  Her husband's fears for  her seemed quite unnecessary.  The Captain,

knowing how she had  idolized her daughter's boy, had dreaded the effect which the news  might have upon

her.  She was broken down by it, it is true, but  she  was quiet and braveastonishingly, wonderfully quiet and

brave.  And  it was she, rather than her husband, who played the  part of the  comforter in those black hours. 

"He's gone, Zelotes," she said.  "It don't seem possible, I know,  but he's gone.  And he died doin' his duty,

same as he would have  wanted to die if he'd known 'twas comin', poor boy.  Soso we must  do ours, I

suppose, and bear up under it the very best we can.  It  won't be very long, Zelotes," she added.  "We're both

gettin' old." 

Captain Lote made no reply.  He was standing by the window of the  sittingroom looking out into the wet

backyard across which the  winddriven rain was beating in stormy gusts. 

"We must be brave, Zelotes," whispered Olive, tremulously.  "He'd  want us to be and we MUST be." 

He put his arm about her in a sudden heat of admiration.  "I'd be  ashamed not to be after seein' you, Mother,"

he exclaimed. 

He went out to the barn a few moments later and Rachel, entering  the sittingroom, found Olive crumpled

down in the big rocker in an  agony of grief. 

"Oh, don't, Mrs. Snow, don't," she begged, the tears streaming down  her own cheeks.  "You mustn't give way

to it like this; you mustn't." 

Olive nodded. 

"I know it, I know it," she admitted, chokingly, wiping her eyes  with a soaked handkerchief.  "I shan't, Rachel,


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 156



Top




Page No 159


only this once, I  promise you.  You see I can't.  I just can't on Zelotes's account.  I've got to bear up for his

sake." 

The housekeeper was surprised and a little indignant. 

"For his sake!" she repeated.  "For mercy sakes why for his sake?  Is it any worse for him than 'tis for you." 

"Oh, yes, yes, lots worse.  He won't say much, of course, bein'  Zelotes Snow, but you and I know how he's

planned, especially these  last years, and how he's begun to count onon Albert. . . .  No,  no,  I ain't goin' to

cry, Rachel, I ain'tI WON'Tbut sayin' his  name,  you know, kind of" 

"I know, I know.  Land sakes, DON'T I know!  Ain't I doin' it  myself?" 

"Course you are, Rachel.  But we mustn't when Zelotes is around.  We women, wewell, times like these

women HAVE to keep up.  What  would become of the men if we didn't?" 

So she and Rachel "kept up" in public and when the captain was  present, and he for his part made no show of

grief nor asked for  pity.  He was silent, talked little and to the callers who came  either at the house or office

was uncomplaining. 

"He died like a man," he told the Reverend Mr. Kendall when the  latter called.  "He took his chance, knowin'

what that meant" 

"He was glad to take it," interrupted the minister.  "Proud and  glad to take it." 

"Sartin.  Why not?  Wouldn't you or I have been glad to take ours,  if we could?" 

"Well, Captain Snow, I am glad to find you so resigned." 

Captain Zelotes looked at him.  "Resigned?" he repeated.  "What do  you mean by resigned?  Not to sit around

and whimper is one thing  any decent man or woman ought to be able to do that in these days;  but if by

bein' resigned you mean I'm contented to have it so  well,  you're mistaken, that's all." 

Only on one occasion, and then to Laban Keeler, did he open his  shell sufficiently to give a glimpse of what

was inside.  Laban  entered the inner office that morning to find his employer sitting  in  the desk chair, both

hands jammed in his trousers' pockets and  his  gaze fixed, apparently, upon the row of pigeonholes.  When

the  bookkeeper spoke to him he seemed to wake from a dream, for he  started and looked up. 

"Cap'n Lote," began Keeler, "I'm sorry to bother you, but that last  carload of pine was" 

Captain Zelotes waved his hand, brushing the carload of pine out of  the conversation. 

"Labe," he said, slowly, "did it seem to you that I was too hard on  him?" 

Laban did not understand.  "Hard on him?" he repeated.  "I don't  know's I just get" 

"Hard on Al.  Did it seem to you as if I was a little too much of  the bucko mate to the boy?  Did I drive him too

hard?  Was I  unreasonable?" 

The answer was prompt.  "No, Cap'n Lote," replied Keeler. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 157



Top




Page No 160


"You mean that? . . .  Umhm. . . .  Well, sometimes seems as if I  might have been.  You see, Labe, when he

first come I  Well, I  cal'late I was consider'ble prejudiced against him.  Account of his  father, you

understand." 

"Sartin.  Sure.  I understand." 

"It took me a good while to get reconciled to the Portygee streak  in him.  It chafed me consider'ble to think

there was a foreign  streak in our family.  The Snows have been straight Yankee for a  good  long while. . . .

Fact is, II never got really reconciled  to it.  I  kept bein' fearful all the time that that streak, his  father's

streak,  would break out in him.  It never did, except of  course in his poetry  and that sort of foolishness, but I

was always  scared 'twould, you  see.  And nownow that this has happened II  kind of fret for fear  that I

may have let my notions get ahead of  my fair play.  You think I  did give the boy a square deal, Labe?" 

"Sure thing, Cap'n." 

"I'm glad of that. . . .  Andand you cal'late he wasn'twasn't  too prejudiced against me?  I don't mean along

at first, I mean  this  last year or two." 

Laban hesitated.  He wished his answer to be not an overstatement,  but the exact truth. 

"I think," he said, with emphasis, "that Al was comin' to  understand  you better every day he lived, Cap'n.

Yes, and to think  more and  more of you, too.  He was gettin' older, for one  thingolder, more  of a

manyes, yes." 

Captain Zelotes smiled sadly.  "He was more boy than man by a good  deal yet," he observed.  "Well, Labe,

he's gone and I'm just  beginnin' to realize how much of life for me has gone along with  him.  He'd been doin'

better here in the office for the last two or  three  years, seemed to be catchin' on to business better.  Didn't  you

think  so, Labe?" 

"Sartin.  Yes indeed.  Fustrate, fustrate." 

"No, not firstrate.  He was a long ways from a business man yet,  but I did think he was doin' a lot better.  I

could begin to see  him  pilotin' this craft after I was called ashore.  Now he's gone  and . .  . well, I don't see

much use in my fightin' to keep it  afloat.  I'm  gettin' along in yearsand what's the use?" 

It was the first time Laban had ever heard Captain Zelotes refer to  himself as an old man.  It shocked him into

sharp expostulation. 

"Nonsense!" he exclaimed.  "You ain't old enough for the scrap heap  by a big stretch.  And besides, he made

his fight, didn't he?  He  didn't quit, Al didn't, and he wouldn't want us to.  No siree, he  wouldn't!  No, sir, no! .

. .  II hope you'll excuse me, Cap'n  Lote.  Ideclare it must seem to you as if I was talkin' pretty  fresh.  I

swan I'm sorry.  I am so . . . sorry; yes, yes, I be." 

The captain was not offended.  He waved the apologies aside. 

"So you think it's worth while my fightin' it out, do you, Labe?"  he asked, reflectively. 

"II think it's what you ought to do anyhow, whether it's worth  while or not.  The whole world's fightin'.

Uncle Sam's fightin'.  Al  was fightin'.  You're fightin'.  I'm fightin'.  It's a darn  sight  easier to quit, a darn sight,

butbut Al didn't quit.  And  and we  mustn'tnot if we can help it," he added, drawing a hand  across his

forehead. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 158



Top




Page No 161


His agitation seemed to surprise Captain Zelotes.  "So all hands  are fightin', are they, Labe," he observed.

"Well, I presume  likely  there's some truth in that.  What's your particular fight,  for  instance?" 

The little bookkeeper looked at him for an instant before replying.  The captain's question was kindly asked,

but there was, or so Laban  imagined, the faintest trace of sarcasm in its tone.  That trace  decided him.  He

leaned across the desk. 

"My particular fight?" he repeated.  "Youyou want to know what  'tis, Cap'n Lote?  All right, all right, I'll tell

you." 

And without waiting for further questioning and with, for him,  surprisingly few repetitions, he told of his

"enlistment" to fight  John Barleycorn for the duration of the war.  Captain Zelotes  listened to the very end in

silence.  Laban mopped his forehead  with  a hand which shook much as it had done during the interview  with

Albert in the room above the shoe store. 

"Therethere," he declared, in conclusion, "that's my fight, Cap'n  Lote.  Al and I, wewe kind of went into

it together, as you might  say, though his enlistin' was consider'ble more heroic than mine  yes indeed, I

should say so . . . yes, yes, yes.  But I'm fightin'  too . . . er . . . I'm fightin' too." 

Captain Zelotes pulled his beard. 

"How's the fight goin', Labe?" he asked, quietly. 

"Wellwell, it's kind ofkind of spotty, as you might say.  There's spots when I get along fairly smooth and

others whenwell,  when it's pretty rough goin'.  I've had four hard spots since Al  went  away, but there's two

that was the hardest.  One was along  Christmas  and New Year time; you know I 'most generally had one of

myerspells along about then.  And t'other is just now; I mean  since we got word aboutabout Al.  I don't

suppose likely you  surmised it, Cap'n, butbut I'd come to think a lot of that boy  yes, I had.  Seems funny

to you, I don't doubt, but it's so.  And  since the word come, you knowIIwell, I've had some fight,

some  fight.  II don't cal'late I've slept more'n four hours in  the last  four nightsnot more'n that, no.

Walkin' helps me most,  seems so.  Last night I walked to West Orham." 

"To West Orham!  You WALKED there?  Last NIGHT?" 

"Umhm.  Long's I can keep walkin' II seem to part way forgetto  forget the stuff, you know.  When I'm

alone in my room I go 'most  crazypretty nigh loony. . . .  But there!  I don't know why I got  to talkin' like

this to you, Cap'n Lote.  You've got your troubles  and" 

"Hold on, Labe.  Does Rachel know about your fight?" 

"No.  No, no.  Course she must notice how long I've beenbeen  straight, but I haven't told her.  I want to be

sure I'm goin' to  win  before I tell her.  She's been disappointed times enough  before, poor  woman. . . .  There,

Cap'n Lote, don't let's talk  about it any more.  Please don't get the notion that I'm askin' for  pity or anything

like  that.  And don't think I'm comparin' what I  call my fight to the real  one like Al's.  There's nothin' much

heroic about me, eh?  No, no, I  guess not.  Tell that to look at  me, eh?" 

Captain Zelotes rose and laid his big hand on his bookkeeper's  shoulder. 

"Don't you believe it, Labe," he said.  "I'm proud of you. . . .  And, I declare, I'm ashamed of myself. . . .

Humph! . . .  Well,  tonight you come home with me and have supper at the house." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 159



Top




Page No 162


"Now, now, Cap'n Lote" 

"You do as I tell you.  After supper, if there's any walkin' to be  doneif you take a notion to frog it to Orham

or San Francisco or  somewheresmaybe I'll go with you.  Walkin' may be good for my  fight, too; you can't

tell till you try. . . .  There, don't argue,  Labe.  I'm skipper of this craft yet and you'll obey my orders;  d'you

hear?" 

The day following the receipt of the fateful telegram the captain  wrote a brief note to Fletcher Fosdick.  A day

or two later he  received a reply.  Fosdick's letter was kindly and deeply  sympathetic.  He had been greatly

shocked and grieved by the news. 

Young Speranza seemed to me, (he wrote) in my one short interview  with him, to be a fine young fellow.

Madeline, poor girl, is  almost  frantic.  She will recover by and by, recovery is easier at  her age,  but it will be

very, very hard for you and Mrs. Snow.  You  and I  little thought when we discussed the problem of our young

people that  it would be solved in this way.  To you and your wife  my sincerest  sympathy.  When you hear

particulars concerning your  grandson's death,  please write me.  Madeline is anxious to know and  keeps asking

for  them.  Mrs. Fosdick is too much concerned with her  daughter's health  to write just now, but she joins me

in sympathetic  regards. 

Captain Zelotes took Mrs. Fosdick's sympathy with a grain of salt.  When he showed this letter to his wife he,

for the first time, told  her of the engagement, explaining that his previous silence had  been  due to Albert's

request that the affair be kept a secret for  the  present.  Olive, even in the depth of her sorrow, was greatly

impressed by the grandeur of the alliance. 

"Just think, Zelotes," she exclaimed, "the Fosdick girland our  Albert engaged to marry her!  Why, the

Fosdicks are awful rich,  everybody says so.  Mrs. Fosdick is head of I don't know how many  societies and

clubs and things in New York; her name is in the  paper  almost every day, so another New York woman told

me at Red  Cross  meetin' last summer.  And Mr. Fosdick has been in politics,  way up in  politics." 

"Umhm.  Well, he's reformed lately, I understand, so we mustn't  hold that against him." 

"Why, Zelotes, what DO you mean?  How can you talk so?  Just think  what it would have meant to have our

Albert marry a girl like  Madeline Fosdick." 

The captain put his arm about her and gently patted her shoulder. 

"There, there, Mother," he said, gently, "don't let that part of it  fret you." 

"But, Zelotes," tearfully, "I don't understand.  It would have been  such a great thing for Albert." 

"Would it?  Well, maybe.  Anyhow, there's no use worryin' about it  now.  It's done withended and done with

. . . same as a good many  other plans that's been made in the world." 

"Zelotes, don't speak like that, dear, so discouraged.  It makes me  feel worse than ever to hear you.  Andand

he wouldn't want you  to,  I'm sure." 

"Wouldn't he?  No, I cal'late you're right, Mother.  We'll try not  to." 

Other letters came, including one from Helen.  It was not long.  Mrs. Snow was a little inclined to feel hurt at

its brevity.  Her  husband, however, did not share this feeling. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 160



Top




Page No 163


"Have you read it carefully, Mother?" he asked. 

"Of course I have, Zelotes.  What do you mean?" 

"I meanwell, I tell you, Mother, I've read it three time.  The  first time I was like you; seemed to me as good

a friend of Al and  of  us as Helen Kendall ought to have written more than that.  The  second  time I read it I

begun to wonder ifif" 

"If what, Zelotes?" 

"Oh, nothin', Mother, nothin'.  She says she's comin' to see us  just as soon as she can get away for a day or

two.  She'll come,  and  when she does I cal'late both you and I are goin' to be  satisfied." 

"But why didn't she WRITE more, Zelotes?  That's what I can't  understand." 

Captain Zelotes tugged at his beard reflectively.  "When I wrote  Fosdick the other day," he said, "I couldn't

write more than a  couple  of pages.  I was too upset to do it.  I couldn't, that's  all." 

"Yes, but you are Albert's grandfather." 

"I know.  And Helen's always . . .  But there, Mother, don't you  worry about Helen Kendall.  I've known her

since she was born,  pretty  nigh, and _I_ tell you she's all RIGHT." 

Fosdick, in his letter, had asked for particulars concerning  Albert's death.  Those particulars were slow in

coming.  Captain  Zelotes wrote at once to the War Department, but received little  satisfaction.  The

Department would inform him as soon as it  obtained  the information.  The name of Sergeant Albert Speranza

had  been cabled  as one of a list of fatalities, that was all. 

"And to think," as Rachel Ellis put it, "that we never knew that  he'd been made a sergeant until after he was

gone.  He never had  time  to write it, I expect likely, poor boy." 

The first bit of additional information was furnished by the press.  A correspondent of one of the Boston

dailies sent a brief dispatch  to  his paper describing the fighting at a certain point on the  Allied  front.  A small

detachment of American troops had taken  part, with the  French, in an attack on a village held by the enemy.

The enthusiastic  reporter declared it to be one of the smartest  little actions in which  our soldiers had so far

taken part and was  eloquent concerning the  bravery and dash of his fellow countrymen.  "They proved

themselves,"  he went on, "and French officers with  whom I have talked are  enthusiastic.  Our losses,

considering the  number engaged, are said to  be heavy.  Among those reported as  killed is Sergeant Albert

Speranza,  a Massachusetts boy whom  American readers will remember as a writer of  poetry and magazine

fiction.  Sergeant Speranza is said to have led  his company in the  capture of the village and to have acted with

distinguished  bravery."  The editor of the Boston paper who first read  this  dispatch turned to his associate at

the next desk. 

"Speranza? . . . Speranza?" he said aloud.  "Say, Jim, wasn't it  Albert Speranza who wrote that corking poem

we published after the  Lusitania was sunk?" 

Jim looked up.  "Yes," he said.  "He has written a lot of pretty  good stuff since, too.  Why?" 

"He's just been killed in action over there, so Conway says in this  dispatch." 

"So? . . .  Humph! . . .  Any particulars?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 161



Top




Page No 164


"Not yet.  'Distinguished bravery,' according to Conway.  Couldn't  we have something done in the way of a

Sunday special?  He was a  Massachusetts fellow." 

"We might.  We haven't a photograph, have we?  If we haven't,  perhaps we can get one." 

The photograph was obtainedbribery and corruption of the Orham  photographerand, accompanied by a

reprint of the Lusitania poem,  appeared in the "Magazine Section" of the Sunday newspaper.  With  these also

appeared a short notice of the young poet's death in the  service of his country. 

That was the beginning.  At the middle of that week Conway sent  another dispatch.  The editor who received it

took it into the  office  of the Sunday editor. 

"Say," he said, "here are more particulars about that young chap  Speranza, the one we printed the special

about last Sunday.  He  must  have been a corker.  When his lieutenant was put out of  business by a  shrapnel

this Speranza chap rallied the men and  jammed 'em through the  Huns like a hot knife through butter.  Killed

the German officer and  took three prisoners all by himself.  Carried his wounded lieutenant to  the rear on his

shoulders, too.  Then he went back into the ruins to  get another wounded man and was  blown to slivers by a

hand grenade.  He's been cited in orders and  will probably be decorated by the  Frenchthat is, his memory

will  be.  Pretty good for a poet, I'd say.  No 'lilies and languors'  about that, eh?" 

The Sunday editor nodded approval. 

"Great stuff!" he exclaimed.  "Let me have that dispatch, will you,  when you've finished.  I've just discovered

that this young  Speranza's father was Speranza, the opera baritone.  You remember  him?  And his mother was

the daughter of a Cape Cod sea captain.  How's that?  Spain, Cape Cod, opera, poetry and the Croix de  Guerre.

And have you looked at the young fellow's photograph?  Combination of  Adonis and 'Romeo, where art thou.'

I've had no  less than twenty  letters about him and his poetry already.  Next  Sunday we'll have a  special "as is."

Where can I get hold of a lot  of his poems?" 

The "special as was" occupied an entire page.  A reporter had  visited South Harniss and had taken

photographs of the Snow place  and  some of its occupants.  Captain Zelotes had refused to pose,  but there  was

a view of the building and yards of "Z. Snow and Co."  with the  picturesque figure of Mr. Issachar Price

tastefully draped  against a  pile of boards in the right foreground.  Issy had been a  find for the  reporter; he

supplied the latter with every fact  concerning Albert  which he could remember and some that he invented  on

the spur of the  moment.  According to Issy, Albert was "a fine,  fustclass young  feller.  Him and me was like

brothers, as you  might say.  When he got  into trouble, or was undecided or anything,  he'd come to me for

advice  and I always gave it to him.  Land, yes!  I always give to Albert.  No  matter how busy I was I always

stopped  work to help HIM out."  The  reporter added that Mr. Price stopped  work even while speaking of it. 

The special attracted the notice of other newspaper editors.  This  skirmish in which Albert had taken so

gallant part was among the  first in which our soldiers had participated.  So the story was  copied and recopied.

The tale of the death of the young poet, the  "happy warrior," as some writer called him, was spread from the

Atlantic to the Pacific and from Canada to the Gulf.  And just at  this psychological moment the New York

publisher brought out the  long  deferred volume.  The Lances of Dawn, Being the Collected  Poems of  Albert

M. C. Speranza, such was its title. 

Meanwhile, or, rather, within the week when the Lances of Dawn  flashed upon the public, Captain Zelotes

received a letter from the  captain of Albert's regiment in France.  It was not a long letter,  for the captain was a

busy man, but it was the kindly, sympathetic  letter of one who was, literally, that welladvertised

combination,  an officer and a gentleman.  It told of Albert's promotion to the  rank of sergeant, "a promotion

which, had the boy been spared,  would,  I am sure, have been the forerunner of others."  It told of  that last


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 162



Top




Page No 165


fight, the struggle for the village, of Sergeant  Speranza's coolness  and daring and of his rush back into the

throat  of death to save a  wounded comrade. 

The men tell me they tried to stop him (wrote the captain).  He was  himself slightly wounded, he had just

brought Lieutenant Stacey  back  to safety and the enemy at that moment was again advancing  through the

village.  But he insisted upon going.  The man he was  trying to rescue  was a private in his company and the

pair were  great friends.  So he  started back alone, although several followed  him a moment later.  They saw

him enter the ruined cottage where  his friend lay.  Then a  party of the enemy appeared at the corner  and flung

grenades.  The  entire side of the cottage which he had  just entered was blown in and  the Germans passed on

over it,  causing our men to fall back  temporarily.  We retook the place  within half an hour.  Private  Kelly's

bodyit was Private Kelly  whom Sergeant Speranza was  attempting to rescuewas found and  another,

badly disfigured, which  was at first supposed to be that  of your grandson.  But this body was  subsequently

identified as  that of a private named Hamlin who was  killed when the enemy first  charged.  Sergeant

Speranza's body is  still missing, but is thought  to be buried beneath the ruins of the  cottage.  These ruins were

subsequently blown into further chaos by a  high explosive shell. 

Then followed more expressions of regret and sympathy and  confirmation of the report concerning citation

and the war cross.  Captain Lote read the letter at first alone in his private office.  Then he brought it home and

gave it to his wife to read.  Afterward  he read it aloud to Mrs. Ellis and to Laban, who was making his  usual

call in the Snow kitchen. 

When the reading was ended Labe was the first to speak.  His eyes  were shining. 

"Godfreys!" he exclaimed.  Godfreys, Cap'n Lote!" 

The captain seemed to understand. 

"You're right, Labe," he said.  "The boy's made us proud of  him. .  . .  Prouder than some of us are of ourselves,

I cal'late,"  he added,  rising and moving toward the door. 

"Sho, sho, Cap'n, you mustn't feel that way.  No, no." 

"Humph! . . .  Labe, I presume likely if I was a pious man, one of  the oldfashioned kind of pious, and

believed the Almighty went out  of his way to get square with any human bein' that made a mistake  or  didn't

do the right thingif I believed that I might figger all  this  was a sort of special judgment on me for my

prejudices, eh?" 

Mr. Keeler was much disturbed. 

"Nonsense, nonsense, Cap'n Lote!" he protested.  "You ain't fair to  yourself.  You never treated Al anyhow but

just honest and fair and  square.  If he was here now instead of layin' dead over there in  France, poor feller,

he'd say so, too.  Yes, he would.  Course he  would." 

The captain made no reply, but walked from the room.  Laban turned  to Mrs. Ellis. 

"The old man broods over that," he said.  "I wish. . . .  Eh?  What's the matter, Rachel?  What are you lookin' at

me like that  for?" 

The housekeeper was leaning forward in her chair, her cheeks  flushed and her hands clenched. 

"How do you know he's dead?" she asked, in a mysterious whisper. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 163



Top




Page No 166


"Eh?  How do I know who's dead?" 

"Albert.  How do you know he's dead?" 

Laban stared at her. 

"How do I know he's DEAD!" he repeated.  "How do I know" 

"Yes, yes, yes," impatiently; "that's what I said.  Don't run it  over three or four times more.  How do you know

Albert's dead?" 

"Why, Rachel, what kind of talk's that?  I know he's dead because  the newspapers say so, and the War

Department folks say so, and  this  cap'n man in France that was right there at the time, HE says  so.  All  hands

say soyes, yes.  So don't" 

"Sh!  I don't care if they all say so ten times over.  How do they  KNOW?  They ain't found him dead, have

they?  The report from the  War  Department folks was sent when they thought that other body was  Albert's.

Now they know that wasn't him.  Where is he?" 

"Why, under the ruins of that cottage.  'Twas all blown to pieces  and most likely" 

"Umhm.  There you are!  'Most likely!'  Well, I ain't satisfied  with most likelys.  I want to KNOW." 

"Butbut" 

"Laban Keeler, until they find his body I shan't believe Albert's  dead." 

"But, Rachel, you mustn't try to deceive yourself that way.  Don't  you see" 

"No, I don't see.  Labe, when Robert Penfold was lost and gone for  all them months all hands thought he was

dead, didn't they?  But he  wasn't; he was on that island lost in the middle of all creation.  What's to hinder

Albert bein' took prisoner by those Germans?  They  came back to that cottage place after Albert was left

there, the  cap'n says so in that letter Cap'n Lote just read.  What's to  hinder  their carryin' Al off with 'em?  Eh?

What's to hinder?" 

"Whywhy, nothin', I suppose, in one way.  But nine chances out of  ten" 

"That leaves one chance, don't it.  I ain't goin' to give up that  chance forfor my boy.  II  Oh, Labe, I did

think SO much of  him." 

"I know, Rachel, I know.  Don't cry any more than you can help.  And if it helps you any to make believeI

mean to keep on hopin'  he's alive somewhereswhy, do it.  It won't do any harm, I  suppose.  Only I wouldn't

hint such a thing to Cap'n Lote or  Olive." 

"Of course not," indignantly.  "I ain't quite a fool, I hope. . . .  And I presume likely you're right, Laban.  The

poor boy is dead,  probably.  But II'm goin' to hope he isn't, anyhow, just to get  what comfort I can from it.

And Robert Penfold did come back, you  know." 

For some time Laban found himself, against all reason, asking the  very question Rachel had asked:  Did they

actually KNOW that Albert  was dead?  But as the months passed and no news came he ceased to  ask  it.

Whenever he mentioned the subject to the housekeeper her  invariable reply was:  "But they haven't found his


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 164



Top




Page No 167


body, have  they?"  She would not give up that tenth chance.  As she seemed to  find some  comfort in it he did

not attempt to convince her of its  futility. 

And, meanwhile The Lances of Dawn, Being the Collected Poems of  Albert M. C. Speranza was making a

mild sensation.  The critics  were  surprisingly kind to it.  The story of the young author's  recent and  romantic

death, of his gallantry, his handsome features  displayed in  newspapers everywhere, all these helped toward

the  generous welcome  accorded the little volume.  If the verses were  not inspiredwhy,  they were at least

entertaining and pleasant.  And youth, highhearted  youth sang on every page.  So the reviewers  were kind

and forbearing  to the poems themselves, and, for the sake  of the dead soldierpoet,  were often enthusiastic.

The book sold,  for a volume of poems it sold  very well indeed. 

At the Snow place in South Harniss pride and tears mingled.  Olive  read the verses over and over again, and

wept as she read.  Rachel  Ellis learned many of them by heart, but she, too, wept as she  recited them to herself

or to Laban.  In the little bookkeeper's  room  above Simond's shoe store The Lances of Dawn lay under the

lamp upon  the center table as before a shrine.  Captain Zelotes  read the verses.  Also he read all the newspaper

notices which,  sent to the family by  Helen Kendall, were promptly held before his  eyes by Olive and Rachel.

He read the publisher's advertisements,  he read the reviews.  And the  more he read the more puzzled and

bewildered he became. 

"I can't understand it, Laban," he confided in deep distress to Mr.  Keeler.  "I give in I don't know anything at

all about this.  I'm  clean off soundin's.  If all this newspaper stuff is so Albert was  right all the time and I was

plumb wrong.  Here's this feller,"  picking up a clipping from the desk, "callin' him a genius and 'a  gifted

youth' and the land knows what.  And every day or so I get a  letter from somebody I never heard of tellin' me

what a comfort to  'em those poetry pieces of his are.  I don't understand it, Labe.  It  worries me.  If all this is

true thenthen I was all wrong.  I  tried  to keep him from makin' up poetry, LabeTRIED to, I did.  If  what

these folks say is so somethin' ought to be done to me.  II  by  thunder, I don't know's I hadn't ought to be

hung! . . .  And  yetand  yet, I did what I thought was right and did it for the  boy's sake . .  .  Andand even

now II ain't sartin I was wrong.  But if I wasn't  wrong then this is . . .  Oh, I don't know, I don't  know!" 

And not only in South Harniss were there changes of heart.  In New  York City and at Greenwich where Mrs.

Fosdick was more than ever  busy  with war work, there were changes.  When the newspaper  accounts of

young Speranza's heroic death were first published the  lady paid  little attention to them.  Her daughter needed

all her  care just  thenall the care, that is, which she could spare from  her duties as  president of this society

and corresponding secretary  of that.  If her  feelings upon hearing the news could have been  analyzed it is

probable  that their larger proportion would have  been a huge sense of relief.  THAT problem was solved, at

all  events.  She was sorry for poor  Madeline, of course, but the dear  child was but a child and would  recover. 

But as with more and more intensity the limelight of publicity was  turned upon Albert Speranza's life and

death and writing, the wife  of  the Honorable Fletcher Fosdick could not but be impressed.  As  head of  several

socalled literary societies, societies rather  neglected since  the outbreak of hostilities, she had made it her

business to hunt  literary lions.  Recently it was true that  military lionsMajor  Vermicelli of the Roumanian

light cavalry,  or Private Drinkwater of  the Tank Corpswere more in demand than  Tagores, but, as Mrs.

Fosdick  read of Sergeant Speranza's perils  and poems, it could not help  occurring to her that here was a lion

both literary and martial.  Decidedly she had not approved of her  daughter's engagement to that  lion, but now

the said lion was dead,  which rendered him a perfectly  harmless yet not the less fascinating  animal.  And then

appeared The  Lances of Dawn and Mrs. Fosdick's  friends among the elect began to  read and talk about it. 

It was then that the change came.  Those friends, one by one,  individuals judiciously chosen, were told in

strict confidence of  poor Madeline's romantic love affair and its tragic ending.  These  individuals, chosen

judiciously as has been stated, whispered, also  in strict confidence, the tale to other friends and

acquaintances.  Mrs. Fosdick began to receive condolences on her daughter's account  and on her own.  Soon


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 165



Top




Page No 168


she began to speak publicly of "My poor, dear  daughter's dead fiance.  Such a loss to American literature.

Sheer  genius.  Have you read the article in the Timepiece?  Madeline,  poor  girl, is heartbroken, naturally, but

very proud, even in the  midst of  her grief.  So are we all, I assure you." 

She quoted liberally from The Lances of Dawn.  A copy specially  bound, lay upon her library table.  Albert's

photograph in uniform,  obtained from the Snows by Mr. Fosdick, who wrote for it at his  wife's request, stood

beside it.  To callers and sister war workers  Mrs. Fosdick gave details of the hero's genius, his bravery, his

devotion to her daughter.  It was all so romantic and pleasantly  selfadvertisingand perfectly safe. 

Summer came again, the summer of 1918.  The newspapers now were  gravely personal reading to millions of

Americans.  Our new army  was  trying its metal on the French front and with the British  against the  vaunted

Hindenburg Line.  The transports were carrying  thousands on  every trip to join those already "over there."  In

South Harniss and  in Greenwich and New York, as in every town and  city, the ordinary  summer vacations

and playtime occupations were  forgotten or neglected  and war charities and war labors took their  place.  Other

soldiers  than Sergeant Speranza were the newspaper  heroes now, other books than  The Lances of Dawn

talked about. 

As on the previous summer the new Fosdick cottage was not occupied  by its owners.  Mrs. Fosdick was

absorbed by her multitudinous war  duties and her husband was at Washington giving his counsel and  labor  to

the cause.  Captain Zelotes bought to his last spare  dollar of each  successive issue of Liberty Bonds, and gave

that  dollar to the Red  Cross or the Y. M. C. A.; Laban and Rachel did  likewise.  Even  Issachar Price bought

Thrift Stamps and exhibited  them to anyone who  would stop long enough to look. 

"By crimus," declared Issy, "I'm makin' myself poor helpin' out the  gov'ment, but let 'er go and darn the

Kaiser, that's my motto.  But  they ain't all like me.  I was down to the drug store yesterday and  old man

Burgess had the cheek to tell me I owed him for some cigars  I  boughterlast fall, seems to me 'twas.  I

turned right around  and  looked at him'I've got my opinion,' says I, 'of a man that  thinks of  cigars and such

luxuries when the country needs every  cent.  What have  you got that gov'ment poster stuck up on your wall

for?' says I.  'Read it,' I says.  'It says' '"Save!  Save!  Save!"' don't it?  All  right.  That's what I'M doin'.  I AM

savin'.'  Then when he was  thinkin' of somethin' to answer back I  walked right out and left him.  Yes sir, by

crimustee, I left him  right where he stood!" 

August came; Septemberthe Hindenburg Line was broken.  Each day  the triumphant headlines in the

papers were big and black and also,  alas, the casualty lists on the inside pages long and longer.  Then  October.

The armistice was signed.  It was the end.  The Allied  world went wild, cheered, danced, celebrated.  Then it

sat back,  thinking, thanking God, solemnly trying to realize that the killing  days, the frightful days of waiting

and awful anxiety, were over. 

And early in November another telegram came to the office of Z.  Snow and Co.  This time it came, not from

the War Department  direct,  but from the Boston headquarters of the American Red Cross. 

And this time, just as on the day when the other fateful telegram  came, Laban Keeler was the first of the

office regulars to learn  its  contents.  Ben Kelley himself brought this message, just as he  had  brought that

telling of Albert Speranza's death.  And the  usually  stolid Ben was greatly excited.  He strode straight from  the

door to  the bookkeeper's desk. 

"Is the old man in, Labe?" he whispered, jerking his head toward  the private office, the door of which

happened to be shut. 

Laban looked at him over his spectacles.  "Cap'n Lote, you mean?"  he asked.  "Yes, he's in.  But he don't want

to be disturbedno,  no.  Goin' to write a couple of important letters, he said.  Important  ones. . . .  Umhm.


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 166



Top




Page No 169


What is it, Ben?  Anything I can do  for you?" 

Kelley did not answer that question.  Instead he took a telegram  from his pocket. 

"Read it, Labe," he whispered.  "Read it.  It's the darndest news  thethe darnedest good news ever you

heard in your life.  It don't  seem as if it could he, but, by time, I guess 'tis.  Anyhow, it's  from the Red Cross

folks and they'd ought to know." 

Laban stared at the telegram.  It was not in the usual envelope;  Kelley had been too anxious to bring it to its

destination to  bother  with an envelope. 

"Read it," commanded the operator again.  "See if you think Cap'n  Lote ought to have it broke easy to him

oror what?  Read it, I  tell  you.  Lord sakes, it's no secret!  I hollered it right out  loud when  it come in over

the wire and the gang at the depot heard  it.  They  know it and it'll be all over town in ten minutes.  READ  IT." 

Keeler read the telegram.  His florid cheeks turned pale. 

"Good Lord above!" he exclaimed, under his breath. 

"Eh?  I bet you!  Shall I take it to the cap'n?  Eh?  What do you  think?" 

"Wait. . . .  Wait . . .  II  My soul!  My soul!  Why . . .  It'sit's true. . . .  And Rachel always said . . .  Why,

she was  right . . . I . . ." 

From without came the sound of running feet and a series of yells. 

"Labe!  Labe!" shrieked Issy.  "Oh, my crimus! . . .  Labe!" 

He burst into the office, his eyes and mouth wide open and his  hands waving wildly. 

"Labe!  Labe!" he shouted again.  "Have you heard it?  Have you?  It's true, too.  He's alive!  He's alive!  He's

alive!" 

Laban sprang from his stool.  "Shut up, Is!" he commanded.  "Shut  up!  Hold on!  Don't" 

"But he's alive, I tell you!  He ain't dead!  He ain't never been  dead!  Oh, my crimus! . . .  Hey, Cap'n Lote!  HE'S

ALIVE!" 

Captain Zelotes was standing in the doorway of the private office.  The noise had aroused him from his letter

writing. 

"Who's alive?  What's the matter with you this time, Is?" he  demanded. 

"Shut up, Issy," ordered Laban, seizing the frantic Mr. Price by  the collar.  "Be still!  Wait a minute." 

"Be still?  What do I want to be still for?  I cal'late Cap'n  Lote'll holler some, too, when he hears.  He's alive,

Cap'n Lote, I  tell ye.  Let go of me, Labe Keeler!  He's alive!" 

"Who's alive?  What is it?  Labe, YOU answer me.  Who's alive?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIV 167



Top




Page No 170


Laban's thoughts were still in a whirl.  He was still shaking from  the news the telegraph operator had brought.

Rachel Ellis was at  that moment in his mind and he answered as she might have done. 

"ErerRobert Penfold," he said. 

"Robert PENFOLD!  What" 

Issachar could hold in no longer. 

"Robert Penfold nawthin'!" he shouted.  "Who in thunder's he?  'Tain't Robert Penfold nor Robert Penholder

neither.  It's Al  Speranza, that's who 'tis.  He ain't killed, Cap'n Lote.  He's  alive  and he's been alive all the

time." 

Kelley stepped forward. 

"Looks as if 'twas so, Cap'n Snow," he said.  "Here's the telegram  from the Red Cross." 

CHAPTER XV

There was nothing miraculous about it.  That is to say, it was no  more of a miracle than hundreds of similar

cases in the World War.  The papers of those years were constantly printing stories of men  over whose

supposed graves funeral sermons had been preached, to  whose heirs insurance payments had been made, in

whose memory  grateful communities had made speeches and delivered eulogiums  the  papers were telling

of instance after instance of those men  being  discovered alive and in the flesh, as casuals in some French

hospital  or as inmates of German prison camps. 

Rachel Ellis had asked what was to hinder Albert's having been  taken prisoner by the Germans and carried

off by them.  As a matter  of fact nothing had hindered and that was exactly what had  happened.  Sergeant

Speranza, wounded by machine gun fire and again  by the  explosion of the grenade, was found in the ruins of

the  cottage when  the detachment of the enemy captured it.  He was  conscious and able to  speak, so instead of

being bayonetted was  carried to the rear where he  might be questioned concerning the  American forces.  The

questioning  was most unsatisfactory to the  Prussian officers who conducted it.  Albert fainted, recovered

consciousness and fainted again.  So at  last the Yankee swine was  left to die or get well and his Prussian

interrogators went about  other business, the business of escaping  capture themselves.  But  when they retreated

the few prisoners, mostly  wounded men, were  taken with them. 

Albert's recollections of the next few days were hazy and very  doubtful.  Pain, pain and more pain.  Hours and

hoursthey seemed  like yearsof jolting over rough roads.  Pawingover by a fat,  bearded surgeon, who

may not have been intentionally brutal, but  quite as likely may.  A great desire to die, punctuated by

occasional  feeble spurts of wishing to live.  Then more surgical  manhandling,  more joltingin freight cars

this timea slow,  miserable recovery,  nurses who hated their patients and treated  them as if they did, then,  a

prison camp, a German prison camp.  Then horrors and starvation and  brutality lasting many months.  Then

fever. 

He was wandering in that misty land between this world and the next  when, the armistice having been signed,

an American Red Cross  representative found him.  In the interval between fits of delirium  he told this man his

name and regiment and, later, the name of his  grandparents.  When it seemed sure that he was to recover the

Red  Cross representative cabled the facts to this country.  And, still  later, those facts, or the allimportant fact

that Sergeant Albert  M.  C. Speranza was not dead but alive, came by telegraph to Captain  Zelotes Snow of

South Harniss.  And, two months after that, Captain  Zelotes himself, standing on the wharf in Boston and


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 168



Top




Page No 171


peering up at  a  crowded deck above him, saw the face of his grandson, that face  which  he had never expected

to see again, looking eagerly down upon  him. 

A few more weeks and it was over.  The brief interval of camp life  and the mustering out were things of the

past.  Captain Lote and  Albert, seated in the train, were on their way down the Cape, bound  home.  Home!  The

word had a significance now which it never had  before.  Home! 

Albert drew a long breath.  "By George!" he exclaimed.  "By George,  Grandfather, this looks good to me!" 

It might not have looked as good to another person.  It was  raining, the long stretches of salt marsh were

windswept and brown  and bleak.  In the distance Cape Cod Bay showed gray and white  against a leaden sky.

The drops ran down the dingy car windows. 

Captain Zelotes understood, however.  He nodded. 

"It used to look good to me when I was bound home after a v'yage,"  he observed.  "Well, son, I cal'late your

grandma and Rachel are up  to the depot by this time waitin' for you.  We ain't due for pretty  nigh an hour yet,

but I'd be willin' to bet they're there." 

Albert smiled.  "My, I do want to see them!" he said. 

"Shouldn't wonder a mite if they wanted to see you, boy.  Well, I'm  kind of glad I shooed that reception

committee out of the way.  I  presumed likely you'd rather have your first day home to yourself  and us." 

"I should say so!  Newspaper reporters are a lot of mighty good  fellows, but I hope I never see another one. . .

.  That's rather  ungrateful, I know," he added, with a smile, "but I mean itjust  now." 

He had some excuse for meaning it.  The death of Albert Speranza,  poet and warrior, had made a newspaper

sensation.  His resurrection  and return furnished material for another.  Captain Zelotes was not  the only person

to meet the transport at the pier; a delegation of  reporters was there also.  Photographs of Sergeant Speranza

appeared  once more in print.  This time, however, they were  snapshots showing  him in uniform, likenesses of

a still handsome,  but less boyish young  man, thinner, a scar upon his right cheek,  and the look in his eyes

more serious, and infinitely older, the  look of one who had borne much  and seen more.  The reporters found  it

difficult to get a story from  the returned hero.  He seemed to  shun the limelight and to be almost  unduly

modest and retiring,  which was of itself, had they but known  it, a transformation  sufficiently marvelous to

have warranted a  special "Sunday  special." 

"Will not talk about himself," so one writer headed his article.  Gertie Kendrick, with a brandnew ring upon

her engagement finger,  sniffed as she read that headline to Sam Thatcher, who had  purchased  the ring.  "Al

Speranza won't talk about himself!"  exclaimed Gertie.  "Well, it's the FIRST time, then.  No wonder  they put it

in the  paper." 

But Albert would not talk, claiming that he had done nothing worth  talking about, except to get himself taken

prisoner in almost his  first engagement.  "Go and ask some of the other fellows aboard  here," he urged.  "They

have been all through it."  As he would not  talk the newspaper men were obliged to talk for him, which they

did  by describing his appearance and his manner, and by rehashing the  story of the fight in the French village.

Also, of course, they  republished some of his verses.  The Lances of Dawn appeared in a  special edition in

honor of its author's reappearance on this  earth. 

"Yes sir," continued Captain Zelotes, "the reception committee was  consider'ble disappointed.  They'd have

met you with the Orham band  if they'd had their way.  I told 'em you'd heard all the band music  you wanted in


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 169



Top




Page No 172


camp, I guessed likely, and you'd rather come home  quiet.  There was goin' to be some speeches, too, but I

had them  put  off." 

"Thanks, Grandfather." 

"Umhm.  I had a notion you wouldn't hanker for speeches.  If you  do Issy'll make one for you 'most any time.

Ever since you got  into  the papers Issy's been swellin' up like a hot popover with  pride  because you and he

was what he calls chummies.  All last  summer  Issachar spent his evenin's hangin' around the hotel waitin'  for

the  next boarder to mention your name.  Sure as one did Is was  ready for  him.  'Know him?' he'd sing out.  'Did

I know Al  Speranza?  ME?  Well,  now say!'  And so on, long as the feller  would listen.  I asked him  once if

he ever told any of 'em how you  ducked him with the bucket of  water.  He didn't think I knew about  that and it

kind of surprised  him, I judged." 

Albert smiled.  "Laban told you about it, I suppose," he said.  "What a kid trick that was, wasn't it?" 

The captain turned his head and regarded him for an instant.  The  old twinkle was in his eye when he spoke. 

"Wouldn't do a thing like that now, Al, I presume likely?" he said.  "Feel a good deal older now, eh?" 

Albert's answer was seriously given. 

"Sometimes I feel at least a hundred and fifty," he replied. 

"Humph! . . .  Well, I wouldn't feel like that.  If you're a  hundred and fifty I must be a little older than

Methuselah was in  his  last years.  I'm feelin' younger today, younger than I have  for quite  a spell.  Yes, for

quite a spell." 

His grandson put a hand on his knee.  "Good for you, Grandfather,"  he said.  "Now tell me more about Labe.

Do you know I think the  old  chap's sticking by his pledge is the bulliest thing I've heard  since  I've been

home." 

So they talked of Laban and of Rachel and of South Harniss  happenings until the train drew up at the

platform of that station.  And upon that platform stepped Albert to feel his grandmother's  arms  about him and

her voice, tremulous with happiness, at his ear.  And  behind her loomed Mrs. Ellis, her ample face a

combination of  smiles  and tears, "all sunshine and fair weather down below but  rainin'  steady up aloft," as

Captain Lote described it afterwards.  And behind  her, like a foothill in the shadow of a mountain, was  Laban.

And  behind Laban  No, that is a mistakein front of  Laban and beside  Laban and in front of and beside

everyone else  when opportunity  presented was Issachar.  And Issachar's expression  and bearings were

wonderful to see.  A stranger, and there were  several strangers amid  the group at the station, might have

gained  the impression that Mr.  Price, with of course a very little help  from the Almighty, was  responsible for

everything. 

"Why, Issy!" exclaimed Albert, when they shook hands.  "You're  here, too, eh?" 

Mr. Price's already protuberant chest swelled still further.  His  reply had the calmness of finality. 

"Yes, sir," said Issy, "I'm here.  'Who's goin' to look out for Z.  Snow and Co. if all hands walks out and leaves

'em?' Labe says.  'I  don't know,' says I, 'and I don't care.  I'm goin' to that depot to  meet Al Speranzy and if Z.

Snow and Co. goes to pot while I'm gone  I  can't help it.  I have sacrificed,' I says, 'and I stand ready to

sacrifice pretty nigh everything for my business, but there's  limits  and this is one of 'em.  I'm goin' acrost to

that depot to  meet him,'  says I, 'and don't you try to stop me, Labe Keeler.'" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 170



Top




Page No 173


"Great stuff, Is!" said Albert, with a laugh.  "What did Labe say  to that?" 

"What was there for him to say?  He could see I meant it.  Course  he hove out some of his cheap talk, but it

didn't amount to  nothin'.  Asked if I wan't goin' to put up a sign sayin' when I'd  be back, so's  to ease the

customers' minds.  'I don't know when  I'll be back,' I  says.  'All right,' says he, 'put that on the  sign.  That'll ease

'em  still more.'  Just cheap talk 'twas.  He  thinks he's funny, but I  don't pay no attention to him." 

Others came to shake hands and voice a welcome.  The formal  reception, that with the band, had been called

off at Captain  Zelotes's request, but the informal one was, in spite of the rain,  which was now much less

heavy, quite a sizable gathering. 

The Reverend Mr. Kendall held his hand for a long time and talked  much, it seemed to Albert that he had

aged greatly since they last  met.  He wandered a bit in his remarks and repeated himself several  times. 

"The poor old gentleman's failin' a good deal, Albert," said Mrs.  Snow, as they drove home together, he and

his grandparents, three  on  the seat of the buggy behind Jessamine.  "His sermons are pretty  tiresome

nowadays, but we put up with 'em because he's been with us  so long. . . .  Ain't you squeezed 'most to death,

Albert?  You two  big men and me all mashed together on this narrow seat.  It's lucky  I'm small.  Zelotes ought

to get a twoseated carriage, but he  won't." 

"Next thing I get, Mother," observed the captain, "will be an  automobile.  I'll stick to the old mare here as long

as she's able  to  navigate, but when she has to be hauled out of commission I'm  goin' to  buy a car.  I believe I'm

pretty nigh the last man in this  county to  drive a horse, as 'tis.  Makes me feel like what Sol  Dadgett calls a

cracked teapota 'genuine antique.'  One of these  city women will be  collectin' me some of these days.  Better

look  out, mother." 

Olive sighed happily.  "It does me good to hear you joke again,  Zelotes," she said.  "He didn't joke much,

Albert, whilewhen we  thought youyou" 

Albert interrupted in time to prevent the threatened shower. 

"So Mr. Kendall is not well," he said.  "I'm very sorry to hear  it." 

"Of course you would be.  You and he used to be so friendly when  Helen was home.  Oh, speakin' of Helen,

she IS comin' home in a  fortni't or three weeks, so I hear.  She's goin' to give up her  teachin' and come back to

be company for her father.  I suppose she  realizes he needs her, but it must be a big sacrifice for her,  givin'  up

the good position she's got now.  She's such a smart girl  and such  a nice one.  Why, she came to see us after the

news came  the bad  newsand she was so kind and so good.  I don't know what  we should  have done

without her.  Zelotes says so too, don't you,  Zelotes?" 

Her husband did not answer.  Instead he said:  "Well, there's home,  Al.  Rachel's there ahead of us and dinner's

on the way, judgin' by  the smoke from the kitchen chimney.  How does the old place look to  you, boy?" 

Albert merely shook his head and drew a long breath, but his  grandparents seemed to be quite satisfied. 

There were letters and telegrams awaiting him on the table in the  sittingroom.  Two of the letters were

postmarked from a town on  the  Florida coast.  The telegram also was from that same town. 

"_I_ had one of those things," observed Captain Zelotes, alluding  to the telegram.  "Fosdick sent me one of

those long ones, night  letters I believe they call 'em.  He wants me to tell you that Mrs.  Fosdick is better and

that they cal'late to be in New York before  very long and shall expect you there.  Of course you knew that, Al,


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 171



Top




Page No 174


but I presume likely the main idea of the telegram was to help say,  'Welcome home' to you, that's all." 

Albert nodded.  Madeline and her mother had been in Florida all  winter.  Mrs. Fosdick's health was not good.

She declared that her  nerves had given way under her frightful responsibilities during  the  war.  There was,

although it seems almost sacrilege to make  such a  statement, a certain similarity between Mrs. Fletcher

Fosdick and  Issachar Price.  The telegram was, as his grandfather  surmised, an  expression of welcome and of

regret that the senders  could not be  there to share in the reception.  The two letters  which accompanied it  he

put in his pocket to read later on, when  alone.  Somehow he felt  that the first hours in the old house  belonged

exclusively to his  grandparents.  Everything else, even  Madeline's letters, must take  second place for that

period. 

Dinner was, to say the least, an ample meal.  Rachel and Olive had,  as Captain Lote said, "laid themselves

out" on that dinner.  It  began  well and continued well and ended best of all, for the  dessert was one  of which

Albert was especially fond.  They kept  pressing him to eat  until Laban, who was an invited guest, was  moved

to comment. 

"Humph!" observed Mr. Keeler.  "I knew 'twas the reg'lar program to  kill the fatted calf when the prodigal got

home, but I see now it's  the proper caper to fat up the prodigal to take the critter's place.  No, no, Rachel, I'd

like fustrate to eat another bushel or so to  please you, but somethin'that still, small voice we're always

readin' about, or somethin'seems to tell me 'twouldn't be good  jedgment. . . .  Umhm. . . .  'Twouldn't be

good jedgment. . . .  Cal'late it's right, too. . . .  Yes, yes, yes." 

"Now, Cap'n Lote," he added, as they rose from the table, "you stay  right to home here for the rest of the day.

I'll hustle back to  the  office and see if Issy's importance has bust his b'iler for  him.  Solong, Al.  See you

pretty soon.  Got some things to talk  about,  you and I have. . . .  Yes, yes." 

Later, when Rachel was in the kitchen with the dishes, Olive left  the sitting room and reappeared with

triumph written large upon her  face.  In one hand she held a mysterious envelope and in the other  a  book.

Albert recognized that book.  It was his own, The Lances  of  Dawn.  It was no novelty to him.  When first the

outside world  and he  had reopened communication, copies of that book had been  sent him.  His publisher had

sent them, Madeline had sent them, his  grandparents  had sent them, comrades had sent them, nurses and

doctors and  newspaper men had brought them.  No, The Lances of Dawn  was not a  novelty to its author.  But

he wondered what was in the  envelope. 

Mrs. Snow enlightened him.  "You sit right down now, Albert," she  said.  "Sit right down and listen because

I've got somethin' to  tell  you.  Yes, and somethin' to show you, too.  Here!  Stop now,  Zelotes!  You can't run

away.  You've got to sit down and look on  and listen,  too." 

Captain Zelotes smiled resignedly.  There was, or so it seemed to  his grandson, an odd expression on his face.

He looked pleased,  but  not altogether pleased.  However, he obeyed his wife's orders  and sat. 

"Stop, look and listen," he observed.  "Mother, you sound like a  railroad crossin'.  All right, here I am.  Al, the

society of 'What  did I tell you' is goin' to have a meetin'." 

His wife nodded.  "Well," she said, triumphantly, "what DID I tell  you?  Wasn't I right?" 

The captain pulled his beard and nodded. 

"Right as right could be, Mother," he admitted.  "Your figgers was  a few hundred thousand out of the way,

maybe, but barrin' that you  was perfectly right." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 172



Top




Page No 175


"Well, I'm glad to hear you say so for once in your life.  Albert,"  holding up the envelope, "do you know what

this is?" 

Albert, much puzzled, admitted that he did not.  His grandmother  put down the book, opened the envelope and

took from it a slip of  paper. 

"And can you guess what THIS is?" she asked.  Albert could not  guess. 

"It's a check, that's what it is.  It's the first six months'  royalties, that's what they call 'em, on that beautiful

book of  yours.  And how much do you suppose 'tis?" 

Albert shook his head.  "Twentyfive dollars?" he suggested  jokingly. 

"Twentyfive dollars!  It's over twentyfive HUNDRED dollars.  It's  twentyeight hundred and fortythree

dollars and sixtyfive cents,  that's what it is.  Think of it!  Almost three thousand dollars!  And  Zelotes

prophesied that 'twouldn't be more than" 

Her husband held up his hand.  "Shsh!  Shsh, Mother," he said.  "Don't get started on what I prophesied or

we won't be through till  doomsday.  I'll give in right off that I'm the worst prophet since  the feller that h'isted

the 'Fair and Dry' signal the day afore  Noah's flood begun.  You see," he explained, turning to Albert,  "your

grandma figgered out that you'd probably clear about half a  million on  that book of poetry, Al.  I cal'lated

'twan't likely to  be much more'n  a couple of hundred thousand, so" 

"Why, Zelotes Snow!  You said" 

"Yes, yes.  So I did, Mother, so I did.  You was right and I was  wrong.  Twentyeight hundred ain't exactly a

million, Al, but it's  a  darn sight more than I ever cal'lated you'd make from that book.  Or  'most anybody else

ever made from any book, fur's that goes," he  added, with a shake of the head.  "I declare, II don't

understand  it yet.  And a poetry book, too!  Who in time BUYS 'em all?  Eh?" 

Albert was looking at the check and the royalty statement. 

"So this is why I couldn't get any satisfaction from the  publisher,"  he observed.  "I wrote him two or three

times about my  royalties,  and he put me off each time.  I began to think there  weren't any." 

Captain Zelotes smiled.  "That's your grandma's doin's," he  observed.  "The check came to us a good while

ago, when we thought  you waswaswell, when we thought" 

"Yes.  Surely, I understand," put in Albert, to help him out. 

"Yes.  That's when 'twas.  And Mother, she was so proud of it,  because you'd earned it, Al, that she kept it and

kept it, showin'  it  to all hands andand so on.  And then when we found out you  wasn'tthat you'd be home

some time or otherwhy, then she  wouldn't  let me put it in the bank for you because she wanted to  give it to

you  herself.  That's what she said was the reason.  I  presume likely the  real one was that she wanted to flap it in

my  face every time she  crowed over my bad prophesyin', which was about  three times a day and  four on

Sundays." 

"Zelotes Snow, the idea!" 

"All right, Mother, all right.  Anyhow, she got me to write your  publisher man and ask him not to give you

any satisfaction about  those royalties, so's she could be the fust one to paralyze you  with  'em.  And," with a


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 173



Top




Page No 176


frank outburst, "if you ain't paralyzed,  Al, I own  up that _I_ am.  Three thousand poetry profits beats me.  _I_

don't  understand it." 

His wife sniffed.  "Of course you don't," she declared.  "But  Albert does.  And so do I, only I think it ought to

have been ever  and ever so much more.  Don't you, yourself, Albert?" 

The author of The Lances of Dawn was still looking at the statement  of its earnings. 

"Approximately eighteen thousand sold at fifteen cents royalty," he  observed.  "Humph!  Well, I'll be hanged!" 

"But you said it would be twentyfive cents, not fifteen,"  protested Olive.  "In your letter when the book was

first talked  about you said so." 

Albert smiled.  "Did I?" he observed.  "Well, I said a good many  things in those days, I'm afraid.  Fifteen cents

for a first book,  especially a book of verse, is fair enough, I guess.  But eighteen  thousand SOLD!  That is what

gets me." 

"You mean you think it ought to be a lot more.  So do I, Albert,  and so does Rachel.  Why, we like it a lot

better than we do David  Harum.  That was a nice book, but it wasn't lovely poetry like  yours.  And David

Harum sold a million.  Why shouldn't yours sell  as many?  Only eighteen thousandwhy are you lookin' at

me so  funny?" 

Her grandson rose to his feet.  "Let's let well enough alone,  Grandmother," he said.  "Eighteen thousand will

do, thank you.  I'm  like Grandfather, I'm wondering who on earth bought them." 

Mrs. Snow was surprised and a little troubled. 

"Why, Albert," she said, "you act kind ofkind of queer, seems to  me.  You talk as if your poetry wasn't

beautiful.  You know it is.  You used to say it was, yourself." 

He interrupted her.  "Did I, Grandmother?" he said.  "All right,  then, probably I did.  Let's walk about the old

place a little.  I  want to see it all.  By George, I've been dreaming about it long  enough!" 

There were callers that afternoon, friends among the townsfolk, and  more still after supper.  It was latelate

for South Harniss, that  iswhen Albert, standing in the doorway of the bedroom he nor they  had ever

expected he would occupy again, bade his grandparents good  night.  Olive kissed him again and again and,

speech failing her,  hastened away down the hall.  Captain Zelotes shook his hand,  opened  his mouth to speak,

shut it again, repeated both operations,  and at  last with a brief, "Well, good night, Al," hurried after his  wife.

Albert closed the door, put his lamp upon the bureau, and  sat down in  the big rocker. 

In a way the night was similar to that upon which he had first  entered that room.  It had ceased raining, but the

wind, as on that  first night, was howling and whining about the eaves, the shutters  rattled and the old house

creaked and groaned rheumatically.  It  was  not as cold as on that occasion, though by no means warm.  He

remembered how bare and comfortless he had thought the room.  Now  it  looked almost luxurious.  And he had

been homesick, or fancied  himself  in that condition.  Compared to the homesickness he had  known during  the

past eighteen months that youthful seizure seemed  contemptible and  quite without excuse.  He looked about

the room  again, looked long and  lovingly.  Then, with a sigh of content,  drew from his pocket the two  letters

which had lain upon the  sittingroom table when he arrived,  opened them and began to read. 

Madeline wrote, as always, vivaciously and at length.  The maternal  censorship having been removed, she

wrote exactly as she felt.  She  could scarcely believe he was really going to be at home when he  received this,


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 174



Top




Page No 177


at home in dear, quaint, queer old South Harniss.  Just  think, she had not seen the place for ever and ever so

long,  not for  over two years.  How were all the funny, odd people who  lived there  all the time?  Did he

remember how he and she used to  go to church  every Sunday and sit through those dreadful, DREADFUL

sermons by that  prosy old minister just as an excuse for meeting  each other afterward?  She was SO sorry she

could not have been  there to welcome her hero  when he stepped from the train.  If it  hadn't been for Mother's

poor  nerves she surely would have been.  He knew it, didn't he?  Of course  he did.  But she should see him

soon "because Mother is planning  already to come back to New York  in a few weeks and then you are to  run

over immediately and make us  a LONG visit.  And I shall be so  PROUD of you.  There are lots of  Army

fellows down here now, officers  for the most part.  So we  dance and are very gaythat is, the other  girls are;

I, being an  engaged young lady, am very circumspect and  demure, of course.  Mother carries The Lances

about with her wherever  she goes, to teas  and such things, and reads aloud from it often.  Captain Blanchard,

he is one of the family's officer friends, is  crazy about your  poetry, dear.  He thinks it WONDERFUL.  You

know what  _I_ think of  it, don't you, and when I think that _I_ actually helped  you, or  played at helping you

write some of it! 

"And I am WILD to see your war cross.  Some of the officers here  have themthe crosses, I meanbut not

many.  Captain Blanchard  has  the military medal, and he is almost as modest about it as you  are  about your

decoration.  I don't see how you CAN be so modest.  If _I_  had a Croix de Guerre I should want EVERY ONE

to know about  it.  At  the tea dance the other afternoon there was a British major  who" 

And so on.  The second letter was really a continuation of the  first.  Albert read them both and, after the

reading was finished,  sat for some time in the rocking chair, quite regardless of the  time  and the cold,

thinking.  He took from his pocketbook a  photograph, one  which Madeline had sent him months before,

which  had reached him while  he lay in the French hospital after his  removal from the German camp.  He

looked at the pretty face in the  photograph.  She looked just as  he remembered her, almost exactly  as she had

looked more than two  years before, smiling, charming,  carefree.  She had not, apparently,  grown older, those

agelong  months had not changed her.  He rose and  regarded his own  reflection in the mirror of the bureau.

He was  surprised, as he  was constantly being surprised, to see that he, too,  had not  changed greatly in

personal appearance. 

He walked about the room.  His grandmother had told him that his  room was just as he had left it.  "I wouldn't

change it, Albert,"  she  said, "even when we thought youyou wasn't comin' back.  I  couldn't  touch it,

somehow.  I kept thinkin', 'Some day I will.  Pretty soon I  MUST.'  But I never did, and now I'm so glad." 

He wandered back to the bureau and pulled open the upper drawers.  In those drawers were so many things,

things which he had kept  there,  either deliberately or because he was too indolent to  destroy them.  Old dance

cards, invitations, and a bundle of  photographs, snapshots.  He removed the rubber band from the bundle  and

stood looking them  over.  Photographs of school fellows, of  picnic groups, of girls.  Sam  Thatcher, Gertie

Kendrickand Helen  Kendall.  There were at least a  dozen of Helen. 

One in particular was very good.  From that photograph the face of  Helen as he had known it four years before

looked straight up into  hiscleareyed, honest, a hint of humor and understanding and  commonsense in

the gaze and at the corners of the lips.  He looked  at the photograph, and the photograph looked up at him.  He

had not  seen her for so long a time.  He wondered if the war had changed  her  as it had changed him.

Somehow he hoped it had not.  Change  did not  seem necessary in her case. 

There had been no correspondence between them since her letter  written when she heard of his enlistment.

He had not replied to  that  because he knew Madeline would not wish him to do so.  He  wondered if  she ever

thought of him now, if she remembered their  adventure at High  Point light.  He had thought of her often

enough.  In those days and  nights of horror in the prison camp and hospital  he had found a little  relief, a little

solace in lying with closed  eyes and summoning back  from memory the things of home and the  faces of


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 175



Top




Page No 178


home.  And her face  had been one of these.  Her face and  those of his grandparents and  Rachel and Laban, and

visions of the  old house and the roomsthey  were the substantial things to cling  to and he had clung to

them.  They WERE home.  Madelineah! yes,  he had longed for her and dreamed  of her, God knew, but

Madeline,  of course, was different. 

He snapped the rubber band once more about the bundle of  photographs,  closed the drawer and prepared for

bed. 

For the two weeks following his return home he had a thoroughly  good time.  It was a tremendous comfort to

get up when he pleased,  to  eat the things he liked, to do much or little or nothing at his  own  sweet will.  He

walked a good deal, tramping along the beach in  the  blustering wind and chilly sunshine and enjoying every

breath  of the  clean salt air.  He thought much during those solitary  walks, and at  times, at home in the

evenings, he would fall to  musing and sit silent  for long periods.  His grandmother was  troubled. 

"Don't it seem to you, Zelotes," she asked her husband, "as if  Albert was kind of discontented or unsatisfied

these days?  He's  soso sort of fidgety.  Talks like the very mischief for ten  minutes  and then don't speak for

half an hour.  Sits still for a  long stretch  and then jumps up and starts off walkin' as if he was  crazy.  What

makes him act so?  He's kind of changed from what he  used to be.  Don't you think so?" 

The captain patted her shoulder.  "Don't worry, Mother," he said.  "Al's older than he was and what he's been

through has made him  older  still.  As for the fidgety part of it, the settin' down and  jumpin' up  and all that,

that's the way they all act, so far as I  can learn.  Elisha Warren, over to South Denboro, tells me his  nephew

has been  that way ever since he got back.  Don't fret,  Mother, Al will come  round all right." 

"I didn't know but he might be anxious to seeto see her, you  know." 

"Her?  Oh, you mean the Fosdick girl.  Well, he'll be goin' to see  her pretty soon, I presume likely.  They're due

back in New York  'most any time now, I believe. . . .  Oh, hum!  Why in time  couldn't  he" 

"Couldn't he what, Zelotes?" 

"Oh, nothin', nothin'." 

The summons came only a day after this conversation.  It came in  the form of another letter from Madeline

and one from Mrs. Fosdick.  They were, so the latter wrote, back once more in their city home,  her nerves,

thank Heaven, were quite strong again, and they were  expecting him, Albert, to come on at once.  "We are all

dying to  see  you," wrote Mrs. Fosdick.  "And poor, dear Madeline, of course,  is  counting the moments." 

"Stay as long as you feel like, Al," said the captain, when told of  the proposed visit.  "It's the dull season at the

office, anyhow,  and  Labe and I can get along firstrate, with Issy to superintend.  Stay as  long as you want to,

only" 

"Only what, Grandfather?" 

"Only don't want to stay too long.  That is, don't fall in love  with New York so hard that you forget there is

such a place as  South  Harniss." 

Albert smiled.  "I've been in places farther away than New York,"  he said, "and I never forgot South Harniss." 

"Umhm. . . .  Well, I shouldn't be surprised if that was so.  But  you'll have better company in New York than

you did in some of  those  places.  Give my regards to Fosdick.  Solong, Al." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XV 176



Top




Page No 179


CHAPTER XVI

The Fosdick car was at the Grand Central Station when the  Knickerbocker Limited pulled in.  And Madeline,

a wonderfully  furred  and veiled and hatted Madeline, was waiting there behind the  rail as  he came up the

runway from the train.  It was amazing the  fact that it  was really she.  It was more amazing still to kiss her

there in  public, to hold her hand without fear that some one might  see.  To 

"Shall I take your bags, sir?" 

It was the Fosdick footman who asked it.  Albert started guiltily.  Then he laughed, realizing that the

handholding and the rest were  no  longer criminal offenses.  He surrendered his luggage to the  man.  A  few

minutes later he and Madeline were in the limousine,  which was  moving rapidly up the Avenue.  And

Madeline was asking  questions and  he was answering andand still it was all a dream.  It COULDN'T be

real. 

It was even more like a dream when the limousine drew up before the  door of the Fosdick home and they

entered that home together.  For  there was Mrs. Fosdick, as ever majestic, commanding, aweinspiring,  the

same Mrs. Fosdick who had, in her letter to his grandfather,  written him down a despicable, underhanded

sneak, here was that same  Mrs. Fosdickbut not at all the same.  For this lady was smiling  and  gracious,

welcoming him to her home, addressing him by his  Christian  name, treating him kindly, with almost

motherly tenderness.  Madeline's  letters and Mrs. Fosdick's own letters received during  his  convalescence

abroad had prepared him, or so he had thought, for  some  such change.  Now he realized that he had not been

prepared at  all.  The reality was so much more revolutionary than the  anticipation that  he simply could not

believe it. 

But it was not so very wonderful if he had known all the facts and  had been in a frame of mind to calmly

analyze them.  Mrs. Fletcher  Fosdick was a seasoned veteran, a general who had planned and  fought  many

hard campaigns upon the political battlegrounds of  women's clubs  and societies of various sorts.  From the

majority of  those campaigns  she had emerged victorious, but her experiences in  defeat had taught  her that the

next best thing to winning is to  lose gracefully, because  by so doing much which appears to be lost  may be

regained.  For Albert  Speranza, bookkeeper and wouldbe poet  of South Harniss, Cape Cod, she  had had no

use whatever as a  prospective soninlaw.  Even toward a  living Albert Speranza, hero  and newspapermade

genius, she might have  been cold.  But when that  hero and genius was, as she and every one  else supposed,

safely and  satisfactorily dead and out of the way, she  had seized the  opportunity to bask in the radiance of his

memory.  She  had talked  Albert Speranza and read Albert Speranza and boasted of  Albert  Speranza's

engagement to her daughter before the world.  Now  that  the said Albert Speranza had been inconsiderate

enough to "come  alive again," there was but one thing for her to dothat is, to  make  the best of it.  And when

Mrs. Fletcher Fosdick made the best  of  anything she made the very best. 

"It doesn't make any difference," she told her husband, "whether he  really is a genius or whether he isn't.  We

have said he is and now  we must keep on saying it.  And if he can't earn his salt by his  writingswhich he

probably can'tthen you must fix it in some way  so that he can makebelieve earn it by something else.  He

is  engaged  to Madeline, and we have told every one that he is, so he  will have to  marry her; at least, I see no

way to prevent it." 

"Humph!" grunted Fosdick.  "And after that I'll have to support  them, I suppose." 

"Probablyunless you want your only child to starve." 

"Well, I must say, Henrietta" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVI 177



Top




Page No 180


"You needn't, for there is nothing more TO say.  We're in it and,  whether we like it or not, we must make the

best of it.  To do  anything now except appear joyful about it would be to make  ourselves  perfectly ridiculous.

We can't do that, and you know  it." 

Her husband still looked everything but contented. 

"So far as the young fellow himself goes," he said, "I like him,  rather.  I've talked with him only once, of

course, and then he and  I  weren't agreeing exactly.  But I liked him, nevertheless.  If he  were  anything but a

fool poet I should be more reconciled." 

He was snubbed immediately.  "THAT," declared Mrs. Fosdick, with  decision, "is the only thing that makes

him possible." 

So Mrs. Fosdick's welcome was wholehanded if not wholehearted.  And her husband's also was cordial and

intimate.  The only member  of  the Fosdick household who did not regard the guest with favor  was  Googoo.

That aristocratic bullpup was still irreconcilably  hostile.  When Albert attempted to pet him he appeared to

be  planning to devour  the caressing hand, and when rebuked by his  mistress retired beneath a  davenport,

growling ominously.  Even  when ignominiously expelled from  the room he growled and cast  longing

backward glances at the Speranza  ankles.  No, Googoo did  not dissemble; Albert was perfectly sure of  his

standing in  Googoo's estimation. 

Dinner that evening was a trifle more formal than he had expected,  and he was obliged to apologize for the

limitations of his  wardrobe.  His dress suit of former days he had found much too  dilapidated for  use.  Besides,

he had outgrown it. 

"I thought I was thinner," he said, "and I think I am.  But I must  have broadened a bit.  At any rate, all the

coats I left behind  won't  do at all.  I shall have to do what Captain Snow, my  grandfather,  calls 'refit' here in

New York.  In a day or two I  hope to be more  presentable." 

Mrs. Fosdick assured him that it was quite all right, really.  Madeline asked why he didn't wear his uniform.  "I

was dying to see  you in it," she said.  "Just think, I never have." 

Albert laughed.  "You have been spared," he told her.  "Mine was  not a triumph, so far as fit was concerned.

Of course, I had a  complete new rig when I came out of the hospital, but even that was  not beautiful.  It

puckered where it should have bulged and bulged  where it should have been smooth." 

Madeline professed not to believe him. 

"Nonsense!" she declared.  "I don't believe it.  Why, almost all  the fellows I know have been in uniform for the

past two years and  theirs fitted beautifully." 

"But they were officers, weren't they, and their uniforms were  custom made." 

"Why, I suppose so.  Aren't all uniforms custom made?" 

Her father laughed.  "Scarcely, Maddie," he said.  "The privates  have their custommade by the mile and cut

off in chunks for the  individual.  That was about it, wasn't it, Speranza?" 

"Just about, sir." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVI 178



Top




Page No 181


Mrs. Fosdick evidently thought that the conversation was taking a  rather low tone.  She elevated it by asking

what his thoughts were  when taken prisoner by the Germans.  He looked puzzled. 

"Thoughts, Mrs. Fosdick?" he repeated.  "I don't know that I  understand, exactly.  I was only partly conscious

and in a good  deal  of pain and my thoughts were rather incoherent, I'm afraid." 

"But when you regained consciousness, you know.  What were your  thoughts then?  Did you realize that you

had made the great  sacrifice  for your country?  Risked your life and forfeited your  liberty and all  that for the

cause?  Wasn't it a great satisfaction  to feel that you  had done that?" 

Albert's laugh was hearty and unaffected.  "Why, no," he said.  "I  think what I was realizing most just then was

that I had made a  miserable mess of the whole business.  Failed in doing what I set  out  to do and been taken

prisoner besides.  I remember thinking,  when I  was clearheaded enough to think anything, 'You fool, you

spent months  getting into this war, and then got yourself out of it  in fifteen  minutes.'  And it WAS a silly trick,

too." 

Madeline was horrified. 

"What DO you mean?" she cried.  "Your going back there to rescue  your comrade a silly trick!  The very thing

that won you your Croix  de Guerre?" 

"Why, yes, in a way.  I didn't save Mike, poor fellow" 

"Mike!  Was his name Mike?" 

"Yes; Michael Francis Xavier Kelly.  A South Boston Mick he was,  and one of the finest, squarest boys that

ever drew breath.  Well,  poor Mike was dead when I got to him, so my trip had been for  nothing, and if he had

been alive I could not have prevented his  being taken.  As it was, he was dead and I was a prisoner.  So

nothing was gained and, for me, personally, a good deal was lost.  It  wasn't a brilliant thing to do.  But," he

added apologetically,  "a  chap doesn't have time to think collectively in such a scrape.  And it  was my first real

scrap and I was frightened half to death,  besides." 

"Frightened!  Why, I never heard anything so ridiculous!  What" 

"One moment, Madeline."  It was Mrs. Fosdick who interrupted.  "I  want to askerAlbert a question.  I

want to ask him if during  his  long imprisonment he composedwrote, you know.  I should have  thought  the

sights and experiences would have forced one to express  one's  selfthat is, one to whom the gift of

expression was so  generously  granted," she added, with a gracious nod. 

Albert hesitated. 

"Why, at first I did," he said.  "When I first was well enough to  think, I used to try to writeverses.  I wrote a

good many.  Afterwards I tore them up." 

"Tore them up!"  Both Mrs. and Miss Fosdick uttered this  exclamation. 

"Why, yes.  You see, they were such rot.  The things I wanted to  write about, the things _I_ had seen and was

seeing, thethe  fellows  like Mike and their pluck and all thatwell, it was all  too big for  me to tackle.  My

jingles sounded, when I read them  over, like tunes  on a street piano. _I_ couldn't do it.  A genius  might have

been equal  to the job, but I wasn't." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVI 179



Top




Page No 182


Mrs. Fosdick glanced at her husband.  There was something of  alarmed apprehension in the glance.

Madeline's next remark covered  the situation.  It expressed the absolute truth, so much more of  the  truth than

even the young lady herself realized at the time. 

"Why, Albert Speranza," she exclaimed, "I never heard you speak of  yourself and your work in that way

before.  AlwaysALWAYS you have  had such complete, such splendid confidence in yourself.  You were

never afraid to attempt ANYTHING.  You MUST not talk so.  Don't you  intend to write any more?" 

Albert looked at her.  "Oh, yes, indeed," he said simply.  "That is  just what I do intend to door try to do." 

That evening, alone in the library, he and Madeline had their first  long, intimate talk, the first since those

daysto him they seemed  as far away as the last centurywhen they walked the South Harniss  beach

together, walked beneath the rainbows and dreamed.  And now  here was their dream coming true. 

Madeline, he was realizing it as he looked at her, was prettier  than ever.  She had grown a little older, of

course, a little more  mature, but surprisingly little.  She was still a girl, a very,  very  pretty girl and a charming

girl.  And he 

"What are you thinking about?" she demanded suddenly. 

He came to himself.  "I was thinking about you," he said.  "You are  just as you used to be, just as charming

and just as sweet.  You  haven't changed." 

She smiled and then pouted. 

"I don't know whether to like that or not," she said.  "Did you  expect to find me lesscharming and the rest?" 

"Why, no, of course not.  That was clumsy on my part.  What I meant  was thatwell, it seems ages, centuries,

since we were together  there on the Capeand yet you have not changed." 

She regarded him reflectively. 

"You have," she said. 

"Have what?" 

"Changed.  You have changed a good deal.  I don't know whether I  like it or not.  Perhaps I shall be more

certain by and by.  Now  show  me your war cross.  At least you have brought that, even if  you  haven't brought

your uniform." 

He had the cross in his pocketbook and he showed it to her.  She  enthused over it, of course, and wished he

might wear it even when  in  citizen's clothes.  She didn't see why he couldn't.  And it was  SUCH a  pity he could

not be in uniform.  Captain Blanchard had  called the  evening before, to see Mother about some war charities

she was  interested in, and he was still in uniform and wearing his  decorations, too.  Albert suggested that

probably Blanchard was  still  in service.  Yes, she believed he was, but she could not see  why that  should

make the difference.  Albert had BEEN in service. 

He laughed at this and attempted to explain.  She seemed to resent  the attempt or the tone. 

"I do wish," she said almost pettishly, "that you wouldn't be so  superior." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVI 180



Top




Page No 183


He was surprised.  "Superior!" he repeated.  "Superior!  I?  Superiority is the very least of my feelings.

Isuperior!  That's  a  joke." 

And, oddly enough, she resented that even more.  "Why is it a  joke?" she demanded.  "I should think you had

the right to feel  superior to almost any one.  A heroand a genius!  You ARE  superior." 

However, the little flurry was but momentary, and she was all  sweetness and smiles when she kissed him

good night.  He was shown  to  his room by a servant and amid its array of comfortsto him,  fresh  from

France and the camp and his old room at South Harniss,  it was  luxuriously magnificenthe sat for some

time thinking.  His  thoughts  should have been happy ones, yet they were not entirely  so.  This is a  curiously

unsatisfactory world, sometimes. 

The next day he went shopping.  Fosdick had given him a card to his  own tailor and Madeline had given him

the names of several shops  where, so she declared, he could buy the right sort of ties and  things.  From the

tailor's Albert emerged looking a trifle dazed;  after a visit to two of the shops the dazed expression was even

more  pronounced.  His next visits were at establishments farther  downtown  and not as exclusive.  He returned

to the Fosdick home  feeling fairly  well satisfied with the results achieved.  Madeline,  however, did not  share

his satisfaction. 

"But Dad sent you to his tailor," she said.  "Why in the world  didn't you order your evening clothes there?

And Brett has the  most  stunning ties.  Every one says so.  Instead you buy yours at a  department store.  Now

why?" 

He smiled.  "My dear girl," he said, "your father's tailor  estimated that he might make me a very passable

dress suit for one  hundred and seventyfive dollars.  Brett's ties were stunning, just  as you say, but the prices

ranged from five to eight dollars, which  was more stunning still.  For a young person from the country out  of  a

job, which is my condition at present, such things may be  looked at  but not handled.  I can't afford them." 

She tossed her head.  "What nonsense!" she exclaimed.  "You're not  out of a job, as you call it.  You are a

writer and a famous  writer.  You have written one book and you are going to write more.  Besides,  you must

have made heaps of money from The Lances.  Every  one has been  reading it." 

When he told her the amount of his royalty check she expressed the  opinion that the publisher must have

cheated.  It ought to have  been  ever and ever so much more than that.  Such wonderful poems! 

The next day she went to Brett's and purchased a half dozen of the  most expensive ties, which she presented

to him forthwith. 

"There!" she demanded.  "Aren't those nicer than the ones you  bought at that old department store?  Well,

then!" 

"But, Madeline, I must not let you buy my ties." 

"Why not?  It isn't such an unheardof thing for an engaged girl to  give her fiance a necktie." 

"That isn't the idea.  I should have bought ties like those myself,  but I couldn't afford them.  Now for you

to" 

"Nonsense!  You talk as if you were a beggar.  Don't be so silly." 

"But, Madeline" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVI 181



Top




Page No 184


"Stop!  I don't want to hear it." 

She rose and went out of the room.  She looked as if she were on  the verge of tears.  He felt obliged to accept

the gift, but he  disliked the principle of the things as much as ever.  When she  returned she was very talkative

and gay and chatted all through  luncheon.  The subject of the ties was not mentioned again by  either  of them.

He was glad he had not told her that his new dress  suit was  readymade. 

While in France, awaiting his return home, he had purchased a ring  and sent it to her.  She was wearing it, of

course.  Compared with  other articles of jewelry which she wore from time to time, his  ring  made an

extremely modest showing.  She seemed quite unaware of  the  discrepancy, but he was aware of it. 

On an evening later in the week Mrs. Fosdick gave a reception.  "Quite an informal affair," she said, in

announcing her intention.  "Just a few intimate friends to meet Mr. Speranza, that is all.  Mostly lovers of

literaturediscerning people, if I may say so." 

The quite informal affair looked quite formidably formal to Albert.  The few intimate friends were many, so it

seemed to him.  There was  still enough of the former Albert Speranza left in his makeup to  prevent his

appearing in the least distressed or ill at ease.  He  was, as he had always been when in the public eye, even as

far back  as the school dancingclasses with the Misses Bradshaw's young  ladies, perfectly selfpossessed,

charmingly polite, absolutely  selfassured.  And his good looks had not suffered during his years  of

imprisonment and suffering.  He was no longer a handsome boy,  but  he was an extraordinarily attractive and

distinguished man. 

Mrs. Fosdick marked his manner and appearance and breathed a sigh  of satisfaction.  Madeline noted them.

Her young friends of the  sex  noted them and whispered and looked approval.  What the young  men  thought

does not matter so much, perhaps.  One of these was the  Captain Blanchard, of whom Madeline had written

and spoken.  He was  a  tall, athletic chap, who looked well in his uniform, and whose  face  was that of a

healthy, cleanliving and cleanthinking young  American.  He and Albert shook hands and looked each other

over.  Albert decided  he should like Blanchard if he knew him better.  The  captain was not  talkative; in fact, he

seemed rather taciturn.  Maids and matrons  gushed when presented to the lion of the evening.  It scarcely

seemed  possible that they were actually meeting the  author of The Lances of  Dawn.  That wonderful book!

Those wonderful  poems!  "How CAN you  write them, Mr. Speranza?"  "When do your best  inspirations come,

Mr.  Speranza?"  "Oh, if I could write as you do I  should walk on air."  The matron who breathed the

lastquoted  ecstasy was distinctly  weighty; the mental picture of her pedestrian  trip through the  atmosphere

was interesting.  Albert's hand was  patted by the elderly  spinsters, young women's eyes lifted soulful  glances

to his. 

It was the sort of thing he would have revelled in three or four  years earlier.  Exactly the sort of thing he had

dreamed of when  the  majority of the poems they gushed over were written.  It was  much the  same thing he

remembered having seen his father undergo  in the days  when he and the opera singer were together.  And his

father had,  apparently, rather enjoyed it.  He realized all this  and he  realized, too, with a queer feeling that

it should be so,  that he did  not like it at all.  It was silly.  Nothing he had  written warranted  such extravagances.

Hadn't these people any  sense of proportion?  They bored him to desperation.  The sole  relief was the behavior

of  the men, particularly the middleaged or  elderly men, obviously  present through feminine compulsion.

They  seized his hand, moved it  up and down with a pumping motion,  uttered some stereotyped  prevarications

about their pleasure at  meeting him and their having  enjoyed his poems very much, and then  slid on in the

direction of the  refreshment room. 

And Albert, as he shook hands, bowed and smiled and was charmingly  affable, found his thoughts wandering

until they settled upon  Private  Mike Kelly and the picturesque language of the latter when  he, as  sergeant,

routed him out for guard duty.  Mike had not  gushed over him  nor called him a genius.  He had called him


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVI 182



Top




Page No 185


many  things, but not that. 

He was glad indeed when he could slip away for a dance with  Madeline.  He found her chatting gaily with

Captain Blanchard, who  had been her most recent partner.  He claimed her from the captain  and as he led her

out to the dance floor she whispered that she was  very proud of him.  "But I DO wish YOU could wear your

war cross,"  she added. 

The quite informal affair was the first of many quite as informally  formal.  Also Mrs. Fosdick's satellites and

friends of the literary  clubs and the war work societies seized the opportunity to make  much  of the heroic

author of The Lances of Dawn.  His society was  requested  at teas, at afternoon as well as evening gatherings.

He  would have  refused most of these invitations, but Madeline and her  mother seemed  to take his acceptance

for granted; in fact, they  accepted for him.  A  ghastly habit developed of asking him to read  a few of his own

poems  on these occasions.  "PLEASE, Mr. Speranza.  It will be such a treat,  and such an HONOR."  Usually a

particular  request was made that he  read "The Greater Love."  Now "The Greater  Love" was the poem which,

written in those rapturous days when he  and Madeline first became  aware of their mutual adoration, was

refused by one editor as a  "trifle too syrupy."  To read that  sticky effusion over and over again  became a

torment.  There were  occasions when if a man had referred to  "The Greater Love," its  author might have

howled profanely and offered  bodily violence.  But no men ever did refer to "The Greater Love." 

On one occasion when a sentimental matron and her gushing daughter  had begged to know if he did not

himself adore that poem, if he did  not consider it the best he had ever written, he had answered  frankly.  He

was satiated with cake and tea and compliments that  evening and recklessly truthful.  "You really wish to

know my  opinion  of that poem?" he asked.  Indeed and indeed they really  wished to knew  just that thing.

"Well, then, I think it's rot," he  declared.  "I  loathe it." 

Of course mother and daughter were indignant.  Their comments  reached Madeline's ear.  She took him to

task. 

"But why did you say it?" she demanded.  "You know you don't mean  it." 

"Yes, I do mean it.  It IS rot.  Lots of the stuff in that book of  mine is rot.  I did not think so once, but I do now.

If I had the  book to make over again, that sort wouldn't be included." 

She looked at him for a moment as if studying a problem. 

"I don't understand you sometimes," she said slowly.  "You are  different.  And I think what you said to Mrs.

Bacon and Marian was  very rude." 

Later when he went to look for her he found her seated with Captain  Blanchard in a corner.  They were eating

ices and, apparently,  enjoying themselves.  He did not disturb them.  Instead he hunted  up  the offended Bacons

and apologized for his outbreak.  The  apology,  although graciously accepted, had rather wearisome

consequences.  Mrs.  Bacon declared she knew that he had not really  meant what he said. 

"I realize how it must be," she declared.  "You people of  temperament, of genius, of aspirations, are never

quite satisfied,  you cannot be.  You are always trying, always seeking the higher  attainment.  Achievements of

the past, though to the rest of us  wonderful and sublime, are to youas you say, 'rot.'  That is it,  is  it not?"

Albert said he guessed it was, and wandered away,  seeking  seclusion and solitude.  When the affair broke up

he found  Madeline  and Blanchard still enjoying each other's society.  Both  were  surprised when told the hour. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVI 183



Top




Page No 186


CHAPTER XVII

So the first three weeks of his proposed month's visit passed and  the fourth began.  And more and more his

feelings of dissatisfaction  and uneasiness increased.  The reasons for those feelings he found  hard to define.

The Fosdicks were most certainly doing their best  to  make him comfortable and happy.  They were

kindyes, more than  kind.  Mr. Fosdick he really began to like.  Mrs. Fosdick's manner  had a  trace of

condescension in it, but as the lady treated all  creation  with much the same measure of condescension, he was

more  amused than  resentful.  And MadelineMadeline was sweet and  charming and  beautiful.  There was in

her manner toward him, or so  he fancied, a  slight change, perhaps a change a trifle more marked  since the

evening  when his expressed opinion of "The Greater Love"  had offended her and  the Bacons.  It seemed to

him that she was more  impatient, more  capricious, sometimes almost overwhelming him with  attention and

tenderness and then appearing to forget him entirely  and to be quite  indifferent to his thoughts and opinions.

Her moods  varied greatly  and there were occasions when he found it almost  impossible to please  her.  At

these times she took offense when no  offense was intended and  he found himself apologizing when, to say

the least, the fault, if  there was any, was not more than half his.  But she always followed  those moods with

others of contrition and  penitence and then he was  petted and fondled and his forgiveness  implored. 

These slight changes in her he noticed, but they troubled him  little, principally because he was coming to

realize the great  change  in himself.  More and more that change was forcing itself  upon him.  The stories and

novels he had read during the first  years of the war,  the stories by English writers in which young  men,

frivolous and  inconsequential, had enlisted and fought and  emerged from the ordeal  strong, purposeful and

"madeover"those  stories recurred to him now.  He had paid little attention to the  "makingover" idea

when he read  those tales, but now he was forced  to believe there might be something  in it.  Certainly

something,  the three years or the discipline and  training and suffering, or  all combined, had changed him.  He

was not  as he used to be.  Things he liked very much he no longer liked at all.  And where,  oh where, was the

serene selfsatisfaction which once was  his? 

The change must be quite individual, he decided.  All soldiers were  not so affected.  Take Blanchard, for

instance.  Blanchard had seen  service, more and quite as hard fighting as he had seen, but  Blanchard was, to

all appearances, as lighthearted and serene and  confident as ever.  Blanchard was like Madeline; he was

much the  same  now as he had been before the war.  Blanchard could dance and  talk  small talk and laugh and

enjoy himself.  Well, so could he, on  occasions, for that matter, if that had been all.  But it was not  all, or if it

was why was he at other times so discontented and  uncomfortable?  What was the matter with him, anyway? 

He drew more and more into his shell and became more quiet and less  talkative.  Madeline, in one of her

moods, reproached him for it. 

"I do wish you wouldn't be grumpy," she said. 

They had been sitting in the library and he had lapsed into a fit  of musing, answering her questions with

absentminded monosyllables.  Now he looked up. 

"Grumpy?" he repeated.  "Was I grumpy?  I beg your pardon." 

"You should.  You answered every word I spoke to you with a grunt  or a growl.  I might as well have been

talking to a bear." 

"I'm awfully sorry, dear.  I didn't feel grumpy.  I was thinking, I  suppose." 

"Thinking!  You are always thinking.  Why think, pray? . . .  If I  permitted myself to think, I should go insane." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVII 184



Top




Page No 187


"Madeline, what do you mean?" 

"Oh, nothing.  I'm partially insane now, perhaps.  Come, let's go  to the piano.  I feel like playing.  You don't

mind, do you?" 

That evening Mrs. Fosdick made a suggestion to her husband. 

"Fletcher," she said, "I am inclined to think it is time you and  Albert had a talk concerning the future.  A

business talk, I mean.  I  am a little uneasy about him.  From some things he has said to me  recently I gather

that he is planning to earn his living with his  pen." 

"Well, how else did you expect him to earn it; as bookkeeper for  the South Harniss lumber concern?" 

"Don't be absurd.  What I mean is that he is thinking of devoting  himself to literature exclusively.  Don't

interrupt me, please.  That  is very beautiful and very idealistic, and I honor him for it,  but I  cannot see

Madeline as an attic poet's wife, can you?" 

"I can't, and I told you so in the beginning." 

"No.  Therefore I should take him to one side and tell him of the  opening in your firm.  With that as a means of

keeping his feet on  the ground his brain may soar as it likes, the higher the better." 

Mr. Fosdick, as usual, obeyed orders and that afternoon Albert and  he had the "business talk."  Conversation

at dinner was somewhat  strained.  Mr. Fosdick was quietly observant and seemed rather  amused  about

something.  His wife was dignified and her manner  toward her  guest was inclined to be abrupt.  Albert's

appetite was  poor.  As for  Madeline, she did not come down to dinner, having a  headache. 

She came down later, however.  Albert, alone in the library, was  sitting, a book upon his knees and his eyes

fixed upon nothing in  particular, when she came in. 

"You are thinking again, I see," she said. 

He had not heard her enter.  Now he rose, the book falling to the  floor. 

"Whywhy, yes," he stammered.  "How are you feeling?  How is your  head?" 

"It is no worse.  And no better.  I have been thinking, too, which  perhaps explains it.  Sit down, Albert, please.  I

want to talk  with  you.  That is what I have been thinking about, that you and I  must  talk." 

She seated herself upon the davenport and he pulled forward a chair  and sat facing her.  For a moment she was

silent.  When she did  speak, however, her question was very much to the point. 

"Why did you say 'No' to Father's offer?" she asked.  He had been  expecting this very question, or one leading

up to it.  Nevertheless,  he found answering difficult.  He hesitated, and she watched him,  her  impatience

growing. 

"Well?" she asked. 

He sighed.  "Madeline," he said, "I am afraid you think me very  unreasonable, certainly very ungrateful." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVII 185



Top




Page No 188


"I don't know what to think about you.  That is why I feel we must  have this talk.  Tell me, please, just what

Father said to you this  afternoon." 

"He saidwell, the substance of what he said was to offer me a  position in his office, in his firm." 

"What sort of a position?" 

"Well, II scarcely know.  I was to have a desk there andand be  generallyornamental, I suppose.  It was

not very definite, the  details of the position, but" 

"The salary was good, wasn't it?" 

"Yes; more than good.  Much too good for the return I could make  for it, so it seemed to me." 

"And your prospects for the future?  Wasn't the offer what people  call a good opportunity?" 

"Why, yes, I suppose it was.  For the right sort of man it would  have been a wonderful opportunity.  Your

father was most kind, most  generous, Madeline.  Please don't think I am not appreciative.  I  am,  but" 

"Don't.  I want to understand it all.  He offered you this  opportunity, this partnership in his firm, and you

would not  accept  it?  Why?  Don't you like my father?" 

"Yes, I like him very much." 

"Didn't you," with the slightest possible curl of the lip, "think  the offer worthy of you? . . .  Oh, I don't mean

that!  Please  forgive me.  I am trying not to be disagreeable.  II just want to  understand, Albert, that's all." 

He nodded.  "I know, Madeline," he said.  "You have the right to  ask.  It wasn't so much a question of the offer

being worthy of me  as  of my being worthy the offer.  Oh, Madeline, why should you and  I  pretend?  You

know why Mr. Fosdick made me that offer.  It wasn't  because I was likely to be worth ten dollars a year to his

firm.  In  Heaven's name, what use would I be in a stockbroker's office,  with my  makeup, with my lack of

business ability?  He would be  making a place  for me there and paying me a high salary for one  reason only,

and you  know what that is.  Now don't you?" 

She hesitated now, but only for an instant.  She colored a little,  but she answered bravely. 

"I suppose I do," she said, "but what of it?  It is not unheard of,  is it, the taking one's prospective soninlaw

into partnership?" 

"No, but  We're dodging the issue again, Madeline.  If I were  likely to be of any help to your father's

business, instead of a  hindrance, I might perhaps see it differently.  As it is, I  couldn't  accept unless I were

willing to be an object of charity." 

"Did you tell Father that?" 

"Yes." 

"What did he say?" 

"He said a good deal.  He was frank enough to say that he did not  expect me to be of great assistance to the

firm.  But I might be of  SOME usehe didn't put it as baldly as that, of courseand at all  times I could keep


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVII 186



Top




Page No 189


on with my writing, with my poetry, you know.  The  brokerage business should not interfere with my poetry,

he  said; your  mother would scalp him if it did that." 

She smiled faintly.  "That sounds like dad," she commented. 

"Yes.  Well, we talked and argued for some time on the subject.  He  asked me what, supposing I did not accept

this offer of his,  my plans  for the future might be.  I told him they were pretty  unsettled as  yet.  I meant to

write, of course.  Not poetry  altogether.  I  realized, I told him, that I was not a great poet, a  poet of genius." 

Madeline interrupted.  Her eyes flashed. 

"Why do you say that?" she demanded.  "I have heard you say it  before.  That is, recently.  In the old days you

were as sure as  I  that you were a real poet, or should be some day.  You never  doubted  it.  You used to tell me

so and I loved to hear you." 

Albert shook his head.  "I was sure of so many things then," he  said.  "I must have been an insufferable kid." 

She stamped her foot.  "It was less than three years ago that you  said it," she declared.  "You are not so

frightfully ancient  now. . .  .  Well, go on, go on.  How did it end, the talk with  Father, I mean?" 

"I told him," he continued, "that I meant to write and to earn my  living by writing.  I meant to try magazine

workstories, you  knowand, soon, a novel.  He asked if earning enough to support a  wife on would not be

a long job at that time.  I said I was afraid  it  might, but that that seemed to me my particular game,

nevertheless." 

She interrupted again.  "Did it occur to you to question whether or  not that determination of yours was quite

fair to me?" she asked. 

"Whywhy, yes, it did.  And I don't know that it IS exactly fair  to you.  I" 

"Never mind.  Go on.  Tell me the rest.  How did it end?" 

"Well, it ended in a sort of flareup.  Mr. Fosdick was just a  little bit sarcastic, and I expressed my feelings

rather freely  too  freely, I'm afraid." 

"Never mind.  I want to know what you said." 

"To be absolutely truthful, then, this is what I said:  I said that  I appreciated his kindness and was grateful for

the offer.  But my  mind was made up.  I would not live upon his charity and draw a  large  salary for doing

nothing except be a little, damned tame  housepoet  led around in leash and exhibited at his wife's club

meetings. . . .  That was about all, I think.  We shook hands at  the end.  He didn't  seem to like me any the less

for . . .  Why,  Madeline, have I offended  you?  My language was pretty strong, I  know, but" 

She had bowed her head upon her arms amid the sofa cushions and was  crying.  He sprang to his feet and bent

over her. 

"Why, Madeline," he said again, "I beg your pardon.  I'm sorry" 

"Oh, it isn't that," she sobbed.  "It isn't that.  I don't care  what you said." 

"What is it, then?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVII 187



Top




Page No 190


She raised her head and looked at him. 

"It is you," she cried.  "It is myself.  It is everything.  It is  all wrong.  II was so happy andand now I am

miserable.  Ohoh,  I  wish I were dead!" 

She threw herself upon the cushions again and wept hysterically.  He stood above her, stroking her hair, trying

to soothe her, to  comfort her, and all the time he felt like a brute, a heartless  beast.  At last she ceased crying,

sat up and wiped her eyes with  her  handkerchief. 

"There!" she exclaimed.  "I will not be silly any longer.  I won't  be!  I WON'T! . . .  Now tell me:  Why have you

changed so?" 

He looked down at her and shook his head.  He was conscience  stricken and fully as miserable as she

professed to be. 

"I don't know," he said.  "I am older andandand I DON'T see  things as I used to.  If that book of mine had

appeared three years  ago I have no doubt I should have believed it to be the greatest  thing ever printed.  Now,

when people tell me it is and I read what  the reviewers said and all that, II DON'T believe, I KNOW it  isn't

greatthat is, the most of it isn't.  There is some pretty  good  stuff, of course, but  You see, I think it wasn't

the poems  themselves that made it sell; I think it was all the fool tommyrot  the papers printed about me,

about my being a hero and all that  rubbish, when they thought I was dead, you know.  That" 

She interrupted.  "Oh, don't!" she cried.  "Don't!  I don't care  about the old book.  I'm not thinking about that.

I'm thinking  about  you.  YOU aren't the samethe same toward me." 

"Toward you, Madeline?  I don't understand what you mean." 

"Yes, you do.  Of course you do.  If you were the same as you used  to be, you would let Father help you.  We

used to talk about that  very thing andand you didn't resent it then." 

"Didn't I?  Well, perhaps I didn't.  But I think I remember our  speaking sometimes of sacrificing everything for

each other.  We  were  to live in poverty, if necessary, and I was to write, you  know, and" 

"Stop!  All that was nonsense, nonsense! you know it." 

"Yes, I'm afraid it was." 

"You know it was.  And if you were as you used to be, if you" 

"Madeline!" 

"What?  Why did you interrupt me?" 

"Because I wanted to ask you a question.  Do you think YOU are  exactly the sameas you used to be?" 

"What do you mean?" 

"Haven't YOU changed a little?  Are you as sure as you were then  as sure of your feeling toward me?" 

She gazed at him, wideeyed.  "WHAT do you mean?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVII 188



Top




Page No 191


"I mean ARE you sure?  It has seemed to me that perhapsI was out  of your life for a long time, you know,

and during a good deal of  that time it seemed certain that I had gone forever.  I am not  blaming you, goodness

knows, butMadeline, isn't there  Well, if  I  hadn't come back, mightn't there have been some oneelse?" 

She turned pale. 

"What do" she stammered, inarticulate.  "Why, why" 

"It was Captain Blanchard, wasn't it?" 

The color came back to her cheeks with a rush.  She blushed  furiously and sprang to her feet. 

"Howhow can you say such things!" she cried.  "What do you mean?  How DARE you say Captain

Blanchard took advantage of  Howhow  DARE  you say I was not loyal to you?  It is not true.  It is not

true.  I  was.  I am.  There hasn't been a worda word between us  sincesince  the news came that you

were  I told himI said  And he has been  splendid!  Splendid!  And now you say  Oh, what  AM I

saying?  What  SHALL I do?" 

She collapsed once more among the cushions.  He leaned forward. 

"My dear girl" he began, but she broke in. 

"I HAVEN'T been disloyal," she cried.  "I have tried  Oh, I have  tried so hard" 

"Hush, Madeline, hush.  I understand.  I understand perfectly.  It  is all right, really it is." 

"And I should have kept on trying alwaysalways." 

"Yes, dear, yes.  But do you think a married life with so much  trying in it likely to be a happy one?  It is better

to know it  now,  isn't it, a great deal better for both of us?  Madeline, I am  going to  my room.  I want you to

think, to think over all this, and  then we  will talk again.  I don't blame you.  I don't, dear,  really.  I think  I

realize everythingall of it.  Good night,  dear." 

He stooped and kissed her.  She sobbed, but that was all.  The next  morning a servant came to his room with a

parcel and a letter.  The  parcel was a tiny one.  It was the ring he had given her, in its  case.  The letter was short

and much blotted.  It read: 

Dear Albert: 

I have thought and thought, as you told me to, and I have concluded  that you were right.  It IS best to know it

now.  Forgive me,  please,  PLEASE.  I feel wicked and horrid and I HATE myself, but I  think this  is best.  Oh,

do forgive me.  Goodby. 

MADELINE. 

His reply was longer.  At its end he wrote: 

Of course I forgive you.  In the first place there is nothing to  forgive.  The unforgivable thing would have been

the sacrifice of  your happiness and your future to a dream and a memory.  I hope you  will be very happy.  I am

sure you will be, for Blanchard is, I  know,  a fine fellow.  The best of fortune to you both. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVII 189



Top




Page No 192


The next forenoon he sat once more in the car of the morning train  for Cape Cod, looking out of the window.

He had made the journey  from New York by the night boat and had boarded the Cape train at  Middleboro.

All the previous day, and in the evening as he tramped  the cold windswept deck of the steamer, he had been

trying to  collect his thoughts, to readjust them to the new situation, to  comprehend in its entirety the great

change that had come in his  life.  The vague plans, the happy indefinite dreams, all the  rainbows  and roses had

gone, shivered to bits like the reflection  in a broken  mirror.  Madeline, his Madeline, was his no longer.  Nor

was he hers.  In a way it seemed impossible. 

He tried to analyze his feelings.  It seemed as if he should have  been crushed, griefstricken, broken.  He was

inclined to reproach  himself because he was not.  Of course there was a sadness about  it,  a regret that the

wonder of those days of love and youth had  passed.  But the sorrow was not bitter, the regret was but a  wistful

longing,  the sweet, lingering fragrance of a memory, that  was all.  Toward her,  Madeline, he feltand it

surprised him, too,  to find that he  feltnot the slightest trace of resentment.  And  more surprising  still he felt

none toward Blanchard.  He had meant  what he said in his  letter, he wished for them both the greatest

happiness. 

Andthere was no use attempting to shun the facthis chief  feeling, as he sat there by the car window

looking out at the  familiar landscape, was a great relief, a consciousness of escape  from what might have

been a miserable, crushing mistake for him and  for her.  And with this a growing sense of freedom, of

buoyancy.  It  seemed wicked to feel like that.  Then it came to him, the  thought  that Madeline, doubtless, was

experiencing the same  feeling.  And he  did not mind a bit; he hoped she was, bless her! 

A youthful cigar "drummer," on his first DownEast trip, sat down  beside him. 

"Kind of a flat, bare country, ain't it?" observed the drummer,  with a jerk of his head toward the window.

"Looks bleak enough to  me.  Know anything about this neck of the woods, do you?" 

Albert turned to look at him. 

"Meaning the Cape?" he asked. 

"Sure." 

"Indeed I do.  I know all about it." 

"That so!  Say, you sound as if you liked it." 

Albert turned back to the window again. 

"Like it!" he repeated.  "I love it."  Then he sighed, a sigh of  satisfaction, and added:  "You see, I BELONG

here." 

His grandparents and Rachel were surprised when he walked into the  house that noon and announced that he

hoped dinner was ready,  because  he was hungry.  But their surprise was more than balanced  by their  joy.

Captain Zelotes demanded to know how long he was  going to stay. 

"As long as you'll have me, Grandfather," was the answer. 

"Eh?  Well, that would be a consider'ble spell, if you left it to  us, but I cal'late that girl in New York will have

somethin' to say  as to time limit, won't she?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVII 190



Top




Page No 193


Albert smiled.  "I'll tell you about that by and by," he said. 

He did not tell them until that evening after supper.  It was  Friday evening and Olive was going to

prayermeeting, but she  delayed  "putting on her things" to hear the tale.  The news that  the  engagement was

off and that her grandson was not, after all, to  wed  the daughter of the Honorable Fletcher Fosdick, shocked

and  grieved  her not a little. 

"Oh, dear!" she sighed.  "I suppose you know what's best, Albert,  and maybe, as you say, you wouldn't have

been happy, but I DID feel  sort of proud to think my boy was goin' to marry a millionaire's  daughter." 

Captain Zelotes made no commentthen.  He asked to be told more  particulars.  Albert described the life at

the Fosdick home, the  receptions, his enforced exhibitions and readings.  At length the  recital reached the

point of the interview in Fosdick's office. 

"So he offered you to take you into the firmeh, son?" he  observed. 

"Yes, sir." 

"Humph!  Fosdick, Williamson and Hendricks are one of the biggest  brokerage houses goin', so a good many

New Yorkers have told me." 

"No doubt.  But, Grandfather, you've had some experience with me  as a business man; how do you think I

would fit into a firm of  stockbrokers?" 

Captain Lote's eye twinkled, but he did not answer the question.  Instead he asked: 

"Just what did you give Fosdick as your reason for not sayin' yes?" 

Albert laughed.  "Well, Grandfather," he said, "I'll tell you.  I  said that I appreciated his kindness and all that,

but that I would  not draw a big salary for doing nothing except to be a little,  damned  tame housepoet led

around in leash and shown off at his  wife's club  meetings." 

Mrs. Snow uttered a faint scream.  "Oh, Albert!" she exclaimed.  She might have said more, but a shout from

her husband prevented  her  doing so. 

Captain Zelotes had risen and his mighty hand descended with a  stinging slap upon his grandson's shoulder. 

"Bully for you, boy!" he cried.  Then, turning to Olive, he added,  "Mother, I've always kind of cal'lated that

you had one man around  this house.  Now, by the Lord A'Mighty, I know you've got TWO!" 

Olive rose.  "Well," she declared emphatically, "that may be; but  if both those men are goin' to start in

swearin' right here in the  sittin' room, I think it's high time SOMEBODY in that family went  to  church." 

So to prayer meeting she went, with Mrs. Ellis as escort, and her  husband and grandson, seated in armchairs

before the sitting room  stove, both smoking, talked and talked, of the past and of the  futurenot as man to

boy, nor as grandparent to grandson, but for  the first time as equals, without reservations, as man to man. 

CHAPTER XVIII

The next morning Albert met old Mr. Kendall.  After breakfast  Captain Zelotes had gone, as usual, directly to


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 191



Top




Page No 194


the office.  His  grandson, however, had not accompanied him. 

"What are you cal'latin' to do this mornin', Al?" inquired the  captain. 

"Oh, I don't know exactly, Grandfather.  I'm going to look about  the place a bit, write a letter to my publishers,

and take a walk,  I  think.  You will probably see me at the office pretty soon.  I'll  look  in there by and by." 

"Ain't goin' to write one or two of those five hundred dollar  stories before dinner time, are you?" 

"I guess not, sir.  I'm afraid they won't be written as quickly as  all that." 

Captain Lote shook his head.  "Godfreys!" he exclaimed; "it ain't  the writin' of 'em I'd worry about so much as

the gettin' paid for  'em.  You're sure that editor man ain't crazy, you say?" 

"I hope he isn't.  He seemed sane enough when I saw him." 

"Well, I don't know.  It's live and learn, I suppose, but if  anybody but you had told me that magazine folks

paid as much as  five  hundred dollars a piece for yarns made up out of a feller's  head  without a word of truth

in 'em, I'dwell, I should have told  the  feller that told me to go to a doctor right off and have HIS  head

examined.  Butwell, as 'tis I cal'late I'd better have my  own looked  at.  So long, Al.  Come in to the office if

you get a  chance." 

He hurried out.  Albert walked to the window and watched the sturdy  figure swinging out of the yard.  He

wondered if, should he live to  his grandfather's age, his step would be as firm and his shoulders  as  square. 

Olive laid a hand on his arm. 

"You don't mind his talkin' that way about your writin' those  stories, do you, Albert?" she asked, a trace of

anxiety in her  tone.  "He don't mean it, you know.  He don't understand itsays  he don't  himselfbut he's

awful proud of you, just the same.  Why,  last night,  after you and he had finished talkin' and he came up to

bedand the  land knows what time of night or mornin' THAT washe  woke me out of a  sound sleep to tell

me about that New York  magazine man givin' you a  written order to write six stories for  his magazine at five

hundred  dollars a piece.  Zelotes couldn't  seem to get over it.  'Think of it,  Mother,' he kept sayin'.  'Think of it!

Pretty nigh twice what I pay  as good a man as Labe  Keeler for keepin' books a whole year.  And Al  says he

ought to do  a story every forni't.  I used to jaw his head  off, tellin' him he  was on the road to starvation and all

that.  Tut,  tut, tut!  Mother, I've waited a long time to say it, but it looks as  if you  married a fool.' . . .  That's the

way he talked, but he's a  long  ways from bein' a fool, your grandfather is, Albert." 

Albert nodded.  "No one knows that better than I," he said, with  emphasis. 

"There's one thing," she went on, "that kind of troubled me.  He  said you was goin' to insist on payin' board

here at home.  Now you  know this house is yours.  And we love to" 

He put his arm about her.  "I know it, Grandmother," he broke in,  quickly.  "But that is all settled.  I am going

to try to make my  own  living in my own way.  I am going to write and see what I am  really  worth.  I have my

royalty money, you know, most of it, and I  have this  order for the series of stories.  I can afford to pay for  my

keep and  I shall.  You see, as I told Grandfather last night, I  don't propose  to live on his charity any more than

on Mr. Fosdick's." 

She sighed. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 192



Top




Page No 195


"So Zelotes said," she admitted.  "He told me no less than three  times that you said it.  It seemed to tickle him

most to death, for  some reason, and that's queer, too, for he's anything but stingy.  But  there, I suppose you

can pay board if you want to, though who  you'll  pay it to is another thing.  _I_ shan't take a cent from the  only

grandson I've got in the world." 

It was while on his stroll down to the village that Albert met Mr.  Kendall.  The reverend gentleman was

plodding along carrying a  market  basket from the end of which, beneath a fragment of  newspaper, the  tail and

rear third of a huge codfish drooped.  The  basket and its  contents must have weighed at least twelve pounds

and the old minister  was, as Captain Zelotes would have said,  making heavy weather of it.  Albert went to his

assistance. 

"How do you do, Mr. Kendall," he said; "I'm afraid that basket is  rather heavy, isn't it.  Mayn't I help you with

it?"  Then, seeing  that the old gentleman did not recognize him, he added, "I am  Albert  Speranza." 

Down went the basket and the codfish and Mr. Kendall seized him by  both hands. 

"Why, of course, of course," he cried.  "Of course, of course.  It's our young hero, isn't it.  Our poet, our happy

warrior.  Yes,  yes, of course.  So glad to see you, Albert. . . .  Er . . . er . . .  How is your mother?" 

"You mean my grandmother?  She is very well, thank you." 

"Yeseryes, your grandmother, of course. . . .  Er . . . er. . .  .  Did you see my codfish?  Isn't it a

magnificent one.  I am very  fond of codfish and we almost never have it at home.  So just now,  I  happened to

be passing Jonathan Howes'he is theerfishdealer,  you  know, and . . . Jonathan is a very regular

attendant at my  Sunday  morning services.  He isis. . . .  Dear me. . . .  What  was I about  to say?" 

Being switched back to the main track by Albert he explained that  he had seen a number of cod in Mr.

Howes' possession and had bought  this specimen.  Howes had lent him the basket. 

"And the newspaper," he explained; adding, with triumph, "I shall  dine on codfish today, I am happy to

say."  Judging by appearances  he might dine and sup and breakfast on codfish and still have a  supply

remaining.  Albert insisted on carrying the spoil to the  parsonage.  He was doing nothing in particular and it

would be a  pleasure, he said.  Mr. Kendall protested for the first minute or  so  but then forgot just what the

protest was all about and rambled  garrulously on about affairs in the parish.  He had failed in other  faculties,

but his flow of language was still unimpeded.  They  entered the gate of the parsonage.  Albert put the basket

on the  upper step. 

"There," he said; "now I must go.  Good morning, Mr. Kendall." 

"Oh, but you aren't going?  You must come in a moment.  I want to  give you the manuscript of that sermon of

mine on the casting down  of  Baal, that is the one in which I liken the military power of  Germany  to the

brazen idol which. . . .  Just a moment, Albert.  The manuscript  is in my desk and. . . .  Oh, dear me, the door is

locked. . . .  Helen, Helen!" 

He was shaking the door and shouting his daughter's name.  Albert  was surprised and not a little disturbed.  It

had not occurred to  him  that Helen could be at home.  It is true that before he left  for New  York his

grandmother had said that she was planning to  return home to  be with her father, but since then he had heard

nothing more  concerning her.  Neither of his grandparents had  mentioned her name in  their letters, nor since

his arrival the day  before had they mentioned  it.  And Mr. Kendall had not spoken of  her during their walk

together.  Albert was troubled and taken  aback.  In one way he would have liked  to meet Helen very much

indeed.  They had not met since before the  war.  But he did not,  somehow, wish to meet her just then.  He did


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 193



Top




Page No 196


not  wish to meet  anyone who would speak of Madeline, or ask embarrassing  questions.  He turned to go. 

"Another time, Mr. Kendall," he said.  "Good morning." 

But he had gone only a few yards when the reverend gentleman was  calling to him to return. 

"Albert!  Albert!" called Mr. Kendall. 

He was obliged to turn back, he could do nothing else, and as he  did so the door opened.  It was Helen who

opened it and she stood  there upon the threshold and looked down at him.  For a moment, a  barely perceptible

interval, she looked, then he heard her catch  her  breath quickly and saw her put one hand upon the door jamb

as  if for  support.  The next, and she was running down the steps, her  hands  outstretched and the light of

welcome in her eyes. 

"Why, Albert Speranza!" she cried.  "Why, ALBERT!" 

He seized her hands.  "Helen!" he cried, and added involuntarily,  "My, but it's good to see you again!" 

She laughed and so did he.  All his embarrassment was gone.  They  were like two children, like the boy and

girl who had known each  other in the old days. 

"And when did you get here?" she asked.  "And what do you mean by  surprising us like this?  I saw your

grandfather yesterday morning  and he didn't say a word about your coming." 

"He didn't know I was coming.  I didn't know it myself until the  day before.  And when did you come?  Your

father didn't tell me you  were here.  I didn't know until I heard him call your name." 

He was calling it again.  Calling it and demanding attention for  his precious codfish. 

"Yes, Father, yes, in a minute, " she said.  Then to Albert, "Come  in.  Oh, of course you'll come in." 

"Why, yes, if I won't be interfering with the housekeeping." 

"You won't.  Yes, Father, yes, I'm coming.  Mercy, where did you  get such a wonderful fish?  Come in, Albert.

As soon as I get  Father's treasure safe in the hands of Maria I'll be back.  Father  will keep you company.  No,

pardon me, I am afraid he won't, he's  gone to the kitchen already.  And I shall have to go, too, for just  a

minute.  I'll hurry." 

She hastened to the kitchen, whither Mr. Kendall, tugging the fish  basket, had preceded her.  Albert entered

the little sittingroom  and  sat down in a chair by the window.  The room looked just as it  used to  look, just as

neat, just as homelike, just as well kept.  And when she  came back and they began to talk, it seemed to him

that she, too, was  just as she used to be.  She was a trifle less  girlish, more womanly  perhaps, but she was just

as good to look at,  just as bright and  cheerful and in her conversation she had the  same quietly certain way  of

dealing directly with the commonsense  realities and not the fuss  and feathers.  It seemed to him that she  had

not changed at all, that  she herself was one of the realities,  the wholesome home realities,  like Captain

Zelotes and Olive and  the old house they lived in.  He  told her so.  She laughed. 

"You make me feel as ancient as the pyramids," she said. 

He shook his head.  "I am the ancient," he declared.  "This war  hasn't changed you a particle, Helen, but it has

handed me an awful  jolt.  At times I feel as if I must have sailed with Noah.  And as  if  I had wasted most of the


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 194



Top




Page No 197


time since." 

She smiled.  "Just what do you mean by that?" she asked. 

"I meanwell, I don't know exactly what I do mean, I guess.  I  seem to have an unsettled feeling.  I'm not

satisfied with myself.  And as I remember myself," he added, with a shrug, "that condition  of  mind was not

usual with me." 

She regarded him for a moment without speaking, with the appraising  look in her eyes which he remembered

so well, which had always  reminded him of the look in his grandfather's eyes, and which when  a  boy he

resented so strongly. 

"Yes," she said slowly, "I think you have changed.  Not because  you say you feel so much older or because

you are uneasy and  dissatisfied.  So many of the men I talked with at the camp  hospital,  the men who had

been over there and had been wounded, as  you were,  said they felt the same way.  That doesn't mean

anything,  I think,  except that it is dreadfully hard to get readjusted again  and settle  down to everyday things.

But it seems to me that you  have changed in  other ways.  You are a little thinner, but broader,  too, aren't you?

And you do look older, especially about the eyes.  And, of  coursewell, of course I think I do miss a little of

the  Albert  Speranza I used to know, the young chap with the chip on his  shoulder  for all creation to knock

off." 

"Young jackass!" 

"Oh, no indeed.  He had his good points.  But there! we're wasting  time and we have so much to talk about.

Youwhy, what am I  thinking  of!  I have neglected the most important thing in the  world.  And you  have just

returned from New York, too.  Tell me,  how is Madeline  Fosdick?" 

"She is well.  But tell me about yourself.  You have been in all  sorts of war work, haven't you.  Tell me about

it." 

"Oh, my work didn't amount to much.  At first I 'Red Crossed' in  Boston, then I went to Devens and spent a

long time in the camp  hospital there." 

"Pretty trying, wasn't it?" 

"Whyyes, some of it was.  When the 'flu' epidemic was raging and  the poor fellows were having such a

dreadful time it was bad  enough.  After that I was sent to Eastview.  In the hospital there  I met the  boys who

had been wounded on the other side and who  talked about old  age and dissatisfaction and uneasiness, just as

you do.  But MY work  doesn't count.  You are the person to be  talked about.  Since I have  seen you you have

become a famous poet  and a hero and" 

"Don't!" 

She had been smiling; now she was very serious. 

"Forgive me, Albert," she said.  "We have been joking, you and I,  but there was a time when wewhen your

friends did not joke.  Oh,  Albert, if you could have seen the Snow place as I saw it then.  It  was as if all the

hope and joy and everything worth while had been  crushed out of it.  Your grandmother, poor little woman,

was brave  and quiet, but we all knew she was trying to keep up for Captain  Zelotes' sake.  And heAlbert,

you can scarcely imagine how the  news  of your death changed him. . . .  Ah! well, it was a hard  time, a

dreadful time forfor every one." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 195



Top




Page No 198


She paused and he, turning to look at her, saw that there were  tears in her eyes.  He knew of her affection for

his grandparents  and  theirs for her.  Before he could speak she was smiling again. 

"But now that is all over, isn't it?" she said.  "And the Snows are  the happiest people in the country, I do

believe.  AND the proudest,  of course.  So now you must tell me all about it, about your  experiences, and

about your war cross, and about your literary  workoh, about everything." 

The allinclusive narrative was not destined to get very far.  Old  Mr. Kendall came hurrying in, the sermon on

the casting down of  Baal  in his hand.  Thereafter he led, guided, and to a large extent  monopolized the

conversation.  His discourse had proceeded perhaps  as  far as "Thirdly" when Albert, looking at his watch, was

surprised to  find it almost dinner time.  Mr. Kendall, still  talking, departed to  his study to hunt for another

sermon.  The  young people said goodby  in his absence. 

"It has been awfully good to see you again, Helen," declared  Albert.  "But I told you that in the beginning,

didn't I?  You  seem  likewell, like a part of home, you know.  And home means  something  to me nowadays." 

"I'm glad to hear you speak of South Harniss as home.  Of course I  know you don't mean to make it a

permanent homeI imagine Madeline  would have something to say about thatbut it is nice to have you

speak as if the old town meant something to you." 

He looked about him. 

"I love the place," he said simply. 

"I am glad.  So do I; but then I have lived here all my life.  The  next time we talk I want to know more about

your plans for the  futureyours and Madeline's, I mean.  How proud she must be of  you." 

He looked up at her; she was standing upon the upper step and he on  the walk below. 

"Madeline and I" he began.  Then he stopped.  What was the use?  He did not want to talk about it.  He

waved his hand and turned  away. 

After dinner he went out into the kitchen to talk to Mrs. Ellis,  who was washing dishes.  She was doing it as

she did all her share  of  the housework, with an energy and capability which would have  delighted the soul of

a "scientific management" expert.  Except  when  under the spell of a sympathetic attack Rachel was ever

distinctly on  the job. 

And of course she was, as always, glad to see her protege, her  Robert Penfold.  The proprietary interest which

she had always felt  in him was more than ever hers now.  Had not she been the sole  person  to hint at the

possibility of his being alive, when every  one else had  given him up for dead?  Had not she been the only one

to suggest that  he might have been taken prisoner?  Had SHE ever  despaired of seeing  him againon this

earth and in the flesh?  Indeed, she had not; at  least, she had never admitted it, if she  had.  So then, hadn't she a

RIGHT to feel that she owned a share in  him?  No one ventured to  dispute that right. 

She turned and smiled over one ample shoulder when he entered the  kitchen. 

"Hello," she hailed cheerfully.  "Come callin', have you, Robert  Albert, I mean?  It would have been a great

help to me if you'd  been  christened Robert.  I call you that so much to myself it comes  almost  more natural

than the other.  On account of you bein' so  just like  Robert Penfold in the book, you know," she added. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 196



Top




Page No 199


"Yes, yes, of course, Rachel, I understand," put in Albert hastily.  He was not in the mood to listen to a

dissertation on a text taken  from Foul Play.  He looked about the room and sighed happily. 

"There isn't a speck anywhere, is there?" he observed.  "It is just  as it used to be, just as I used to think of it

when I was laid up  over there.  When I wanted to try and eat a bit, so as to keep what  strength I had, I would

think about this kitchen of yours, Rachel.  It  didn't do to think of the places where the prison stuff was  cooked.

They were notappetizing." 

Mrs. Ellis nodded.  "I presume likely not," she observed.  "Well,  don't tell me about 'em.  I've just scrubbed this

kitchen from stem  to stern.  If I heard about those prison places, I'd feel like  startin' right in and scrubbin' it all

over again, I know I  should. .  . .  Dirty pigs!  I wish I had the scourin' of some of  those Germans!  I'dI don't

know as I wouldn't skin 'em alive." 

Albert laughed.  "Some of them pretty nearly deserved it," he said. 

Rachel smiled grimly.  "Well, let's talk about nice things," she  said.  "Oh, Issy Price was here this forenoon;

Cap'n Lote sent him  over from the office on an errand, and he said he saw you and Mr.  Kendall goin' down

street together just as he was comin' along.  He  hollered at you, but you didn't hear him.  'Cordin' to Issachar's

tell, you was luggin' a basket with Jonah's whale in it, or  somethin'  like that." 

Albert described his encounter with the minister.  Rachel was much  interested. 

"Oh, so you saw Helen," she said.  "Well, I guess she was surprised  to see you." 

"Not more than I was to see her.  I didn't know she was in town.  Not a soul had mentioned ityou nor

Grandfather nor Grandmother." 

The housekeeper answered without turning her head.  "Guess we had  so many things to talk about we forgot

it," she said.  "Yes, she's  been here over a week now.  High time, from what I hear.  The poor  old parson has

failed consider'ble and Maria Price's housekeepin'  and  cookin' is enough to make a well man sickor wish

he was.  But  he'll  be looked after now.  Helen will look after him.  She's the  most  capable girl there is in

Ostable County.  Did she tell you  about what  she done in the Red Cross and the hospitals?" 

"She said something about it, not very much." 

"Umhm.  She wouldn't, bein' Helen Kendall.  But the Red Cross  folks said enough, and they're sayin' it yet.

Why" 

She went on to tell of Helen's work in the Red Cross depots and in  the camp, and hospitals.  It was an

inspiring story. 

"There they was," said Rachel, "the poor things, just boys most of  'em, dyin' of that dreadful influenza like

rats, as you might say.  And, of course it's dreadful catchin', and a good many was more  afraid of it than they

would have been of bullets, enough sight.  But  Helen Kendall wa'n't afraidno, siree!  Why" 

And so on.  Albert listened, hearing most of it, but losing some as  his thoughts wandered back to the Helen he

had known as a boy and  the  Helen he had met that forenoon.  Her face, as she had welcomed  him at  the

parsonage doorit was surprising how clearly it showed  before his  mind's eye.  He had thought at first that

she had not  changed in  appearance.  That was not quite trueshe had changed a  little, but it  was merely the

fulfillment of a promise, that was  all.  Her eyes, her  smile above a hospital bedhe could imagine  what they

must have  seemed like to a lonely, homesick boy wrestling  with the "flu." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 197



Top




Page No 200


"And, don't talk!" he heard the housekeeper say, as he drifted out  of his reverie, "if she wa'n't popular around

that hospital, around  both hospitals, fur's that goes!  The patients idolized her, and  the  other nurses they loved

her, and the doctors" 

"Did they love her, too?" Albert asked, with a smile, as she  hesitated. 

She laughed.  "Some of 'em did, I cal'late," she answered.  "You  see, I got most of my news about it all from

Bessie Ryder,  Cornelius  Ryder's niece, lives up on the road to the Center; you  used to know  her, Albert.

Bessie was nursin' in that same  hospital, the one Helen  was at first.  'Cordin' to her, there was  some doctor or

officer  tryin' to shine up to Helen most of the  time.  When she was at  Eastview, so Bessie heard, there was a

real  bigbug in the Army, a  sort of Admiral or Commodore amongst the  doctors he was, and HE was  trottin'

after her, or would have been  if she'd let him.  'Course you  have to make some allowances for  Bessieshe

wouldn't be a Ryder if  she didn't take so many words to  say so little that the truth gets  stretched pretty thin

afore she  finishedbut there must have been  SOMETHIN' in it.  And all about  her bein' such a wonderful

nurse and  doin' so much for the Red  Cross I KNOW is true. . . .  Eh?  Did you  say anything, Albert?" 

Albert shook his head.  "No, Rachel," he replied.  "I didn't  speak." 

"I thought I heard you or somebody say somethin'.  I  Why, Laban  Keeler, what are you doin' away from

your desk this time in the  afternoon?" 

Laban grinned as he entered the kitchen. 

"Did I hear you say you thought you heard somebody sayin'  somethin',  Rachel?" he inquired.  "That's queer,

ain't it?  Seemed to  me _I_  heard somebody sayin' somethin' as I come up the path just now.  Seemed as if they

was sayin' it right here in the kitchen, too.  'Twasn't your voice, Albert, and it couldn't have been Rachel's,

'cause she NEVER talks'specially to you.  It's too bad, the  prejudice she's got against you, Albert," he

added, with a wink.  "Umhm, too badyes, 'tisyes, yes." 

Mrs. Ellis sniffed. 

"And that's what the newspapers in war time used to callerer  oh, dear, what was

it?camelseems's if 'twas somethin' about a  camel" 

"Camouflage?" suggested Albert. 

"That's it.  All that talk about me is just camouflage to save him  answerin' my question.  But he's goin' to

answer it.  What are you  doin' away from the office this time in the afternoon, I want to  know?" 

Mr. Keeler perched his small figure on the corner of the kitchen  table. 

"Well, to tell you the truth, Rachel," he said solemnly.  "I'm here  to do what the folks in books call demand an

explanation.  You and  I,  Rachel, are just as good as engaged to be married, ain't we?  I've been  keepin'

company with you for the last twenty, forty or  sixty years,  some such spell as that.  Now, just as I'm gettin'

used to it and  beginnin' to consider it a settled arrangement, as  you may say, I come  into this house and find

you shut up in the  kitchen with another man.  Now, what" 

The housekeeper advanced toward him with the dripping dishcloth. 

"Laban Keeler," she threatened, "if you don't stop your foolishness  and answer my question, I declare I'll" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 198



Top




Page No 201


Laban slid from his perch and retired behind the table. 

"Another man," he repeated.  "And SOME folksnot many, of course,  but somemight be crazy enough to

say he was a betterlookin' man  than I am.  Now, bein' ragin' jealous,  All right, Rachel, all  right, I

surrender.  Don't hit me with all those soapsuds.  I don't  want to go back to the office foamin' at the mouth.

The reason I'm  here is that I had to go down street to see about the sheathin' for  the Red Men's lodge room.

Issy took the order, but he wasn't real  sure whether 'twas sheathin' or scantlin' they wanted, so I told  Cap'n

Lote I'd run down myself and straighten it out.  On the way  back I saw you two through the window and I

thought I'd drop in and  worry you.  So here I am." 

Mrs. Ellis nodded.  "Yes," she sniffed.  "And all that camel  camel  Oh, DEAR, what DOES ail me?  All

that camel  No use,  I've  forgot it again." 

"Never mind, Rachel," said Mr. Keeler consolingly.  "All theer  menagerie was just that and nothin'

more.  Oh, by the way, Al," he  added, "speakin' of camelsdon't you think I've done pretty well  to  go so long

without anyerliquid nourishment?  Not a drop  since you  and I enlisted together. . . .  Oh, she knows about

it  now," he added,  with a jerk of his head in the housekeeper's  direction.  "I felt 'twas  fairly safe and settled, so

I told her.  I told her.  Yes, yes, yes.  Umhm, so I did." 

Albert turned to the lady. 

"You should be very proud of him, Rachel," he said seriously.  "I  think I realize a little something of the fight

he has made, and it  is bully.  You should be proud of him." 

Rachel looked down at the little man. 

"I am," she said quietly.  "I guess likely he knows it." 

Laban smiled.  "The folks in Washington are doin' their best to  help me out," he said.  "They're goin' to take

the stuff away from  everybody so's to make sure _I_ don't get any more.  They'll  probably  put up a monument

to me for startin' the thing; don't you  think they  will, Al?  Eh?  Don't you, now?" 

Albert and he walked up the road together.  Laban told a little  more of his battle with John Barleycorn. 

"I had half a dozen spells when I had to set my teeth, those I've  got left, and hang on," he said.  "And the

hangin'on wa'n't as  easy  as stickin' to flypaper, neither.  Honest, though, I think  the  hardest was when the

news came that you was alive, Al.  II  just  wanted to start in and celebrate.  Wanted to whoop her up, I  did."

He  paused a moment and then added, "I tried whoopin' on  sass'parilla and  vanilla sody, but 'twa'n't

satisfactory.  Couldn't  seem to raise a  real loud whisper, let alone a whoop.  No, I  couldn'tno, no." 

Albert laughed and laid a hand on his shoulder.  "You're all right,  Labe," he declared.  "I know you, and I say

so." 

Laban slowly shook his head.  His smile, as he answered, was rather  pathetic. 

"I'm a long, long ways from bein' all right, Al," he said.  "A long  ways from that, I am.  If I'd made my fight

thirty year ago, I  might  have been nigher to amountin' to somethin'. . . .  Oh, well,  for  Rachel's sake I'm glad

I've made it now.  She's stuck to me  when  everybody would have praised her for chuckin' me to Tophet.  I  was

readin' one of Thackeray's books t'other nightHenry Esmond,  'twas;  you've read it, Al, of course; I was

readin' it t'other  night for the  ninetyninth time or thereabouts, and I run across  the place where it  says it's

strange what a man can do and a woman  still keep thinkin'  he's an angel.  That's true, too, Al.  Not,"  with the


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 199



Top




Page No 202


return of the  slight smile, "that Rachel ever went so far  as to call me an angel.  No, no.  There's limits where

you can't  stretch her commonsense any  farther.  Callin' me an angel would be  just past the limit.  Yes, yes,

yes.  I guess SO." 

They spoke of Captain Zelotes and Olive and of their grief and  discouragement when the news of Albert's

supposed death reached  them. 

"Do you know," said Labe, "I believe Helen Kendall's comin' there  for a week did 'em more good than

anything else.  She got away from  her soldier nursin' somehowmust have been able to pull the  strings

consider'ble harder'n the average to do itand just came  down to the  Snow place and sort of took charge

along with Rachel.  Course she  didn't live there, her father thought she was visitin'  him, I guess  likely, but she

was with Cap'n Lote and Olive most of  the time.  Rachel says she never made a fuss, you understand, just  was

there and  helped and was quiet and softspoken and capable and  and comfortin',  that's about the word, I

guess.  Rachel always  thought a sight of  Helen afore that, but since then she swears by  her." 

That eveningor, rather, that night, for they did not leave the  sitting room until after twelveMrs. Snow

heard her grandson  walking  the floor of his room, and called to ask if he was sick. 

"I'm all right, Grandmother," he called in reply.  "Just taking a  little exercise before turning in, that's all.  Sorry

if I  disturbed  you." 

The exercise was, as a matter of fact, almost entirely mental, the  pacing up and down merely an unconscious

physical accompaniment.  Albert Speranza was indulging in introspection.  He was reviewing  and  assorting his

thoughts and his impulses and trying to determine  just  what they were and why they were and whither they

were  tending.  It  was a mental and spiritual picking to pieces and the  result was  humiliating and in its turn

resulted in a brandnew  determination. 

Ever since his meeting with Helen, a meeting which had been quite  unpremeditated, he had thought of but

little except her.  During  his  talk with her in the parsonage sitting room he had beenthere  was no  use

pretending to himself that it was otherwisemore  contented with  the world, more optimistic, happier, than

he had  been for months, it  seemed to him for years.  Even while he was  speaking to her of his  uneasiness and

dissatisfaction he was dimly  conscious that at that  moment he was less uneasy and less  dissatisfied, conscious

that the  solid ground was beneath his feet  at last, that here was the haven  after the storm, here was 

He pulled up sharply.  This line of thought was silly, dangerous,  wicked.  What did it mean?  Three days

before, only three days, he  had left Madeline Fosdick, the girl whom he had worshiped, adored,  and who had

loved him.  Yes, there was no use pretending there,  either; he and Madeline HAD loved each other.  Of course

he  realized  now that their love had nothing permanently substantial  about it.  It  was the romance of youth, a

dream which they had  shared together and  from which, fortunately for both, they had  awakened in time.  And

of  course he realized, too, that the  awakening had begun long, long  before the actual parting took  place.  But

nevertheless only three  days had elapsed since that  parting, and now  What sort of a man was  he? 

Was he like his father?  Was it what Captain Zelotes used to call  the "Portygee streak" which was now

cropping out?  The opera singer  had been of the butterfly typein his later years a middleaged  butterfly

whose wings creaked somewhatbut decidedly a flitter  from  flower to flower.  As a boy, Albert had been

aware, in an  uncertain  fashion, of his father's fondness for the sex.  Now,  older, his  judgment of his parent was

not as lenient, was clearer,  more  discerning.  He understood now.  Was his own "Portygee  streak," his

inherited temperament, responsible for his leaving one  girl on a  Tuesday and on Friday finding his thoughts

concerned so  deeply with  another? 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XVIII 200



Top




Page No 203


Well, no matter, no matter.  One thing was certainHelen should  never know of that feeling.  He would crush

it down, he would use  his  commonsense.  He would be a decent man and not a blackguard.  For he  had had

his chance and had tossed it away.  What would she  think of  him now if he came to her after Madeline had

thrown him  overthat is  what Mrs. Fosdick would say, would take pains that  every one else  should say, that

Madeline had thrown him overwhat  would Helen think  of him if he came to her with a secondhand love

like that? 

And of course she would not think of him as a lover at all.  Why  should she?  In the boy and girl days she had

refused to let him  speak of such a thing.  She was his friend, a glorious, a wonderful  friend, but that was all,

all she ever dreamed of being. 

Well, that was right; that was as it should be.  He should be  thankful for such a friend.  He was, of course.  And

he would  concentrate all his energies upon his work, upon his writing.  That  was it, that was it.  Good, it was

settled! 

So he went to bed and, eventually, to sleep. 

CHAPTER XIX

While dressing in the cold light of dawn his perturbations of the  previous night appeared in retrospect as

rather boyish and  unnecessary.  His sudden and unexpected meeting with Helen and  their  talk together had

tended to make him oversentimental, that  was all.  He and she were to be friends, of course, but there was  no

real  danger of his allowing himself to think of her except as a  friend.  No, indeed.  He opened the bureau

drawer in search of a  tie, and  there was the package of "snapshots" just where he had  tossed them  that night

when he first returned home after muster  out.  Helen's  photograph was the uppermost.  He looked at it

looked at it for  several minutes.  Then he closed the drawer again  and hurriedly  finished his dressing.  A part,

at least, of his  resolve of the night  before had been sound commonsense.  His brain  was suffering from lack

of exercise.  Work was what he needed, hard  work. 

So to work he went without delay.  A place to work in was the first  consideration.  He suggested the garret, but

his grandmother and  Rachel held up their hands and lifted their voices in protest. 

"No, INDEED," declared Olive.  "Zelotes has always talked about  writin' folks and poets starvin' in garrets.  If

you went up attic  to  work he'd be teasin' me from mornin' to night.  Besides, you'd  freeze  up there, if the smell

of mothballs didn't choke you first.  No, you  wait; I've got a notion.  There's that old table desk of  Zelotes' in

the settin' room.  He don't hardly ever use it  nowadays.  You take it  upstairs to your own room and work in

there.  You can have the  oilheater to keep you warm." 

So that was the arrangement made, and in his own room Albert sat  down at the battered old desk, which had

been not only his  grandfather's but his greatgrandfather's property, to concentrate  upon the first of the series

of stories ordered by the New York  magazine.  He had already decided upon the general scheme for the  series.

A boy, ragamuffin son of immigrant parents, rising, after  a  wrong start, by sheer grit and natural shrewdness

and ability,  step by  step to competence and success, winning a place in and the  respect of  a community.  There

was nothing new in the idea itself.  Some things  his soldier chum Mike Kelley had told him concerning an

uncle of  hisMike'ssuggested it.  The novelty he hoped might  come from the  incidents, the various

problems faced by his hero,  the solution of  each being a step upward in the latter's career and  in the formation

of his character.  He wanted to write, if he  could, the story of the  building of one more worthwhile

American,  for Albert Speranza, like  so many others set to thinking by the war  and the war experiences, was

realizing strongly that the gabbling  of a formula and the swearing of  an oath of naturalization did not

necessarily make an American.  There  were too many eager to take  that oath with tongue in cheek and knife  in


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 201



Top




Page No 204


sleeve.  Too many, for  the first time in their lives breathing and  speaking as free men,  thanks to the protection

of Columbia's arm, yet  planning to stab  their protectress in the back. 

So Albert's hero was to be an American, an American to whom the  term meant the highest and the best.  If he

had hunted a lifetime  for  something to please and interest his grandfather he could not  have hit  the mark

nearer the center.  Cap'n Lote, of course,  pretended a  certain measure of indifference, but that was for Olive

and Rachel's  benefit.  It would never do for the scoffer to become  a convert openly  and at once.  The feminine

members of the household  clamored each  evening to have the author read aloud his day's  installment.  The

captain sniffed. 

"Oh, dear, dear," with a groan, "now I've got to hear all that  madeup stuff that happened to a parcel of

madeup folks that never  lived and never will.  Waste of time, waste of time.  Where's my  Transcript?" 

But it was noticedand commented upon, you may be sureby his  wife and housekeeper that the

Transcript was likely to be, before  the  reading had progressed far, either in the captain's lap or on  the  floor.

And when the discussion following the reading was under  way  Captain Zelotes' opinions were expressed

quite as freely as any  one's  else.  Laban Keeler got into the habit of dropping in to  listen. 

One fateful evening the reading was interrupted by the arrival of  Mr. Kendall.  The reverend gentleman had

come to make a pastoral  call.  Albert's hero was in the middle of a situation.  The old  clergyman insisted upon

the continuation of the reading.  It was  continued and so was the discussion following it; in fact, the

discussion seemed likely to go on indefinitely, for the visitor  showed no inclination of leaving.  At tenthirty

his daughter  appeared to inquire about him and to escort him home.  Then he  went,  but under protest.  Albert

walked to the parsonage with them. 

"Now we've started somethin'," groaned the captain, as the door  closed.  "That old critter'll be cruisin' over

here six nights out  of  five from now on to tell Al just how to spin those yarns of his.  And  he'll talkand

talkand talk.  Ain't it astonishin' how such  a  feeblelookin' craft as he is can keep blowin' off steam that

way  and  still be able to navigate." 

His wife took him to task.  "The idea," she protested, "of your  callin' your own minister a 'critter'!  I should

think you'd be  ashamed. . . .  But, oh, dear, I'm afraid he WILL be over here an  awful lot." 

Her fears were realized.  Mr. Kendall, although not on hand "six  nights out of five," as the captain prophesied,

was a frequent  visitor at the Snow place.  As Albert's storywriting progressed  the  discussions concerning the

growth and development of the hero's  character became more and more involved and spirited.  They were  for

the most part confined, when the minister was present, to him  and Mrs.  Snow and Rachel.  Laban, if he

happened to be there, sat  well back in  the corner, saying little except when appealed to, and  then answering

with one of his dry, characteristic observations.  Captain Lote, in the  rocker, his legs crossed, his hand

stroking  his beard, and with the  twinkle in his eyes, listened, and spoke  but seldom.  Occasionally,  when he

and his grandson exchanged  glances, the captain winked,  indicating appreciation of the  situation. 

"Say, Al," he said, one evening, after the old clergyman had  departed, "it must be kind of restful to have your

work all laid  out  for you this way.  Take it tonight, for instance; I don't see  but  what everything's planned for

this young feller you're writin'  about  so you nor he won't have to think for yourselves for a  hundred year or

such matter.  Course there's some little difference  in the plans.  Rachel wants him to get wrecked on an island

or be  put in jail, and  Mother, she wants him to be a soldier and a poet,  and Mr. Kendall  thinks it's high time

he joined the church or  signed the pledge or  stopped swearin' or chewin' gum." 

"Zelotes, how ridiculous you do talk!" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 202



Top




Page No 205


"All right, Mother, all right.  What strikes me, Al, is they don't  any of 'em stop to ask you what YOU mean to

have him do.  Course I  know 'tain't any of your business, but stillseems 's if you might  be a little mite

interested in the boy yourself." 

Albert laughed.  "Don't worry, Grandfather," he said.  "I'm  enjoying it all very much.  And some of the

suggestions may be just  what I'm looking for." 

"Well, son, we'll hope so.  Say, Labe, I've got a notion for  keepin' the minister from doin' all the talkin.'  We'll

ask Issy  Price to drop in; eh?" 

Laban shook his head.  "I don't know, Cap'n Lote," he observed.  "Sounds to me a good deal like lettin' in a

hurricane to blow out a  match with. . . .  Umhm.  Seems so to me.  Yes, yes." 

Mr. Kendall's calls would have been more frequent still had Helen  not interfered.  Very often, when he came

she herself dropped in a  little later and insisted upon his making an early start for home.  Occasionally she

came with him.  She, too, seemed much interested  in  the progress of the stories, but she offered few

suggestions.  When  directly appealed to, she expressed her views, and they were  worth  while. 

Albert was resolutely adhering to his determination not to permit  himself to think of her except as a friend.

That is, he hoped he  was; thoughts are hard to control at times.  He saw her often.  They  met on the street, at

church on Sundayhis grandmother was  so  delighted when he accompanied her to "meeting" that he did so

rather  more frequently, perhaps, than he otherwise wouldat the  homes of  acquaintances, and, of course, at

the Snow place.  When  she walked  home with her father after a "story evening" he usually  went with them  as

additional escort. 

She had not questioned him concerning Madeline since their first  meeting that morning at the parsonage.  He

knew, therefore, that  some  onehis grandmother, probablyhad told her of the broken  engagement.  When

they were alone together they talked of many  things, casual  things, the generalities of which, so he told

himself, a conversation  between mere friends was composed.  But  occasionally, after doing  escort duty, after

Mr. Kendall had gone  into the house to take his  "throat medicine"a medicine which  Captain Zelotes

declared would  have to be doublestrength pretty  soon to offset the wear and tear of  the story

eveningsthey talked  of matters more specific and which  more directly concerned  themselves.  She spoke of

her hospital work,  of her teaching before  the war, and of her plans for the future.  The  latter, of course,  were

very indefinite now. 

"Father needs me," she said, "and I shall not leave him while he  lives." 

They spoke of Albert's work and plans most of all.  He began to ask  for advice concerning the former.  When

those stories were written,  what then?  She hoped he would try the novel he had hinted at. 

"I'm sure you can do it," she said.  "And you mustn't give up the  poems altogether.  It was the poetry, you

know, which was the  beginning." 

"YOU were the beginning," he said impulsively.  "Perhaps I should  never have written at all if you hadn't

urged me, shamed me out of  my  laziness." 

"I was a presuming young person, I'm afraid," she said.  "I wonder  you didn't tell me to mind my own

business.  I believe you did, but  I  wouldn't mind." 

June brought the summer weather and the summer boarders to South  Harniss.  One of the news sensations

which came at the same time  was  that the new Fosdick cottage had been sold.  The people who had  occupied


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 203



Top




Page No 206


it the previous season had bought it.  Mrs. Fosdick, so  rumor said, was not strong and her doctors had decided

that the sea  air did not agree with her. 

"Crimustee!" exclaimed Issachar, as he imparted the news to Mr.  Keeler, "if that ain't the worst.  Spend your

money, and a pile of  money, too, buyin' ground, layin' of it out to build a house on to  live in, then buildin' that

house and then, by crimus, sellin' it  to  somebody else for THEM to live in.  That beats any foolishness  ever

come MY way." 

"And there's some consider'ble come your way at that, ain't they,  Is?" observed Laban, busy with his

bookkeeping. 

Issachar nodded.  "You're right there has," he said complacently.  "I . . .  What do you mean by that?  Tryin' to

be funny again,  ain't  you?" 

Albert heard the news with a distinct feeling of relief.  While the  feeling on his part toward Madeline was of

the kindliest, and  Madeline's was, he felt sure, the same toward him, nevertheless to  meet her day after day,

as people must meet in a village no bigger  than South Harniss, would be awkward for both.  And to meet Mrs.

Fosdick might be more awkward still.  He smiled as he surmised that  the realization by the lady of that very

awkwardness was probably  responsible for the discovery that sea air was not beneficial. 

The storywriting and the story evenings continued.  Over the  fourth story in the series discussion was warm,

for there were  marked  differences of opinion among the listeners.  One of the  experiences  through which

Albert had brought his hero was that of  working as  general assistant to a sharp, unscrupulous and smooth

tongued rascal  who was proprietor of a circus sideshow and fake  museum.  He was a  kindhearted swindler,

but one who never let a  question of honesty  interfere with the getting of a dollar.  In  this fourth story, to the

town where the hero, now a man of twenty  five, had established  himself in business, came this cheat of

other  days, but now he came as  a duly ordained clergyman in answer to the  call of the local church.  The hero

learned that he had not told  the governing body of that  church of his former career.  Had he  done so, they most

certainly  would not have called him.  The  leading man in that church body was  the hero's patron and kindest

friend.  The question:  What was the  hero's duty in the matter? 

Of course the first question asked was whether or not the ex  sideshow proprietor was sincerely repentant

and honestly trying to  walk the straight path and lead others along it.  Albert replied  that  his hero had

interviewed him and was satisfied that he was;  he had  been "converted" at a revival and was now a religious

enthusiast whose  one idea was to save sinners. 

That was enough for Captain Zelotes. 

"Let him alone, then," said the captain.  "He's tryin' to be a  decent man.  What do you want to do?  Tell on him

and have him  chucked overboard from one church after another until he gets  discouraged and takes to

swindlin' again?" 

Rachel Ellis could not see it that way. 

"If he was a saved sinner," she declared, "and repentant of his  sins, then he'd ought to repent 'em out loud.

Hidin' 'em ain't  repentin'.  And, besides, there's Donald's (Donald was the hero's  name) there's Donald's duty

to the man that's been so good to him.  Is  it fair to that man to keep still and let him hire a minister  that,  like as

not, will steal the collection, box and all, afore he  gets  through?  No, sir, Donald ought to tell THAT man,

anyhow." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 204



Top




Page No 207


Olive was pretty dubious about the whole scheme.  She doubted if  anybody connected with a circus COULD

ever become a minister. 

"The wholeerertrade is so different," she said. 

Mr. Kendall was not there that evening, his attendance being  required at a meeting of the Sunday School

teachers.  Helen,  however,  was not at that meeting and Captain Zelotes declared his  intention of  asking her

opinion by telephone. 

"She'll say same as I doyou see if she don't," he declared.  When  he called the parsonage, however, Maria

Price answered the phone  and  informed him that Helen was spending the evening with old Mrs.  Crowell, who

lived but a little way from the Snow place.  The  captain  promptly called up the Crowell house. 

"She's there and she'll stop in here on her way along," he said  triumphantly.  "And she'll back me upyou

see." 

But she did not.  She did not "back up" any one.  She merely smiled  and declared the problem too complicated

to answer offhand. 

"Why don't you ask Albert?" she inquired.  "After all, he is the  one who must settle it eventually." 

"He won't tell," said Olive.  "He's real provokin', isn't he?  And  now you won't tell, either, Helen." 

"Oh, I don't knowyet.  But I think he does." 

Albert, as usual, walked home with her. 

"How are you going to answer your hero's riddle?" she asked. 

"Before I tell you, suppose you tell me what your answer would be." 

She reflected.  "Well," she said, "it seems to me that, all things  being as they are, he should do this:  He should

go to the sideshow  manthe minister nowand have a very frank talk with him.  He  should tell him that he

had decided to say nothing about the old  life  and to help him in every way, to be his friendprovided that  he

keep  straight, that is all.  Of course more than that would be  meant, the  alternative would be there and

understood, but he need  not say it.  I  think that course of action would be fair to himself  and to everybody.

That is my answer.  What is yours?" 

He laughed quietly.  "Just that, of course," he said.  "You would  see it, I knew.  You always see down to the

heart of things, Helen.  You have the gift." 

She shook her head.  "It didn't really need a gift, this particular  problem, did it?" she said.  "It is notexcuse

meit isn't  exactly  a new one." 

"No, it isn't.  It is as old as the hills, but there are always new  twists to it." 

"As there are to all our old problems." 

"Yes.  By the way, your advice about the ending of my third story  was exactly what I needed.  The editor

wrote me he should never  have  forgiven me if it had ended in any other way.  It probably  WOULD have

ended in another way if it hadn't been for you.  Thank  you, Helen." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 205



Top




Page No 208


"Oh, you know there was really nothing to thank me for.  It was all  you, as usual.  Have you planned the next

story, the fifth, yet?" 

"Not entirely.  I have some vague ideas.  Do you want to hear  them?" 

"Of course." 

So they discussed those ideas as they walked along the sidewalk of  the street leading down to the parsonage.

It was a warm evening, a  light mist, which was not substantial enough to be a fog, hanging  low  over

everything, wrapping them and the trees and the little  front  yards and low houses of the old village in a sort of

cozy,  velvety,  confidential quiet.  The scent of lilacs was heavy in the  air. 

They both were silent.  Just when they had ceased speaking neither  could have told.  They walked on arm in

arm and suddenly Albert  became aware that this silence was dangerous for him; that in it  all  his resolves and

brave determinations were melting into mist  like that  about him; that he must talk and talk at once and upon a

subject which  was not personal, which 

And then Helen spoke. 

"Do you know what this reminds me of?" she said.  "All this talk of  ours?  It reminds me of how we used to

talk over those first poems  of  yours.  You have gone a long way since then." 

"I have gone to Kaiserville and back." 

"You know what I mean.  I mean your work has improved wonderfully.  You write with a sure hand now, it

seems to me.  And your view is  so  much broader." 

"I hope I'm not the narrow, conceited little rooster I used to be.  I told you, Helen, that the war handed me an

awful jolt.  Well, it  did.  I think it, or my sickness or the whole business together,  knocked most of that

selfconfidence of mine galleywest.  For so  much I'm thankful." 

"I don't know that I am, altogether.  I don't want you to lose  confidence in yourself.  You should be confident

now because you  deserve to be.  And you write with confidence, or it reads as if  you  did.  Don't you feel that

you do, yourself?  Truly, don't you?" 

"Well, perhaps, a little.  I have been at it for some time now.  I  ought to show some progress.  Perhaps I don't

make as many mistakes." 

"I can't see that you have made any." 

"I have made one . . . a damnable one." 

"Why, what do you mean?" 

"Oh, nothing.  I didn't mean to say that. . . .  Helen, do you know  it is awfully good of you to take all this

interest in mein my  work, I mean.  Why do you do it?" 

"Why?" 

"Yes, why?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 206



Top




Page No 209


"Why, because  Why shouldn't I?  Haven't we always talked about  your writings together, almost since we

first knew each other?  Aren't  we old friends?" 

There it was againfriends.  It was like a splash of cold water in  the face, at once awakening and chilling.

Albert walked on in  silence for a few moments and then began speaking of some trivial  subject entirely

disconnected with himself or his work or her.  When  they reached the parsonage door he said good night at

once and  strode  off toward home. 

Back in his room, however, he gave himself another mental picking  to pieces.  He was realizing most

distinctly that this sort of  thing  would not do.  It was easy to say that his attitude toward  Helen  Kendall was to

be that of a friend and nothing more, but it  was  growing harder and harder to maintain that attitude.  He had

come  within a breath that very night of saying what was in his  heart. 

Well, if he had said it, if he did say itwhat then?  After all,  was there any real reason why he should not say

it?  It was true  that  he had loved, or fancied that he loved, Madeline, that he had  been  betrothed to herbut

again, what of it?  Broken engagements  were  common enough, and there was nothing disgraceful in this one.

Why not  go to Helen and tell her that his fancied love for Madeline  had been  the damnable mistake he had

confessed making.  Why not  tell her that  since the moment when he saw her standing in the  doorway of the

parsonage on the morning following his return from  New York he had  known that she was the only woman in

the world for  him, that it was  her image he had seen in his dreams, in the  delirium of fever, that it  was she,

and not that other, who 

But there, all this was foolishness, and he knew it.  He did not  dare say it.  Not for one instant had she, by

speech or look or  action, given him the slightest encouragement to think her feeling  for him was anything but

friendship.  And that friendship was far  too  precious to risk.  He must not risk it.  He must keep still, he  must

hide his thoughts, she must never guess.  Some day, perhaps,  after a  year or two, after his position in his

profession was more  assured,  then he might speak.  But even then there would be that  risk.  And the  idea of

waiting was not pleasant.  What had Rachel  told him concerning  the hosts of doctors and officers and generals

who had been "shining  up" to her.  Some risk there, also. 

Well, never mind.  He would try to keep on as he had been going for  the present.  He would try not to see her

as frequently.  If the  strain became unbearable he might go away somewherefor a time. 

He did not go away, but he made it a point not to see her as  frequently.  However, they met often even as it

was.  And he was  conscious always that the ice beneath his feet was very, very thin. 

One wonderful August evening he was in his room upstairs.  He was  not writing.  He had come up there early

because he wished to think,  to consider.  A proposition had been made to him that afternoon, a  surprising

propositionto him it had come as a complete surprise  and before mentioning it even to his grandparents

he wished to  think  it over very carefully. 

About ten o'clock his grandfather called to him from the foot of  the stairs and asked him to come down. 

"Mr. Kendall's on the phone," said Captain Zelotes.  "He's worried  about Helen.  She's up to West Harniss

sittin' up along of Lurany  Howes, who's been sick so long.  She ain't come home, and the old  gentleman's

frettin' about her walkin' down from there alone so  late.  I told him I cal'lated you'd just as soon harness Jess

and  drive up  and get her.  You talk with him yourself, Al." 

Albert did and, after assuring the nervous clergyman that he would  see that his daughter reached home safely,

put on his hat and went  out to the barn.  Jessamine was asleep in her stall.  As he was  about  to lead her out he

suddenly remembered that one of the traces  had  broken that morning and Captain Zelotes had left it at the


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 207



Top




Page No 210


harnessmaker's to be mended.  It was there yet.  The captain had  forgotten the fact, and so had he.  That

settled the idea of using  Jessamine and the buggy.  Never mind, it was a beautiful night and  the walk was but

little over a mile. 

When he reached the tiny storyandahalf Howes cottage, sitting  back from the road upon the knoll amid

the tangle of silverleaf  sprouts, it was Helen herself who opened the door.  She was  surprised  to see him, and

when he explained his errand she was a  little vexed. 

"The idea of Father's worrying," she said.  "Such a wonderful night  as this, bright moonlight, and in South

Harniss, too.  Nothing ever  happens to people in South Harniss.  I will be ready in a minute or  two.  Mrs.

Howes' niece is here now and will stay with her until  tomorrow.  Then her sister is coming to stay a month.

As soon as  I  get her medicine ready we can go." 

The door of the tiny bedroom adjoining the sitting room was open,  and Albert, sitting upon the lounge with

the faded likeness of a  pink  dog printed on the plush cover, could hear the querulous voice  of the  invalid

within.  The widow Howes was deaf and, as Laban  Keeler  described it, "always hollered loud enough to make

herself  hear" when  she spoke.  Helen was moving quietly about the sick room  and speaking  in a low tone.

Albert could not hear what she said,  but he could hear  Lurania. 

"You're a wonder, that's what you be," declared the latter, "and I  told your pa so last time he was here.  'She's

a saint,' says I,  'if  ever there was one on this earth.  She's the nicest, smartest,  bestlookin' girl in THIS town

and . . .' eh?" 

There had been a murmur, presumably of remonstrance, from Helen. 

"Eh?" 

Another murmur. 

"EH?  WHO'D you say was there?" 

A third murmur. 

"WHO? . . .  Oh, that Speranzy one?  Lote Snow's grandson?  The one  they used to call the Portygee? . . .  Eh?

Well, all right, I  don't  care if he did hear me.  If he don't know you're nice and  smart and  goodlookin', it's

high time he did." 

Helen, a trifle embarrassed but laughing, emerged a moment later,  and when she had put on her hat she and

Albert left the Howes  cottage  and began their walk home.  It was one of those nights such  as Cape  Codders,

yearrounders or visitors, experience three or  four times  during a summer and boast of the remainder of the

year.  A sky clear,  deep, stretched cloudless from horizon to horizon.  Every light at sea  or on shore, in cottage

window or at masthead or  in lighthouse or on  lightship a twinkling diamond point.  A moon,  apparently as big

as a  barrelhead, hung up in the east and below  it a carpet of cold fire,  of dancing, spangled silver spread

upon  the ocean.  The sound of the  surf, distant, soothing; and for the  rest quiet and the fragrance of  the

summer woods and fields. 

They walked rather fast at first and the conversation was brisk,  but as the night began to work its spell upon

them their progress  was  slower and there were intervals of silence of which neither was  aware.  They came to

the little hill where the narrow road from  West Harniss  comes to join the broader highway leading to the

Center.  There were  trees here, a pine grove, on the landward side,  and toward the sea  nothing to break the

glorious view. 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 208



Top




Page No 211


Helen caught her breath.  "Oh, it is beautiful, beautiful!" she  said. 

Albert did not answer.  "Why don't you talk?" she asked.  "What are  you thinking about?" 

He did not tell her what he was thinking about.  Instead, having  caught himself just in time, he began telling

her of what he had  been  thinking when his grandfather called him to the telephone. 

"Helen," he said, "I want to ask your advice.  I had an astonishing  proposal made to me this afternoon.  I must

make a decision, I must  say yes or no, and I'm not sure which to say." 

She looked up at him inquiringly. 

"This afternoon," he went on, "Doctor Parker called me into his  office.  There was a group of men there,

prominent men in politics  from about the country; Judge Baxter from Ostable was there, and  Captain Warren

from South Denboro, and others like them.  What do  you  suppose they want me to do?" 

"I can't imagine." 

"They offer me the party nomination for Congress from this section.  That is, of course, they want me to

permit my name to stand and  they  seem sure my nomination will be confirmed by the voters.  The

nomination, they say, is equivalent to election.  They seem certain  of it. . . .  And they were insistent that I

accept." 

"Ohoh, Albert!" 

"Yes.  They said a good many flattering things, things I should  like to believe.  They said my war record and

my writing and all  that  had made me a prominent man in the county  Please don't  think I take  any stock in

that" 

"But _I_ do.  Go on." 

"Well, that is all.  They seemed confident that I would make a good  congressman.  I am not so sure.  Of course

the thing . . . well, it  does tempt me, I confess.  I could keep on with my writing, of  course.  I should have to

leave the home people for a part of the  year, but I could be with them or near them the rest.  And . . .  well,

Helen, II think I should like the job.  Just now, when  America needs Americans and the thing that isn't

American must be  fought, I should likeif I were sure I was capable of it" 

"Oh, but you areyou ARE." 

"Do you really think so?  Would you like to have me try?" 

He felt her arm tremble upon his.  She drew a long breath. 

"Oh, I should be so PROUD!" she breathed. 

There was a quiver in her voice, almost a sob.  He bent toward her.  She was looking off toward the sea, the

moonlight upon her face was  like a glory, her eyes were shiningand there were tears in them.  His heart

throbbed wildly. 

"Helen!" he cried.  "Helen!" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XIX 209



Top




Page No 212


She turned and looked up into his face.  The next moment her own  face was hidden against his breast, his

arms were about her,  and . .  . and the risk, the risk he had feared to take, was taken. 

They walked home after a time, but it was a slow, a very slow walk  with many interruptions. 

"Oh, Helen," he kept saying, "I don't see how you can.  How can  you?  In spite of it all.  II treated you so

badly.  I was SUCH  an  idiot.  And you really care?  You really do?" 

She laughed happily.  "I really do . . . and . . . and I really  have, all the time." 

"Always?" 

"Always." 

"Wellwell, by George!  And . . . Helen, do you know I think  I  think I did tooalwaysonly I was such

a young fool I didn't  realize  it.  WHAT a young fool I was!" 

"Don't say that, dear, don't. . . .  You are going to be a great  man.  You are a famous one already; you are going

to be great.  Don't  you know that?" 

He stooped and kissed her. 

"I think I shall have to be," he said, "if I am going to be worthy  of you." 

CHAPTER XX

Albert, sitting in the private office of Z. Snow and Co., dropped  his newspaper and looked up with a smile as

his grandfather came  in.  Captain Zelotes' florid face was redder even than usual, for  it was a  cloudy day in

October and blowing a gale. 

"Whew!" puffed the captain, pulling off his overcoat and striding  over to warm his hands at the stove; "it's

raw as January comin'  over  the tops of those Trumet hills, and blowin' hard enough to  part your  back hair,

besides.  One time there I didn't know but  I'd have to  reef, cal'late I would if I'd known how to reef an

automobile." 

"Is the car running as well as ever?" asked Albert. 

"You bet you!  Took all but two of those hills on full steam and  never slowed down a mite.  Think of goin' to

Trumet and back in a  forenoon, and havin' time enough to do the talkin' I went to do  besides.  Why, Jess

would have needed the whole day to make the  down  cruise, to say nothin' of the return trip.  Well, the old  gal's

havin'  a good rest now, nothin' much to do but eat and sleep.  She deserves  it; she's been a good horse for your

grandma and me." 

He rubbed his hands before the stove and chuckled. 

"Olive's still scared to death for fear I'll get run into, or run  over somebody or somethin'," he observed.  "I tell

her I can  navigate  that car now the way I used to navigate the old President  Hayes, and I  could do that walkin'

in my sleep.  There's a little  exaggeration  there," he added, with a grin.  "It takes about all my  gumption when

I'm wide awake to turn the flivver around in a narrow  road, but I  manage to do it. . . .  Well, what are you

doin' in  here, Al?" he  added.  "Readin' the Item's prophesy about how big  your majority's  goin' to be?" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XX 210



Top




Page No 213


Albert smiled.  "I dropped in here to wait for you, Grandfather,"  he replied.  "The novelwriting mill wasn't

working particularly  well, so I gave it up and took a walk." 

"To the parsonage, I presume likely?" 

"Well, I did stop there for a minute or two." 

"You don't say!  I'm surprised to hear it.  How is Helen this  mornin'?  Did she think you'd changed much since

you saw her last  night?" 

"I don't know.  She didn't say so if she did.  She sent her love to  you and Grandmother" 

"What she had left over, you mean." 

"And said to tell you not to tire yourself out electioneering for  me.  That was good advice, too.  Grandfather,

don't you know that  you  shouldn't motor all the way to Trumet and back a morning like  this?  I'd

rathermuch rather go without the votes than have you  do such  things." 

Captain Zelotes seated himself in his desk chair. 

"But you ain't goin' to do without 'em," he chuckled.  Obed Nye  he's chairman of the Trumet

committeefiggers you'll have a five  toone majority.  He told me to practice callin' you 'the  Honorable'

because that's what you'd be by Tuesday night of week  after next.  And  next winter Mother and I will be takin'

a trip to  Washin'ton so as to  set in the gallery and listen to you makin'  speeches.  We'll be some  consider'ble

proud of you, too, boy," he  added, with a nod. 

His grandson looked away, out of the window, over the bleak yard  with its piles of lumber.  The voice of

Issacher raised in  expostulation with the driver of Cahoon's "truckwagon" could be  faintly heard. 

"I shall hate to leave you and Grandmother and the old place," he  said.  "If I am elected" 

"WHEN you're elected; there isn't any 'if.'" 

"Well, all right.  I shall hate to leave South Harniss.  Every  person I really care for will be here.  Helenand

you people at  home." 

"It's too bad you and Helen can't be married and go to Washin'ton  together.  Not to stay permanent," he added

quickly, "but just  while  Congress is in session.  Your grandma says then she'd feel as  if you  had somebody to

look after you.  She always figgers, you  know, that a  man ain't capable of lookin' out for himself.  There'd

ought to be at  least one woman to take care of him, see that he  don't get his feet  wet and goes to meetin'

reg'lar and so on; if  there could be two, so  much the better.  Mother would have made a  pretty good Mormon,

in some  ways." 

Albert laughed.  "Helen feels she must stay with her father for the  present," he said.  "Of course she is right.

Perhaps by and by we  can find some good capable housekeeper to share the responsibility,  but not this

winter.  IF I am sent to Washington I shall come back  often, you may be sure." 

"When ARE you cal'latin' to be married, if that ain't a secret?" 

"Perhaps next spring.  Certainly next fall.  It will depend upon  Mr. Kendall's health.  But, Grandfather, I do feel

rather like a  deserter, going off and leaving you here" 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XX 211



Top




Page No 214


"Good Lord!  You don't cal'late I'M breakin' down, runnin' strong  to talk and weakenin' everywhere else, like

old Minister Kendall,  do  you?" 

"Well, hardly.  But . . . well, you see, I have felt a little  ungrateful ever since I came back from the war.  In a

way I am  sorry  that I feel I must give myself entirely to my writingand my  political work.  I wish I might

have gone on here in this office,  accepted that partnership you would have given me" 

"You can have it yet, you know.  Might take it and just keep it to  fall back on in case that storymill of yours

busts altogether or  all  hands in Ostable County go crazy and vote the wrong ticket.  Just take  it and wait.

Always well to have an anchor ready to let  go, you  know." 

"Thanks, but that wouldn't be fair.  I wish I MIGHT have taken it  for your sake.  I wish for your sake I were

so constituted as to be  good for something at it.  Of course I don't mean by that that I  should be willing to give

up my writingbutwell, you see,  Grandfather, I owe you an awful lot in this world . . . and I know  you

had set your heart on my being your partner in Z. Snow and Co.  I  know you're disappointed." 

Captain Lote did not answer instantly.  He seemed to be thinking.  Then he opened a drawer in his desk and

took out a box of cigars  similar to those he had offered the Honorable Fletcher Fosdick on  the  occasion of

their memorable interview. 

"Smoke, Al?" he asked.  Albert declined because of the nearness to  dinner time, but the captain, who never

permitted meals or anything  else to interfere with his smoking, lighted one of the cigars and  leaned back in

his chair, puffing steadily. 

"Well, Al," he said slowly, "I'll tell you about that.  There was  a timeI'll own up that there was a time

when the idea you wasn't  goin' to turn out a business man and the partner who would take  over  this concern

after I got my clearance papers was a notion I  wouldn't  let myself think of for a minute.  I wouldn't THINK of

it,  that's all.  But I've changed my mind about that, as I have about  some other  things."  He paused, tugged at

his beard, and then  added, "And I guess  likely I might as well own up to the whole  truth while I'm about it:  I

didn't change it because I wanted to,  but because I couldn't help  it'twas changed for me." 

He made this statement more as if he were thinking aloud than as if  he expected a reply.  A moment later he

continued. 

"Yes, sir," he said, "'twas changed for me.  And," with a shrug,  "I'd rather prided myself that when my mind

was made up it stayed  that way.  Butbut, well, consarn it, I've about come to the  conclusion that I was a

pigheaded old fool, Al, in some ways." 

"Nonsense, Grandfather.  You are the last man to" 

"Oh, I don't mean a candidate for the feebleminded school.  There  ain't been any Snows put there that I can

remember, not our branch  of  'em, anyhow.  But, consarn it, II" he was plainly finding  it hard  to express

his thought, "Iwell, I used to think I knew  consider'ble,  had what I liked to think was good, hard sense.

'Twas hard enough, I  cal'latepretty nigh petrified in spots." 

Albert laid a hand on his knee. 

"Don't talk like that," he replied impulsively.  "I don't like to  hear you." 

"Don't you?  Then I won't.  But, you see, Al, it bothers me.  Look  how I used to talk about makin' up poetry and

writin' yarns and all  that.  Used to call it silliness and a waste of time, I didworse  names than that,


The Portygee

CHAPTER XX 212



Top




Page No 215


generally.  And look what you're makin' at it in  money, to say nothin' of its shovin' you into Congress, and

keepin'  the newspapers busy printin' stuff about you. . . .  Well, well,"  with a sigh of resignation, "I don't

understand it yet, but know  it's  so, and if I'd had my pigheaded way 'twouldn't have been so.  It's a  dreadful

belittlin' feelin' to a man at my time of life, a  man that's  commanded tenthousandton steamers and handled

crews  and bossed a  business like this.  It makes him wonder how many  other fool things  he's done. . . .  Why,

do you know, Al," he  added, in a sudden burst  of confidence, "I was consider'ble  prejudiced against you

when you  first came here." 

He made the statement as if he expected it to come as a stunning  surprise.  Albert would not have laughed for

the world, nor in one  way did he feel like it, but it was funny. 

"Well, perhaps you were, a little," he said gravely.  "I don't  wonder." 

"Oh, I don't mean just because you was your father's son.  I mean  on your own account, in a way.  Somehow,

you see, I couldn't  believeeh?  Oh, come in, Labe!  It's all right.  Al and I are  just  talkin' about nothin' in

particular and all creation in  general." 

Mr. Keeler entered with a paper in his hand. 

"Sorry to bother you, Cap'n Lote," he said, "but this bill of Colby  and Sons for that last lot of hardware ain't

accordin' to agreement.  The prices on those butts ain't right, and neither's those halfinch  screws.  Better send

it back to em, eh?" 

Captain Zelotes inspected the bill. 

"Humph!" he grunted.  "You're right, Labe.  You generally are, I  notice.  Yes, send it back and tell

'emanything you want to." 

Laban smiled.  "I want to, all right," he said.  "This is the third  time they've sent wrong bills inside of two

months.  Well, Al,"  turning toward him, "I cal'late this makes you kind of homesick,  don't it, this talk about

bills and screws and bolts and such?  Wa'n't  teasin' for your old job back again, was you, Al?  Cal'late  he could

have it, couldn't he, Cap'n?  We'll need somebody to heave  a bucket of  water on Issy pretty soon; he's gettin'

kind of pert  and uppish again.  Pretty much so.  Yes, yes, yes." 

He departed, chuckling.  Captain Zelotes looked after him.  He  tugged at his beard. 

"Al," he said, "do you know what I've about made up my mind to do?" 

Albert shook his head. 

"I've about made up my mind to take Labe Keeler into the firm of  Z. Snow and Co.  YOU won't come in,

and," with a twinkle, "I need  somebody to keep my name from gettin' lonesome on the sign." 

Albert was delighted. 

"Bully for you, Grandfather!" he exclaimed.  "You couldn't do a  better thing for Labe or for the firm.  And he

deserves it, too." 

"Yees, I think he does.  Labe's a mighty faithful, capable feller,  and now that he's sworn off on those

vacations of his he can be  trusted anywheres.  Yes, I've as good as made up my mind to take  him  in.  Of

course," with the twinkle in evidence once more,  "Issachar'll  be a little mite jealous, but we'll have to bear up


The Portygee

CHAPTER XX 213



Top




Page No 216


under that as best  we can." 

"I wonder what Labe will say when you tell him?" 

"He'll say yes.  I'll tell Rachel first and she'll tell him to say  it.  And then I'll tell 'em both I won't do it unless

they agree to  get married.  I've always said I didn't want to die till I'd been  to  that weddin'.  I want to hear

Rachel tell the minister she'll  'obey'  Labe.  Ho, ho!" 

"Do you suppose they ever will be married?" 

"Why, yes, I kind of think so.  I shouldn't wonder if they would be  right off now if it wasn't that Rachel

wouldn't think of givin' up  keepin' house for your grandmother.  She wouldn't do that and Labe  wouldn't want

her to.  I've got to fix that somehow.  Perhaps they  could live along with us.  Land knows there's room enough.

They're  all right, those two.  Kind of funny to look at, and they match up  in  size like a rubber boot and a

slipper, but I declare I don't  know  which has got the most commonsense or the biggest heart.  And  'twould  be

hard to tell which thinks the most of you, Al. . . .  Eh?  Why, it's  after halfpast twelve o'clock!  Olive'll be for

combin' our topknots  with a belayin' pin if we keep her dinner  waitin' like this." 

As they were putting on their coats the captain spoke again. 

"I hadn't finished what I was sayin' to you when Labe came in," he  observed.  "'Twasn't much account; just a

sort of confession, and  they say that's good for the soul.  I was just goin' to say that  when  you first came here I

was prejudiced against you, not only  because  your father and I didn't agree, but because he was what he  was.

Because he waswas" 

Albert finished the sentence for him. 

"A Portygee," he said. 

"Why, yes, that's what I called him.  That's what I used to call  about everybody that wasn't born right down

here in Yankeeland.  I  used to be prejudiced against you because you was what I called a  halfbreed.  I'm

sorry, Al.  I'm ashamed.  See what you've turned  out  to be.  I declare, I" 

"Shh! shh!  Don't, Grandfather.  When I came here I was a little  snob, a conceited, insufferable little" 

"Here, here!  Hold on!  No, you wa'n't, neither.  Or if you was,  you was only a boy.  I was a man, and I ought

to" 

"No, I'm going to finish.  Whatever I am now, or whatever I may be.  I owe to you, and to Grandmother, and

Rachel and Labanand Helen.  You made me over between you.  I know that now." 

They walked home instead of riding in the new car.  Captain Zelotes  declared he had hung on to that steering

wheel all the forenoon and  he was afraid if he took it again his fingers would grow fast to  the  rim.  As they

emerged from the office into the open air, he  said: 

"Al, regardin' that makin'over business, I shouldn't be surprised  if it was a kind ofermutual thing

between you and me.  We both  had some prejudices to get rid of, eh?" 

"Perhaps so.  I'm sure I did." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XX 214



Top




Page No 217


"And I'm sartin sure I did.  And the war and all that came with it  put the finishin' touches to the job.  When I

think of what the  thousands and thousands of men did over there in those hellholes  of  trenches, men with

names that run all the way from Jones and  Kelly  toer" 

"Speranza." 

"Yes, and Whiskervitch and the land knows what more.  When I think  of that I'm ready to take off my hat to

'em and swear I'll never be  so narrow again as to look down on a feller because he don't happen  to be born in

Ostable County.  There's only one thing I ask of 'em,  and that is that when they come here to liveto

stayunder our  laws  and takin' advantage of the privileges we offer 'emthey'll  stop  bein' Portygees or

Russians or Polacks or whatever they used  to be or  their folks were, and just be Americanslike you, Al." 

"That's what we must work for now, Grandfather.  It's a big job,  but it must be done." 

They walked on in silence for a time.  Then the captain said: 

"It's a pretty fine country, after all, ain't it, Albert?" 

Albert looked about him over the rolling hills, the roofs of the  little town, the sea, the dunes, the pine groves,

the scene which  had  grown so familiar to him and which had become in his eyes so  precious. 

"It is MY country," he declared, with emphasis. 

His grandfather caught his meaning. 

"I'm glad you feel that way, son," he said, "but 'twasn't just  South Harniss I meant then.  I meant all of it, the

whole United  States.  It's got its faults, of course, lots of 'em.  And if I was  an Englishman or a Frenchman I'd

probably say it wasn't as good as  England or France, whichever it happened to be.  That's all right;  I  ain't

findin' any fault with 'em for thatthat's the way they'd  ought  to feel.  But you and I, Al, we're Americans.  So

the rest of  the  world must excuse us if we say that, take it by and large, it's  a  mighty good country.  We've

planned for it, and worked for it,  and  fought for it, and we know.  Eh?" 

"Yes.  We know." 

"Yes.  And no howlin', wildeyed bunch from somewhere else that  haven't done any of these things are goin'

to come here and run it  their way if we can help itwe Americans; eh?" 

Alberto Miguel Carlos Speranza, American, drew a long breath. 

"No!" he said, with emphasis. 

"You bet!  Well, unless I'm mistaken, I smell salt fish and  potatoes,  which, accordin' to Cape Cod notion, is a

good American  dinner.  I don't know how you feel, Al, but I'm hungry." 


The Portygee

CHAPTER XX 215



Top





Bookmarks



1. Table of Contents, page = 3

2. The Portygee, page = 4

   3. Joseph C. Lincoln, page = 4

   4. CHAPTER I, page = 4

   5. CHAPTER II, page = 17

   6. CHAPTER III, page = 26

   7. CHAPTER IV, page = 42

   8. CHAPTER V, page = 53

   9. CHAPTER VI, page = 65

   10. CHAPTER VII, page = 72

   11. CHAPTER VIII, page = 88

   12. CHAPTER IX, page = 102

   13. CHAPTER X, page = 113

   14. CHAPTER XI, page = 128

   15. CHAPTER XII, page = 143

   16. CHAPTER XIII, page = 145

   17. CHAPTER XIV, page = 159

   18. CHAPTER XV, page = 171

   19. CHAPTER XVI, page = 180

   20. CHAPTER XVII, page = 187

   21. CHAPTER XVIII, page = 194

   22. CHAPTER XIX, page = 204

   23. CHAPTER XX, page = 213